summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/63273-0.txt7637
-rw-r--r--old/63273-0.zipbin168793 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/63273-h.zipbin680879 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/63273-h/63273-h.htm8502
-rw-r--r--old/63273-h/images/cover.jpgbin240095 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/63273-h/images/endchap.jpgbin22003 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/63273-h/images/i_frontis.jpgbin244368 -> 0 bytes
10 files changed, 17 insertions, 16139 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..66e4a2b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #63273 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/63273)
diff --git a/old/63273-0.txt b/old/63273-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index a93351e..0000000
--- a/old/63273-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7637 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Thirty Years from Home, by Samuel Leech
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Thirty Years from Home
- or, a voice from the main deck, being the experience of Samuel Leech
-
-Author: Samuel Leech
-
-Release Date: September 23, 2020 [EBook #63273]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by MWS, John Campbell and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE
-
- Italic text is denoted by _underscores_.
-
- Footnote anchors are denoted by [number], and the footnotes have been
- placed at the end of the book.
-
- A superscript is denoted by ^x or ^{xx}, for example ESQ^R.
-
- The warship USS _Syren_ is referred to as _Siren_ throughout the
- book (except for the title page); this has not been changed.
-
- Some minor changes to the text are noted at the end of the book.
-
-
-
-
- THE
-
- MAGAZINE OF HISTORY
-
- WITH
-
- NOTES AND QUERIES
-
- Extra Number--No. 9
-
-
- COMPRISING
-
-
- THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME, OR A VOICE
- FROM THE MAIN DECK: BEING THE
- EXPERIENCE OF SAMUEL LEECH.
-
-
- WILLIAM ABBATT
- EAST 25th STREET, ⁂ ⁂ NEW YORK
- 1909
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: THIS REPRESENTATION OF THE U. S. FRIGATE UNITED
-STATES, STEPHEN DECATUR ESQ^R COMMANDER, CAPTURING HIS BRITANNIC
-MAJESTY’S FRIGATE MACEDONIAN, JOHN S. CARDEN ESQ^R COMMANDER
-
-_Is respectfully inscribed to Captain Stephen Decatur his Officers
-and Gallant Crew by their devoted humble Servant_
-
- James Webster.]
-
-
-
-
- THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME
-
- OR
-
- A VOICE FROM THE
- MAIN DECK
-
-
- BEING THE EXPERIENCE OF
-
- SAMUEL LEECH
-
- WHO WAS FOR SIX YEARS IN THE BRITISH AND AMERICAN
- NAVIES: WAS CAPTURED IN THE BRITISH FRIGATE _MACEDONIAN_:
- AFTERWARDS ENTERED THE AMERICAN NAVY,
- AND WAS TAKEN IN THE UNITED STATES BRIG _SYREN_, BY
- THE BRITISH SHIP _MEDWAY_ :: :: :: ::
-
-
- BOSTON
- PUBLISHED BY TAPPAN & DENNET
- 114 WASHINGTON STREET
- 1843
-
-
- NEW YORK
- Reprinted
- WILLIAM ABBATT
- 1909
-
- (Being Extra No. 9 of THE MAGAZINE OF HISTORY with Notes and Queries)
-
-
-
-
- PREFACE
-
-
-I have often been solicited, by my personal friends, to commit the
-incidents of my life to paper. It was thought that they contained
-sufficient interest to command public attention. At any rate, there
-is a novelty in the fact of an unlettered sailor’s appearance before
-the public, detailing the secrets of the naval Main Deck. The Quarter
-Deck has long and often told its own story, and has given its own
-coloring to naval life. Here, however, is a voice from the main deck,
-revealing life in a man of war as it appears to the sailor himself.
-As such, this work has some claim on the attention of the public.
-
-I have endeavored to state facts as they were when I was a sailor,
-and in the ships to which I belonged. My object is to give a true
-picture. That, I have done, as far as a remarkably strong memory
-enabled me. I kept no journals, and consequently some slight mistakes
-in names, dates and places, may be found in my book; but I have been
-careful to state nothing as _facts_, of which I was not certain.
-
-That the naval service has improved since I belonged to it, is, I
-believe, universally admitted. I rejoice at it. Still, it is not yet
-what it should be. If this work should, in any degree, stir up the
-public mind to amend the condition of seamen, I shall feel gratified,
-and fully repaid for the labor of placing these facts on record.
-
-With many prayers that the perusal of these pages may do good, I
-leave the reader to pursue his way along the track of my experience:
-assuring him, that what may afford him pleasure to read, has cost me
-much pain to suffer.
-
- SAMUEL LEECH.
-
-
-
-
- RECOMMENDATIONS
-
-
- _From the Hon. Erastus Corning._
-
-
- ALBANY, N. Y., December 3, 1842.
-
- TO WHOM IT MAY CONCERN:
-
- I have known and have had intercourse with Mr. Samuel Leech, for
- the last twenty years, and have always found him honorable in his
- dealings, and consider him entitled to the confidence of the public
- as a man of strict integrity.
-
- ERASTUS CORNING.
-
-
- The undersigned, being acquainted with Mr. Samuel Leech, the author
- of the following work, do cheerfully vouch for his moral and
- Christian character; and assure the public, that the interesting
- volume, which he here presents to the world, may be relied upon as
- an honest statement of facts, with which the writer was personally
- conversant; and as having no fellowship whatever with those
- fictitious tales of the sea, which, under the garb and professions
- of truth, have been proffered to the reading community.
-
- CHARLES ADAMS,
- _Principal Wes. Academy._
-
- JOHN BOWERS,
- _Pastor Cong. Church, Wilbraham, Mass._
-
- WILBRAHAM, May 4, 1843.
-
- DAVID PATTEN,
- _Pastor, Providence, R. I._
-
- REUBEN RANSOM,
- _Presiding Elder, Springfield Dis. N. E. C._
-
- HENRY CHASE,
- _Preacher to Seamen, N. Y._
-
-
-
-
- PREFACE
-
-
-Narratives of service, a century ago, written by private soldiers,
-are rare, but such by common sailors are almost unknown.
-
-Samuel Leech’s narrative “Thirty Years from Home, a voice from
-the Main-Deck” is a unique book, and now scarce. It is a valuable
-contribution to our history, giving a sailor’s experience in both
-British and American navies, and being the sole account by a British
-seaman of the capture of the _Macedonian_ by the _United States_, in
-1812.
-
-The revelations he makes of the cruel treatment of their men by
-British naval officers are unfortunately matched by the similar
-account of life on the same frigate _United States_, then under
-command of “_Captain Claret_” in 1843-44, given by Herman Melville
-in his remarkable book “White Jacket, or the World in a Man of War.”
-Though he is writing of an era thirty years later than Leech’s, the
-picture is equally distressing.
-
-Leech also gives almost as bad a character to Captain David Porter
-(father of the late Admiral David D. Porter) as to the British
-tyrants.
-
-It should be recorded in this connection, that flogging was abolished
-in the United States navy in 1851, through the efforts of Commodore
-Robert P. Stockton.
-
-The book has never been reprinted before since its original
-appearance (1843.)
-
- EDITOR.
-
- --The late Rear Admiral S. R. Franklin (_Memories of a Rear
- Admiral_, 1898), who was midshipman on the _United States_ when
- Herman Melville was of the crew, says _Captain Claret_ was Captain
- James Armstrong, and the _Commodore_ Thomas Ap Catesby Jones. He
- adds: “Melville’s _White Jacket_ had more influence in abolishing
- corporal punishment in the Navy than anything else. A copy of it
- was placed on the desk of every member of Congress, and was a most
- eloquent appeal to the humane sentiment of the country.”
-
-
-
-
- A VOICE FROM THE MAIN DECK
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
-
-Were it not that the most common of all inquiries, respecting every
-man who comes before the public, is, “who is he? whence did he
-proceed? who were his parents?” &c., I would not detain the reader
-with any account of my humble ancestors and their circumstances.
-But, since men naturally expect this information, and would hence
-consider my narrative imperfect without it, I shall take the liberty
-to introduce them.
-
-My father’s occupation was that of _valet de chambre_ to Lord William
-Fitzroy, son of the Duke of Grafton. My recollections concerning him
-are few and indistinct, as he died while I was yet scarcely three
-years old. One little incident alone reminds me of wearing a mourning
-dress as a memento of sorrow for his death. Returning from the parish
-church in Walthamstow, I observed the larger boys amusing themselves
-by swinging across the rails of the fences; endeavoring to join in
-their amusement, my hands slipped, and falling into a muddy ditch, I
-nearly finished my course, ere it was well begun, by a violent death.
-A benevolent stranger, however, rescued me, and once safe, my grief
-for the sad condition of my little black frock was excessive and
-inconsolable. A trifling cause for sorrow, to be sure, yet men and
-women often grieve for causes equally contemptible.
-
-Although my personal remembrances of my father’s death are so
-indistinct, yet the frequent mention made of him by my mother, has
-left the pleasing impression on my mind that he died a Christian. “I
-have thought of my numerous sins, but God has forgiven them all. Be
-not troubled, for the Lord will provide for you and your children.
-You need not fear to leave me, for I am not alone; God is with me,
-though you are out of the room,” were among his dying expressions;
-when, after fourteen months endurance of the pains which accompany a
-slow consumption, he approached “that bourne from which no traveller
-returns.” I expect to find my honored father in heaven.
-
-Wanstead, in Essex, about seven miles from the great metropolis
-of England, was the town, and 1798 the year, of my birth. Were it
-necessary to designate the place more particularly, it might be said
-that the part of Wanstead where I first struggled into being, was
-called Nightingale Place; a most musical name, conferred in honor of
-the nightingales which abounded in the vicinity.
-
-Two years subsequently to my father’s demise, my mother became an
-inmate of the family of Lady Francis Spencer, daughter of the Duke of
-Grafton, and wife of Lord Spencer. As a consequence of this event,
-I was deprived of a mother’s care and consigned to the charge of my
-aunt Turner, whose family amounted to the very respectable number
-of twenty-two sons and two daughters. The transfer of a child from
-the care of its parent to that of another person, may appear, at
-first sight, to be a very unimportant incident; but trifling as it
-seems, it often exerts an influence which very materially changes
-the destiny of the child: it was so in my case. Most of my cousins
-were sailors, and some of them were constantly returning home,
-bringing, with true sailors’ munificence, the pleasing and curious
-productions of distant climes as presents to their parents and
-friends; then, seated round the bright hearth-side, they used to tell
-of wild adventures and hair-breadth escapes, spinning out the winter
-evening’s tale to the infinite delight of their willing listeners.
-Poor fellows! three of them died at sea; two more, John and Richard,
-perished in the ill-fated _Blenheim_, a seventy-four gun ship of the
-British navy, which went down off the Cape of Good Hope, with seven
-hundred as brave men on board as ever trod a plank. Notwithstanding
-these sad recollections, and though none perceived it, my three
-years’ residence among these “sailors bold” decided the nature of my
-future calling; it captivated my imagination and begat a curiosity,
-which ultimately led me to make my “home upon the bounding deep.”
-
-An orphan is ever exposed to changes. The loss of either parent
-calls for a degree of sympathy and kindness from others, which
-they are rarely willing to expend except on their own. Such is the
-almost universal selfishness of human nature. My experience affords
-a verification of the truthfulness of the remark. For some cause or
-other, it became inconvenient for me to remain with my kind aunt
-Turner, and my next home was with a widowed aunt, at Wanstead, where
-I did not meet with the same kindness of treatment. The breaking of
-a cup, or any of the thousand-and-one offences found in the list of
-juvenile defects, was sure to bring upon me the infliction of the
-rod; and, what was equally painful, my most economical aunt exacted
-the full payment for all these losses from the little pocket money
-I obtained by holding a horse, running errands, or as new-year and
-Christmas presents; thus gratifying her temper and her covetousness
-at once, besides embittering, to some extent, the boyish hours of my
-unfortunate self.
-
-There is no evil in the management of children to be more deprecated
-than that species of treatment which tends to destroy their
-happiness. Correction for obvious faults, in a proper manner, is
-essential to their proper moral training; but a habit of incessantly
-scolding them for every little accident or offence, only serves to
-excite the growth of evil passions and to make them dislike their
-home; things to be avoided as much as Scylla and Charybdis by the
-careful mariner. The influence of such mal-treatment follows the
-child through life, like an evil genius, materially affecting his
-views of life and the temper of his mind. For aught that now occurs
-to me, but for this unkindness, my early predilection for the sea
-would have died within me; while, as it was, I panted to enjoy
-the freedom my fancy painted in its pictures of sailor life. To
-add to my sorrows, my mother removed my sister, who had been my
-cheerful companion and true friend, to a lady’s school at Woodstock,
-in Oxfordshire, for the twofold purpose of affording her greater
-literary advantages, and of being able to see her more frequently.
-
-Several incidents occurred during my abode here, which tended to
-increase my growing desire. A smart, active sailor, over six feet
-in height, and well-proportioned, one day presented himself at my
-aunt’s door. He told us he had been to America, where he had seen a
-young man named George Turner, who was her nephew and my cousin. He
-proceeded to tell many fine stories about him, and at last inquired
-if she should not like to see him, and if she should know him.
-
-“I don’t know as I should,” said my aunt, “he has been away so long.”
-
-“Well, then,” replied he, “I am George Turner!”
-
-This fine, bold seaman, then, was my own cousin, son to my aunt
-Turner; he had been eleven years at sea, and, after visiting his
-parents, took this method of surprising his aunt. Most likely he
-has made this adventure the subject of many a forecastle yarn since
-then. While he remained he was so jolly, so liberal, and so full of
-pleasant stories, that I began to feel quite sure that sailors were
-noble fellows.
-
-We were also favored with a visit from an uncle, then visiting Europe
-from the West Indies. He was one of two brothers, who were educated
-at Greenwich for the navy. One of them had entered the British navy,
-and by dint of merit and hard service rose to the possession of a
-commission in the service, but ultimately perished at sea. This one
-had chosen the merchant service, but afterwards settled at Antigua.
-He took me with him to London, and carried me over the West India
-docks; he being well acquainted with many of the captains, they
-treated me with playful attention, inquiring if I did not wish to
-be a cabin-boy, and the like. When I returned to Wanstead, it was
-with a stronger desire than ever to be a sailor. My uncle went to
-Trinidad, and died shortly after.
-
-A very pleasant piece of intelligence greeted me soon after these
-incidents; it was nothing less than my removal from the care of my
-unkind aunt to the roof of my mother. Weary of her widowhood, she
-had again become a wife. My new parent was a widower with one son; a
-carpenter by occupation, in the employ of the Duke of Marlborough.
-Great was my joy when this fact was communicated to my young mind. I
-hailed it as a deliverance from bondage, and with beaming eyes and
-cheerful face hurried to bid adieu to my classmates in the day and
-in the Sunday school--a sad proof of the unfitness of my aunt for
-her task; since a child properly treated, will love its _home_ too
-well to quit it without a tear; and if parents and guardians wish to
-prevent their children from being wanderers and stragglers through
-the wide world, let me bid them exert the utmost effort to make their
-home pleasant. Throw a charm round it, make it enchanted ground,
-cause it to become, in the language of a living poet,
-
- “The fairy ring of bliss”
-
-and then your children will love it too well to wander.
-
-But I was now about to leave Wanstead, and, although delighted to
-be rid of the surveillance of a cross old relation, there were some
-things which threw an air of sadness occasionally over my mind.
-There were many pleasant associations connected with the place; its
-beautiful park, with herds of timid deer grazing under its tall oaks,
-upon whose green old heads the sun had shone for centuries; the
-venerable mansion, seated like a queen amid the sylvan scene; the old
-parish church, with its gorgeously painted windows, to which I had
-often walked on the Sabbath with my fellow-scholars in the Sabbath
-school, and beside whose deep-toned organ I had sat listening to
-the learned priest; the annual hunt at Easter, in which I had often
-joined the crew of idle lads that gave chase to the distracted deer;
-and the pleasant walks, made cheerful by the songs of innumerable
-birds, in Epping forest, were all to be left--perhaps forever.
-This thought made me somewhat sad, but it was swallowed up in the
-joy I felt when my mother appeared to conduct me to Bladen, some
-sixty miles from London, which was the place of her abode since her
-marriage.
-
-Behold me then, gentle reader, seated with my mother on the outside
-of a stage-coach, with some ten fellow-passengers. The stage-coach
-of England is quite a different vehicle from the carriage known by
-that name in America. True, it is drawn by four horses, and it runs
-on four wheels, but here the likeness ends; instead of being built
-to carry twelve persons inside, it carries but six, while outside it
-has seats for twelve. Three or four passengers ride very comfortably
-behind, in what is called the basket, which is the territory of the
-guard, as the boot before is of the coachman. All mail coaches, and
-all others travelling in the night, carry a guard, or an armed man,
-for the purpose of protecting the coach from the attacks of footpads
-or highway robbers.
-
-The dullness of our journey was somewhat relieved, after a long
-season of silence, by the distress of an unfortunate passenger, who,
-falling asleep, nodded so violently, that his hat, supposing it was
-receiving notice to quit, very unceremoniously took leave of the
-skull it covered, and plunged into the mud. The outcry of the poor
-passenger, who was soon waked by the wind sporting amid his hair, and
-his unavailing requests to stop the stage, put us all into good humor
-with ourselves and with each other.
-
-We had another source of relief in the antics of a wild, hair-brained
-sailor. From spinning yarns, which looked amazingly like new
-inventions, he would take to dancing on the roof of the coach; at the
-foot of a hill he would leap off, and then spring up again with the
-agility of a monkey, to the no small amusement of the passengers.
-The more I saw of this reckless, thoughtless tar, the more enamored
-I became with the idea of a sea life; and thus this journey to my
-mother’s new abode was another link in the chain that decided my
-future destiny in the drama of life. How strangely and imperceptibly
-do small events tend to unexpected results. A match may fire a city
-and lay desolate the work of ages; a single leak may sink a bark
-and carry desolation to a hundred firesides--and trifles in the
-daily scenes of human life, give character to our immortality. We
-cannot, therefore, too carefully watch the influence of small events,
-especially on young minds.
-
-At Woodstock, famed in the annals of England as the scene of the
-loves of King Henry and Rosamond Clifford, we quitted our stage
-companions, and proceeded on foot to Bladen, two miles distant.
-Our road lay through Blenheim or Woodstock park, which we entered
-through the triumphal arch, a spacious portal, erected to the memory
-of John, Duke of Marlborough, by Sarah, his duchess. On entering the
-park, which is nearly twelve miles in circumference, one of the most
-beautiful prospects imaginable disclosed itself. Blenheim Palace,
-which is among the most magnificent piles of architecture in England,
-appeared in front; on the left were to be seen a part of the village
-of Woodstock, and on the right a broad and spacious lake, crossed by
-a superb bridge;[1] a lofty column on the rising ground, erected in
-honor of John, Duke of Marlborough, on which is the statue of that
-noble warrior; a delightful valley, hills, plantations, herds of deer
-feeding, shady groves and ancient trees, all conspired to render the
-scene enchantingly beautiful.
-
-Blenheim Palace, or Castle, was built at the public expense, in
-the reign of Queen Anne, and was given, with its annexed demesnes,
-in concurrence with the voice of parliament, to John, Duke of
-Marlborough, as a testimony of royal favor and national gratitude
-for his successes over the French and Bavarians; particularly for his
-victory at Blenheim, on the banks of the Danube, on the 2d of August,
-1704.
-
-Crossing the park towards Bladen, we were met by my father-in-law,[2]
-who received me with a kindness which prepossessed me at once in his
-favor; he conducted us home, where, to my no small gratification, I
-met my sister.
-
-My father-in-law appeared to be in comfortable circumstances. He
-resided in a very neat house, built of stone, shaded by a noble
-apricot tree, and ornamented with a small but pretty garden. This,
-together with another similar tenement, was his own property. To add
-to my satisfaction, I perceived that he was very kind to my mother,
-and also to myself. She one day expressed a desire to have the cold
-stone floor of the kitchen removed, and boarded instead; my father,
-at considerable expense, gratified her wish; this assured me of his
-regard for her comfort.
-
-With the village itself, I was equally well pleased. Though
-containing few houses, it was delightfully pleasant. Fine farms,
-with large flocks of quiet sheep grazing on their hill-sides;
-expansive fields, surrounded with fragrant hawthorn hedges; and old
-farm-houses, with their thatched roofs, and massive wheat ricks, met
-the pleased eye on all sides; while cultivated gardens and numerous
-wild flowers, especially the modest cowslip and humble violet,
-scented the air and perfumed the breeze. Thus far, perhaps, Bladen
-was equal to Wanstead; but in its moral aspects it was inferior.
-There was far less regard for the Sabbath; less attention to the
-moral culture of the young, than at the latter place. That blessed
-institution, which has vivified and renewed the church, which has
-filled her with the vigorous pulsations of youth--from which, as
-from some prolific nursery, she has obtained the plants, which now
-stand on her mountain-tops like the tall cedars of Lebanon--the
-modest, unassuming Sabbath school was not there. Consequently, the
-Sabbath was spent in roaming about the fields, in amusements, in
-visiting, in taking excursions to a place called Ramsden, some seven
-miles distant. True, there was a parish church, with two clergymen
-belonging to its altars, but there was service only once every
-Sunday within its ancient walls. During Lent, however, both priests
-and people were more religious; the church was better attended; the
-children were examined as to their knowledge of the church catechism!
-They were even excited to diligence in committing it to memory by
-the inducement of reward. A Bible and two prayer books were given to
-the lads who excelled in answering the questions. At the first Lent
-examination after my coming to Bladen, the Bible, the highest prize,
-was awarded to me, and the second year the minister assigned me the
-task of hearing the others recite--a striking proof of the benefit
-of Sunday school instruction; it gave me both a moral and mental
-superiority over all my compeers in the little village of Bladen.
-This special attention to religion only lasted during the term of
-Lent; when, with a return to the use of meat, the people returned to
-the neglect of the Sabbath.
-
-The inhabitants of Bladen were very social in their habits. They held
-an annual feast, called Bladen feast, to which they invited their
-friends from other towns; it commenced on Sabbath and continued three
-days. Eating, drinking, talking, fortune-telling, gambling, occupied
-three days of wassail and jollity; after which the visitors returned
-to their respective towns, and the people to their occupations. The
-neighboring villages gave similar feasts in their turn. They were
-occasions of much evil and folly.
-
-My time flew very rapidly and pleasantly away for two or three years,
-until, like most children, I began to sigh for deliverance from the
-restraints of home. I had already left school, and for some time,
-being now about thirteen years of age, had been employed in the
-pleasure-grounds of Blenheim Palace. This, however, was too tame a
-business for a lad of my spirits. I had heard tales of the sea from
-my cousins; my mother had filled my mind with the exploits of my
-grandfather; my imagination painted a life on the great deep in the
-most glowing colors; my mind grew uneasy; every day, my ordinary
-pursuits became more and more irksome, and I was continually talking
-about going to sea; indeed, I had made myself unhappy by being so
-discontented.
-
-Little do lads and young men know of the difference between the
-comfort of a parent’s roof and the indifference, unkindness, and
-trouble they invariably experience, who go out into the world, until
-they have made the experiment. They paint everything in bright
-colors; they fancy the future to be all sunshine, all sweets, all
-flowers, but are sure to be wofully disappointed, when once away
-from the fireside of their infancy. Let me advise young people, if
-they wish to escape hardships, to be contented, to remain quietly at
-home, abiding the openings of Providence, obeying the wishes of their
-parents, who not only have their best good at heart, but, however
-they may think to the contrary, actually know what is most for their
-advantage.
-
-My passion for a seaman’s life was not a little increased by a
-soldier, who was sergeant to a company in Lord Francis Spencer’s
-regiment of cavalry. Seated by my father’s hearth-side, this old
-soldier, who had once been a sailor, would beguile many an evening
-hour with his endless tale, while I sat listening in enrapt
-attention. My mother, too, heedlessly fanned the flame by her
-descriptions of the noble appearance of the ships she had seen when
-at Brighton. Besides this, a footman at Blenheim House used to sing
-a song called “the poor little sailor boy;” which, although somewhat
-gloomy in its descriptions, only served to heighten the flame of
-desire within me, until I could think of nothing else, day or night,
-but of going to sea.
-
-Finding my desires so strong, my kind-hearted mother mentioned
-them to Lady Spencer. Just at that time, her brother, Lord William
-Fitzroy, who was then expecting the command of a frigate, and with
-whom my departed father had lived as valet, happened to visit
-Blenheim, previously to going to sea. Anxious to serve my mother,
-Lady Spencer mentioned me to Lord Fitzroy. He sent for me. Trembling
-in every joint, I was ushered into his presence. He inquired if I
-should like to go to sea. “Yes, my lord, I should,” was my ready
-answer. He dismissed me, after some further questionings; but was
-heard to say, before he left, that he would take me under his care,
-and see to my future advancement.
-
-These dazzling prospects not only well nigh turned my brain, but
-decided my parents to send me to sea. To have their son an _officer_
-in the navy was an unlooked-for honor; and they now entered into my
-plans and feelings with almost as much ardor as myself. Alas! We
-were all doomed to learn how little confidence can be placed in the
-promises of nobles!
-
-Not long after Lord Fitzroy’s departure, we received a letter stating
-the fact of his appointment to his majesty’s frigate _Macedonian_,
-which, being out of dock, was rapidly preparing for sea. This
-intelligence was the signal for bustle, excitement, preparation,
-and I know not what. Friends and gossips constantly crowded in to
-administer their gratuitous advice; some predicting, to my infinite
-delight, that certainly so smart a boy would make a great man; others
-wore very grave countenances, and gave certain expressive shrugs of
-the shoulders, while they told of flogging through the fleet, or of
-being “seized up” for merely a look or a word; in short, but for a
-strong conviction in my own breast that this was all said for effect,
-it is doubtful whether they would not have succeeded in deterring me
-from my purpose.
-
-At last, after much ado, the long-expected day arrived when I was to
-bid farewell to home and friends, to venture abroad upon an unknown
-future. It would only vex the reader by its commonplace character,
-or I would reveal all the nice little acts of parental, brotherly and
-neighborly affection which took place. Suffice it to say, that my
-parting was very much the same as that of all other boys of twelve,
-when they leave home for the first time--a mixture of hopes and
-fears, of tears and smiles, of sunshine and cloud.
-
-Attended by my mother and her infant daughter, on the 12th day
-of July, 1810, I turned my back on the quiet hamlet of Bladen.
-Henceforth my lot was to be cast amid noise, dissipation, storms
-and danger. This, however, disturbed my mind but little; brushing
-away a tear, I leaped gaily on to the outside of the coach, and
-in a few minutes, enveloped in a cloud of dust, was on my way to
-London, filled with the one absorbing idea, “I am going to sea! I
-am going to sea!” Should the reader take the trouble to read the
-following chapters, he will learn the mishaps, hardships, pleasures
-and successes that befell me there; and though my narrative may not
-be filled with the witching tales, and romantic descriptions, that
-abound in the works of the novelist, it shall at least commend itself
-to his notice for its truthfulness.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
-
-Before we sought the decks of the _Macedonian_ we paid a short
-visit to Wanstead, where we met with very pleasant reception, very
-hospitable entertainment, very affectionate adieus. Returning to
-London, we hired a boat and sailed down the Thames, on whose bosom
-reposed the commerce of the world, to Gravesend, where we spent the
-night. The next morning I experienced a new gratification, which
-was nothing less than being arrayed in a complete suit of sailor
-apparel; a tarpaulin hat, round blue jacket and wide pantaloons.
-Never did young knight swell with loftier emotion when donning for
-the first time his iron dress, than I did when in sea dress I trod
-the streets of Gravesend. This had always been my highest ambition.
-The gaudily dressed soldier never had charms for me; but a sailor,
-how nice he looked! Well, here I stood, at last, in the often coveted
-dress; it was the first luxury connected with my life at sea. Pity
-that each successive step had not yielded me equal delight. But it
-was mine to learn that anticipation and reality were not born twins;
-that in fact there are scarcely any two existences so essentially
-different in their characteristics. That I should not lack the means
-of comfort, my good mother purchased me a chest of clothing, and, as
-her last token of maternal care, presented me with a Bible, a prayer
-book, and, strangely inconsistent companions, a pack of cards! Thus
-equipped, we once more hired a boat and descended the river two miles
-below Gravesend, where lay the _Macedonian_, in graceful majesty on
-the sparkling waters.
-
-The first guest we met on board was _disappointment_. From the
-promises of Lord Fitzroy, we very strangely supposed that he felt
-my importance nearly as much as did my mother or father. Judge then
-how we felt, when we learned that no one knew anything in particular
-about my veritable self; yet, as his Lordship was absent, they said
-I might remain on board until his return. This was rather a damper
-on my spirits, but flattering myself that all would be right on
-his return, I soon rallied again, and, aided by the presence of my
-mother, passed a very agreeable day.
-
-Towards night, my mother left me; it scarcely need be said, she wept
-when we parted. What mother would not? She did weep, she strained me
-to her heart, and impressed affection’s purest kiss upon my cheek.
-How like a dream that moment fled! Now, she held me in her arms; a
-moment after, she was seated in the light boat and gliding along the
-turbid Thames, on her homeward way. I leaned over the taffrail and
-gazed on the departing boat, and when it disappeared, I turned away
-and wept.
-
-The morning after my arrival, I was put into a “mess.” The crew of
-a man of war is divided into little communities of about eight,
-called _messes_. These eat and drink together, and are, as it were,
-so many families. The mess to which I was introduced, was composed
-of your genuine, weather-beaten, old tars. But for one of its
-members, it would have suited me very well; this one, a real gruff
-old “bull-dog,” named Hudson, took into his head to hate me at first
-sight. He treated me with so much abuse and unkindness, that my
-messmates soon advised me to change my mess, a privilege which is
-wisely allowed, and which tends very much to the good fellowship of a
-ship’s crew; for if there are disagreeable men among them, they can
-in this way be got rid of; it is no unfrequent case to find a few,
-who have been spurned from all the messes in the ship, obliged to
-mess by themselves.
-
-This unkindness from the brutal Hudson rather chilled my enthusiasm.
-The crew, too, by some means had an impression that my mother had
-brought me on board to get rid of me, and therefore bestowed their
-bitterest curses on her in the most profuse manner imaginable.
-Swearing I had heard before, but never such as I heard there. Nor
-was this all; in performing the work assigned me, which consisted in
-helping the seamen take in provisions, powder, shot, etc., I felt
-the insults and tyranny of the midshipmen. These little minions of
-power ordered and drove me round like a dog, nor did I and the other
-boys dare interpose a word. They were _officers_; their word was our
-law, and woe betide the presumptuous boy that dared refuse implicit
-obedience.
-
-These things reminded me of what had been said to me of the hardships
-of sea life in a man of war. I began to wish myself back in my
-father’s house at Bladen. This, however, was impossible, and to add
-to my discouragement they told me I was entered on the ship’s books
-for life. Dreary prospect! I felt more than half disposed, as I went
-to my tasks, to use the language of the Irishman, as sung by my
-shipmates. Tempted and beguiled while intoxicated, he had enlisted
-for a soldier, but found the sergeant at the _recruiting office_ and
-the sergeant on the _drill-field_ very different personages. He is
-hence made to say,
-
- “It was early next morning to drill I was sent,
- And its och to my soul! I began to lament;
- Cannot you be aisy and let me alone?
- Don’t you see I’ve got arms, legs, and feet of my own?”
-
-But although somewhat grieved with my first experience of sailor
-life, I secretly struggled against my feelings, and with the most
-philosophic desperation resolved to make the best of my condition.
-We were kept busily at work every day until the ship’s stores were
-all on board, and our frigate was ready for sea. Then two hundred
-more men, draughted from receiving ships, came on board, to complete
-the number of our crew, which, after this addition, numbered full
-three hundred men. The jocularity, pleasantry, humor and good feeling
-that now prevailed on board our frigate, somewhat softened the
-unpleasantness of my lot, and cultivated a feeling of reconciliation
-to my circumstances. Various little friendships, which sprang up
-between me and my shipmates, threw a gleam of gladness across my
-path; a habit of attention, respect and obedience in a short time
-secured me universal good will. I began to be tolerably satisfied.
-
-Many boys complain of ill usage at sea. I know they are subjected to
-it in many instances; yet, in most cases, they owe it to their own
-boldness. A boy on shipboard, who is habitually saucy, will be kicked
-and cuffed by all with whom he has to do; he will be made miserable.
-The reason is, I imagine, that sailors, being treated as inferiors
-themselves, love to find opportunity to act the _superior_ over some
-one. They do this over the boys, and if they find a saucy, insolent
-one, they show him no mercy. Permit me, then, to advise boys who go
-to sea, to be civil and obliging to all; they will be amply repaid
-for the effort it may cost them to make the trial, especially if they
-gain the reputation, as I did, of being among the best boys in the
-ship.
-
-A vessel of war contains a little community of human beings,
-isolated, for the time being, from the rest of mankind. This
-community is governed by laws peculiar to itself; it is arranged and
-divided in a manner suitable to its circumstances. Hence, when its
-members first come together, each one is assigned his respective
-station and duty. For every task, from getting up the anchor to
-unbending the sails, aloft and below, at the mess-tub or in the
-hammock, each task has its man, and each man his place. A ship
-contains a set of human machinery, in which every man is a wheel, a
-band, or a crank, all moving with wonderful regularity and precision
-to the will of its machinist--the all-powerful captain.
-
-The men are distributed in all parts of the vessel; those in the
-tops are called fore-top-men, main-top-men, and mizzen-top-men,
-with two captains to each top, one for each watch. These top-men
-have to loose, take in, reef and furl the sails aloft, such as
-the top-gallant sails, top-sails, top-gallant royal, and top-sail
-studding-sails. Others are called forecastle men, waisters, and the
-after-guard; these have to loose, tend, and furl the courses, that
-is, the fore-sail, the main-sail and lower studding-sails; they
-also have to set the jib, flying-jib, and spanker; the after-guard
-have a special charge to coil up all ropes in the after part of
-the ship. Others are called _scavengers_; these, as their not very
-attractive name imports, have to sweep and pick up the dirt that
-may chance to gather through the day, and throw it overboard.
-Then come the boys, who are mostly employed as servants to the
-officers. Our captain had a steward and a boy; these acted as his
-domestic servants in his large and stately cabin, which, to meet
-the ideas of landsmen, may be called his house. The lieutenants,
-purser, surgeon, and sailing-master, had each a boy; they, together
-with the two lieutenants of marines, who were waited upon by two
-marines, form what is called the ward-room officers. The ward-room
-is a large cabin, (I mean large for a ship, of course,) below the
-captain’s, where they all mess together; aft of this cabin is a
-smaller one, which serves as a species of store-room. Besides
-these accommodations, every ward-room officer has his state-room,
-containing his cot, wash-stand, writing-desk, clothes, etc. The
-gunner, boatswain, and some others, are also allowed a boy; and a
-man and boy are appointed to be the servants of a certain number of
-midshipmen.
-
-Another arrangement is that of forming the ship’s company into
-watches. The captain, first lieutenant, surgeon, purser, boatswain,
-gunner, carpenter, armorer, together with the stewards and boys, are
-excused from belonging to them, but are liable to be called out to
-take in sail; some of the last mentioned are called _idlers_. All
-others are in watches, called the larboard and starboard watches.
-
-Stations are also assigned at the guns, to the whole crew. When at
-sea, the drummer beats to quarters every night. This beat, by which
-the men are summoned to quarters, is a regular tune. I have often
-heard the words sung which belong to it; this is the chorus:
-
- “Hearts of oak are our ships, jolly tars are our men,
- We always are ready, steady, boys, steady,
- To fight and to conquer again and again.”
-
-At the roll of this evening drum, all hands hurry to the guns. Eight
-men and a boy are stationed at each gun, one of whom is captain of
-the gun, another sponges and loads it, the rest take hold of the side
-tackle-falls, to run the gun in and out; while the boy is employed in
-handing the cartridges, for which he is honored with the singularly
-euphonious cognomen of powder-monkey.
-
-Besides these arrangements among the men, there are from thirty to
-forty marines to be disposed of. These do duty as sentries at the
-captain’s cabin, the ward-room, and at the galley during the time of
-cooking. They are also stationed at the large guns at night, as far
-as their numbers run. When a ship is in action, and small arms can be
-brought to bear on the enemy, they are stationed on the spar-deck;
-they are also expected to assist in boarding, in conjunction with
-several seamen from each gun, who are armed with pistols and pikes,
-and called boarders.
-
-The great disparity of numbers between the crew of a merchant ship
-and that of a man of war, occasions a difference in their internal
-arrangements and mode of life, scarcely conceivable by those who have
-not seen both. This is seen throughout, from the act of rousing the
-hands in the morning to that of taking in sail. In the merchantman,
-the watch below is called up by a few strokes of the handspike on
-the forecastle; in the man of war, by the boatswain and his mates.
-The boatswain is a petty officer, of considerable importance in his
-way; he and his mates carry a small silver whistle or pipe, suspended
-from the neck by a small cord. He receives word from the officer of
-the watch to call the hands up. You immediately hear a sharp, shrill
-whistle; this is succeeded by another and another from his mates.
-Then follows his hoarse, rough cry of “All hands ahoy!” which is
-forthwith repeated by his mates. Scarcely has this sound died upon
-the ear, before the cry of “Up all hammocks ahoy!” succeeds it,
-to be repeated in like manner. As the first tones of the whistle
-penetrate between decks, signs of life make their appearance. Rough,
-uncouth forms are seen tumbling out of their hammocks on all sides,
-and before its last sounds have died upon the air, the whole company
-of sleepers are hurriedly preparing for the duties of the day. No
-delay is permitted, for as soon as the before-mentioned officers have
-uttered their imperative commands, they run below, each armed with
-a rope’s end, with which they belabor the shoulders of any luckless
-wight upon whose eyes sleep yet hangs heavily, or whose slow-moving
-limbs show him to be but half awake.
-
-With a rapidity which would surprise a landsman, the crew dress
-themselves, lash their hammocks and carry them on deck, where they
-are stowed for the day. There is system even in this arrangement;
-every hammock has its appropriate place. Below, the beams are all
-marked, each hammock is marked with a corresponding number, and
-in the darkest night, a sailor will go unhesitatingly to his own
-hammock. They are also kept exceeding clean. Every man is provided
-with two, so that while he is scrubbing and cleaning one, he may have
-another to use. Nothing but such precautions could enable so many men
-to live in so small a space.
-
-A similar rapidity attends the performance of every duty. The word
-of command is given in the same manner, and its prompt obedience
-enforced by the same unceremonious rope’s-end. To skulk is therefore
-next to impossible; the least tardiness is rebuked by the cry of
-“Hurrah my hearty! bear a hand! heave along! heave along!” This
-system of driving is far from being agreeable; it perpetually reminds
-you of your want of liberty; it makes you feel, sometimes, as if the
-hardest crust, the most ragged garments, with the freedom of your own
-native hills, would be preferable to John Bull’s “beef and duff,”
-joined as it is with the rope’s-end of the driving boatswain.
-
-We had one poor fellow, an Irishman, named Billy Garvy, who felt very
-uneasy and unhappy. He was the victim of that mortifying system of
-impressment, prevalent in Great Britain in time of war. He came on
-board perfectly unacquainted with the mysteries of sea life. One of
-his first inquiries was, where he should find his bed, supposing they
-slept on shipboard on beds the same as on shore. His messmates, with
-true sailor roguishness, sent him to the boatswain. “And where shall
-I find a bed, sir?” asked he of this rugged son of the ocean.
-
-The boatswain looked at him very contemptuously for a moment, then,
-rolling his lump of tobacco into another apartment of his ample
-mouth, replied,
-
-“Have you got a knife?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Well, stick it into the softest plank in the ship, and take that for
-a bed!”
-
-Poor fellow! what was sport for others was pain to him. He had been
-used to kind treatment at home. After he had received his hammock,
-when turning out in the morning, with the boatswain’s mates at his
-heels, he used to exclaim, “When I was at home, I would walk in
-my father’s garden in the morning, until the maid would come and
-say, ‘William, will you come to your ta, or your coffee ta, or your
-chocolarata?’ But, oh! the case is altered now; it’s nothing but bear
-a hand, lash and carry. Oh, dear!”
-
-I confess that Billy Garvy was not the only one who contrasted
-the present with the past, or who found the balance to be greatly
-in favor of the former. I often looked back to the village of
-Bladen, and thought how preferable would be the bright hearth-side
-and pleasant voices of that quiet home, to the profane, rough,
-uncomfortable life we led on shipboard. As these reflections were
-anything but pleasurable, I banished them as quickly as possible,
-with a determination to be as happy as I could in my station
-of servant to the surgeon of His Britannic Majesty’s frigate
-_Macedonian_: a resolution which I commend to all lads, who, like me,
-are foolish enough to quit the quiet scenes of a native village, for
-the noisy, profane atmosphere of a man of war.
-
-As our fare was novel and so different from shore living, it was some
-time before I could get fully reconciled to it: it was composed of
-hard sea biscuit, fresh beef while in port, but salt pork and salt
-beef at sea, pea soup and burgoo. Burgoo, or, as it was sportively
-called, skillagallee, was oatmeal boiled in water to the consistency
-of hasty pudding. Sometimes we had cocoa instead of burgoo. Once a
-week we had flour and raisins served out, with which we made “duff”
-or pudding. To prepare these articles, each mess had its cook, who
-drew the provisions, made the duff, washed the mess kids, etc. He
-also drew the grog for the mess, which consisted of a gill of rum
-mixed with two gills of water for each man. This was served out at
-noon every day: at four o’clock, P. M., each man received half a pint
-of wine. The boys only drew half this quantity, but were allowed pay
-for the remainder, a regulation which could have been profitably
-applied to the whole supply of grog and wine for both boys and men.
-But those were not days in which Temperance triumphed as she does
-now; though, I believe, the British navy has not yet ceased to
-dispense the “drink that’s in the drunkard’s bowl” to her seamen.
-
-Shortly after our captain came on board, his servant died somewhat
-suddenly, so that I had an early opportunity of seeing how sailors
-are disposed of in this sad hour. The corpse was laid out on the
-grating, covered with a flag; as we were yet in the river, the body
-was taken on shore and buried, without the beautiful burial-service
-of the church of England being read at his grave--a ceremony which
-is not omitted at the interment of the veriest pauper in that country.
-
-I have purposely dwelt on these particulars, that the reader may feel
-himself initiated at once into the secrets of man-of-war usages. He
-has doubtless seen ships of war with their trim rigging and frowning
-ports, and his heart has swelled with pride as he has gazed upon
-these floating cities--the representatives of his nation’s character
-in foreign countries: to their internal arrangements, however, he
-has been a stranger. I have endeavored to introduce him into the
-interior: a desire to make him feel at home there, is my apology for
-dwelling so long on these descriptions.
-
-After various delays, we were at last ready for sea and under sailing
-orders. The tide and wind were both propitious; then came the
-long-expected cry of the boatswain, “All hands up anchor ahoy!” The
-crew manned the capstan in a trice, and running round to the tune of
-a lively air played by the fifer, the huge anchor rapidly left the
-mud of the Thames, and hung at the bows of our taut frigate. Then
-came the cry of “All hands make sail ahoy!” As if by magic, she was
-immediately covered with canvas; the favoring breeze at once filled
-our sails, and the form that had lain for weeks inert and motionless
-on the waters, now bounded along the waves like a thing of life.
-Rapidly we ran down the Channel, and before we had well got under
-weigh came to an anchor again at Spithead, under shelter of the
-garden of England--the Isle of Wight.
-
-Short as was the period between weighing anchor off Gravesend and our
-arrival at Spithead, it gave opportunity for one of those occurrences
-which are a disgrace to the naval service of any nation, and a
-degradation to our common humanity, which the public opinion of the
-civilized world should frown out of existence: I allude to the brutal
-practice of flogging.
-
-A poor fellow had fallen into the very sailorlike offence of getting
-drunk. For this the captain sentenced him to the punishment of four
-dozen lashes. He was first placed in _irons_ all night: the irons
-used for this purpose were shackles fitting round the ankles, through
-the ends of which was passed an iron bar some ten or twelve feet in
-length: it was thus long because it was no unfrequent case for half a
-dozen men to be ironed at once. A padlock at the end of the bar held
-the prisoner securely. Thus placed in “duress vile,” he was guarded
-by a marine until the captain bade the first lieutenant prepare the
-hands to witness the punishment. Upon this the lieutenant transmitted
-the order to the master at arms. He then ordered the grating or hatch
-full of square holes to be rigged: it was placed accordingly between
-the main and spar decks, not far from the mainmast.
-
-While these preparations were going on, the officers were dressing
-themselves in full uniform and arming themselves with their dirks:
-the prisoner’s messmates carried him his best clothes, to make him
-appear in as decent a manner as possible. This is always done, in
-the hope of moving the feelings of the captain favorably towards the
-prisoner.
-
-This done, the hoarse, dreaded cry of “All hands ahoy to witness
-punishment!” from the lips of the boatswain, peals along the ship
-as mournfully as the notes of a funeral knell. At this signal the
-officers muster on the spar deck, the men on the main deck. Next came
-the prisoner; guarded by a marine on one side and the master at arms
-on the other, he was marched up to the grating. His back was made
-bare and his shirt laid loosely upon his back; the two quartermasters
-proceeded to seize him up; that is, they tied his hands and feet with
-spun-yarns, called the seizings, to the grating. The boatswain’s
-mates, whose office it is to flog on board a man of war, stood ready
-with their dreadful weapon of punishment, the cat-o’-nine-tails. This
-instrument of torture was composed of nine cords, a quarter of an
-inch round and about two feet long, the ends whipt with fine twine.
-To these cords was affixed a stock, two feet in length, covered
-with red baize. The reader may be sure that it is a most formidable
-instrument in the hands of a strong, skilful man. Indeed, any man who
-should whip his horse with it would commit an outrage on humanity,
-which the moral feeling of any community would not tolerate; he would
-be prosecuted for cruelty; yet it is used to whip MEN on board ships
-of war!
-
-The boatswain’s mate is ready, with coat off and whip in hand. The
-captain gives the word. Carefully spreading the cords with the
-fingers of his left hand, the executioner throws the cat over his
-right shoulder; it is brought down upon the now uncovered herculean
-shoulders of the MAN. His flesh creeps--it reddens as if blushing
-at the indignity; the sufferer groans; lash follows lash, until the
-first mate, wearied with the cruel employment, gives place to a
-second. Now two dozen of these dreadful lashes have been inflicted:
-the lacerated back looks inhuman; it resembles roasted meat burnt
-nearly black before a scorching fire; yet still the lashes fall; the
-captain continues merciless. Vain are the cries and prayers of the
-wretched man. “I would not forgive the Saviour,” was the blasphemous
-reply of one of these naval demi-gods, or rather demi-fiends, to a
-plea for mercy. The executioners keep on. Four dozen strokes have cut
-up his flesh and robbed him of all self-respect; there he hangs, a
-pitied, self-despised, groaning, bleeding wretch; and now the captain
-cries, forbear! His shirt is thrown over his shoulders; the seizings
-are loosed; he is led away, staining his path with red drops of
-blood, and the hands, “piped down” by the boatswain, sullenly return
-to their duties.
-
-Such was the scene witnessed on board the _Macedonian_, on the
-passage from London to Spithead; such, substantially, is every
-punishment scene at sea; only carried, sometimes, to a greater length
-of severity. Sad and sorrowful were my feelings on witnessing it;
-thoughts of the friendly warnings of my old acquaintance filled my
-mind, and I inwardly wished myself once more under the friendly
-roof of my father, at Bladen. Vain wish! I should have believed the
-warning voice when it was given. Believe me, young man, you will
-often breathe that wish, if ever you wander from a father’s house.
-
-Flogging in the navy is more severe than in the army, though it is
-too bad to be tolerated there, or indeed anywhere. Other modes of
-punishment might be successfully substituted, which would deter from
-misconduct, without destroying the self-respect of the man. I hope
-the day will come, when a captain will no more be allowed to use
-the “cat” than he is now to use poison. It should be an interdicted
-weapon.
-
-Though I have spoken severely of the officers of the navy, let it
-not be thought that the whole class of naval officers are lost to
-the finer feelings of humanity. There are many humane, considerate
-men among them, who deserve our highest respect. This was the case
-with the first lieutenant of the _Macedonian_, Mr. Scott. He abhorred
-flogging. Once, when a poor marine was under sentence, he plead
-hard and successfully with the captain for his respite. This was a
-great victory; for the captain had a profound hatred of marines. The
-poor soldier was extremely grateful for his intercession, and would
-do anything for him to show his sense of the obligation; indeed,
-the sailors, in their odd way, showed their preference for him by
-describing him as a man who had a soul to be saved, and who ought to
-go to heaven; while of the captain, they whispered that if he did not
-go to perdition, “the devil would be cheated of his due.” These are,
-in a manner, proverbial expressions of like and dislike, on board a
-British man of war.
-
-One of the effects of this exhibition of cruelty was seen during the
-short time we lay at Spithead. The two boys, who were servants to the
-first and second lieutenants, conceiving a special dislike to the
-idea of being flogged, took it into their heads to run away. Being
-sent on shore, they shaped their course for the country. It was well
-for them that they were not re-taken.
-
-Our frigate had orders to convey between two and three hundred troops
-from Portsmouth to Lisbon, to assist the Portuguese against the
-French. The soldiers were stowed on the main decks, with very few
-conveniences for the voyage; their officers messed and berthed in the
-ward-room. Having taken them on board, we again weighed anchor, and
-were soon careering before the breeze on our way to Lisbon.
-
-As usual, we who were landsmen had our share of that merciless,
-nondescript, hateful, stultifying disease, yclept sea-sickness; as
-usual, we wished the foolish wish that we had never come to sea; as
-usual, we got over it, and laughed at ourselves for our sea-sick
-follies. Our good ship paid little attention, however, to our
-feelings; she kept along on her bounding way, and, after a week at
-sea, we were greeted with the pleasant cry of “Land ho!” from the
-mast-head. As it was now near night, we lay off and on until morning;
-at day-break we fired a gun for a pilot. The wind being nearly dead
-ahead, we had to beat about nearly all day. Towards night it became
-fair, and we ascended the Tagus. This river is about nine miles wide
-at its mouth, and is four hundred and fifty miles in length; it has
-a very rapid current, with steep, fertile banks. Aided by a fine
-breeze, we ascended it in splendid style, passed a half-moon battery,
-then shot past Belem Castle into the port of Lisbon, about ten
-miles from its mouth. Here we found a spacious harbor, filled with
-shipping. Besides numerous merchantmen, there were two ships of a
-hundred guns, several seventy-fours, frigates and sloops of war, with
-a large number of transports; all designed for the defence of Lisbon
-against the French.
-
-Lisbon has a fine appearance from the harbor. A stranger, after a
-long sea-voyage, while standing on the deck of his vessel, and gazing
-on its battlements and towers, might fancy it to be a terrestrial
-paradise; but, on landing, his admiration would certainly sink below
-zero, as he plodded his way, beset by saucy beggars at almost every
-step, through its narrow, filthy streets. Such, at least, was my
-impression, as I perambulated the city. Among other things, I noticed
-a great variety of churches and convents, which furnished swarms of
-plump, good-natured friars, under whose spiritual domination the good
-people of Lisbon were content to rest. I also counted thirteen large
-squares. One of them contained a huge black horse, standing in its
-centre, with the figure of a man upon his back, both much larger than
-life. What this monument represented, I did not learn. That square is
-denominated Black Horse Square.
-
-On the day after our arrival, the _Macedonian_ was the scene of
-considerable bustle. The troops, who seemed to forget their proximity
-to a field of carnage, in the delight they felt at escaping from the
-confinement on shipboard, were landed; several boats’ crews were also
-sent up the river to assist in the defence of the place.
-
-While we lay here, our ship was well supplied with fruits from the
-shore. Large bunches of delicious grapes, abundance of sweet oranges,
-water-melons, chestnuts, and also a bountiful supply of gigantic
-onions, of peculiar flavor, enabled our crew to gratify their palates
-in true English style. Poor fellows! they feasted, laughed, and
-joked, as if the future had nothing to develop but fairy scenes of
-unmixed delight. Little thought, indeed, does your true tar take of
-the morrow.
-
-Amid these feastings, however, there rose something to trouble
-Macbeth, in the shape of an order from the admiral to prepare for a
-cruise. This was peremptory;--for a cruise, therefore, we prepared.
-Our boats’ crews came on board; the officers stored their larder with
-the means of gustatory gratifications; and we stood out to sea again.
-
-The port of Corunna, in Spain, was the next place at which we
-anchored. While lying in this spacious and safe harbor, our little
-world was thrown into temporary confusion by the loss of the
-ward-room steward, Mr. Sanders. This man could speak in the Spanish
-tongue; he had accumulated a considerable sum of money by long
-service, prize money, and an economy little known among sailors.
-For some cause or other he had become dissatisfied; so, one day, he
-engaged a Spaniard to run his boat under the stern of our frigate;
-dropping from one of the stern ports into the boat, unperceived
-by the officers, the wily Spaniards covered him with their loose
-garments and sails, and then conveyed him to the shore. This was
-running a great risk; for had he been detected in the act, or taken
-afterwards, he would have felt the cruel strokes of the lash.
-Fortunately for himself, he escaped without detection.
-
-From Corunna, we returned to Lisbon, where, at the cheerful cry of
-“All hands bring the ship to an anchor, ahoy!” we once more placed
-our frigate, taut and trim, under the battlements of the city.
-
-As servant to the surgeon, it was one part of my duty to perform the
-task of carrying his clothes to be washed. As great attention to
-cleanliness, in frequently changing their linen, is observed among
-naval officers, a good washerwoman is considered quite a desideratum.
-In attending to this matter for my master, I had frequent
-opportunities to go on shore. This gave me some means of observation.
-On one of my visits to our pretty laundress, I saw several Portuguese
-running along, gesticulating and talking with great earnestness.
-Being ignorant of their language, my washerwoman, who spoke good
-English, told me that a man had been stabbed, in consequence of
-some ground for jealousy, afforded by the conduct of the deceased.
-Hastening to the spot, I saw the wounded man, stretched out on a bed,
-with two gaping wounds in his side, the long knife, the instrument of
-the deed, lying by his side. The poor sufferer soon died. What was
-done to the murderer, I could not discover.
-
-Though very passionate, and addicted to the use of the knife, for the
-purpose of taking summary vengeance, the Portuguese are nevertheless
-arrant cowards. Indeed, it is a question by no means settled, whether
-all classes of men, in any country, who fly to cold steel or to
-fire-arms in every petty quarrel, are not cowards at heart. We had
-an evidence of Portuguese cowardice in an affray which occurred
-between some of the citizens of Lisbon and a party of our marines.
-Six of the latter, ignorant of the palace or municipal regulations,
-wandered into the queen’s gardens. Some twenty of the Portuguese, on
-witnessing this bold intrusion on the privacy of the queen, rushed
-upon them with long knives. The marines, though so inferior in
-number, faced about with their bayonets, and, after much cursing and
-chattering, their enemies, considering perhaps that the better part
-of valor is discretion, took to their heels, leaving the six marines
-masters of a bloodless field. These recontres were quite common
-between them and our men; the result, though sometimes more serious,
-was uniformly the same.
-
-As an illustration of the manners of this people, I cannot forbear
-the insertion of another fact. I was one day walking leisurely
-along the streets, quite at my ease, when the gathering of a noisy
-multitude arrested my attention. Looking up, I was shocked at seeing
-a human head, with a pair of hands beneath it, nailed to a pole!
-They had just been taken from the body of a barber, who, when in
-the act of shaving a gentleman, was seized with a sudden desire to
-possess a beautiful watch, which glittered in his pocket; to gain
-this brilliant bauble, the wretched man cut his victim’s throat.
-He was arrested, his hands were cut off, then his head, and both
-were fastened to the pole as I have described them. Upon inquiry, I
-ascertained that this was the ordinary method of punishing murder
-in Portugal; a striking evidence that civilization had not fully
-completed its great work among them. Civilization humanizes the
-feelings of society, throwing a veil of refinement and mercy over
-even the sterner acts of justice; at any rate, it never tolerates
-such barbarism as I saw at Lisbon.
-
-While in port we experienced a change of officers by no means
-agreeable to the crew. Mr. Scott, our first lieutenant, an amiable
-man, decidedly hostile to the practice of flogging, left us; for
-what cause, we could not ascertain. His successor, Mr. Hope, though
-bearing a very pleasant name, was an entirely different person, in
-manners and conduct, from his predecessor. He was harsh, severe,
-and fond of seeing the men flogged. Of course, floggings became
-more frequent than before; for, although a lieutenant cannot flog
-upon his own authority, yet, such is the influence he exerts
-over a captain, that he has the utmost opportunity to gratify a
-thirst for punishment. It may appear strange to the reader that
-any gentleman--and all officers of the navy consider themselves
-_gentlemen_--should possess such a thirst; yet such was the case with
-Mr. Hope. Nor was his a solitary example; many a man, who, on shore,
-in presence of ladies of fashion, appeared too gentle to harm an
-enemy, too kind to injure an insect, was strangely metamorphosed into
-a genuine unprincipled tyrant, upon assuming command in a man of war.
-
-We had already witnessed a number of punishments, especially at
-sea: in port, the officers were more condescending, lest their men
-should desert; but at sea, when this was impossible, they flogged
-without mercy. Cases of offence which occurred while in the harbor,
-were looked up; sometimes a half dozen were flogged at once; every
-man trembled lest he should be a victim; the ship’s crew were made
-wretched; a sword seemed impending over every head. Who, in such
-a case, could be happy? Not even a sailor, with all his habitual
-thoughtlessness. Yet it is said we must flog, to maintain discipline
-among sailors. Pshaw! Flogging may be needful to awe a slave writhing
-under a sense of unmerited wrong, but never should a lash fall on a
-freeman’s back, especially if he holds the safety and honor of his
-country in his keeping.
-
-Poor old Bob Hammond! Never was man more reckless than this
-honest-hearted Irishman; never was sailor more courageous under
-punishment. For being drunk he received four dozen lashes; he bore
-the infliction with profound silence, uttering neither groan nor
-sigh; neither casting one imploring look at his tormentors. On being
-taken down, he applied himself most lustily to his bottle, and before
-night was drunk again. Rushing to the quarter deck, with a madness
-peculiar to a phrensied drunkard, he ran up against the captain with
-such force that he nearly knocked him down. With a boldness that
-seemed to strike the great man dumb, Bob hiccupped and said,
-
-“Halloo, Billy, my boy, is that you? You are young and foolish; just
-fit for the launch. You are like a young lion--all your sorrows are
-to come.”
-
-The captain was excessively proud; even his officers scarcely dared
-walk the quarter deck on the same side with him. He never allowed
-himself to be addressed but by his title of “my Lord.” Should a
-sailor, through design or forgetfulness, reply to a command, “Yes,
-sir,” the lordly man would look at him with a glance full of dignity,
-and sternly reply, “What, sir?” This, of course, would put the
-offender in mind to correct himself by saying, “Yes, my _Lord_.”
-Judge then of his surprise, indignation, nay, of his lordly horror,
-when poor old drunken Bob Hammond called him “Billy, my boy!”
-Doubtless it stirred up his nobility within him, for, with a voice
-of thunder, he exclaimed, “Put this man in irons!” It was done. The
-next morning, his back yet sore, poor Bob received five dozen more
-strokes of the hated cat-o’-nine-tails. Most heroically was it borne.
-No sound escaped him; the most profound silence was observed by all,
-broken only by the dead sound of the whip, as it fell every few
-moments on the wounded back. The scene was sickening in the extreme.
-Let me throw a veil over its details, simply remarking that it is
-questionable which of the two appears to the best advantage; poor
-drunken Bob, suffering degrading torture with heroic firmness, or my
-Lord Fitzroy, gloating on the scene with the appetite of a vulture!
-Let the reader decide for himself.
-
-These statements may at first sight appear incredible. It may be
-asked how a man could endure whippings which would destroy an ox or a
-horse. This is a very natural question, and but for the consciousness
-I feel of being supported in my statements by the universal testimony
-of old men-of-war’s-men, I should hesitate to publish them. The
-_worst_ species of this odious torture, however, remains to be
-described--flogging through the fleet.
-
-This punishment is never inflicted without due trial and sentence
-by a court-martial, for some aggravated offence. After the offender
-is thus sentenced, and the day arrives appointed by his judges for
-its execution, the unhappy wretch is conducted into the ship’s
-launch--a large boat--which has been previously rigged up with poles
-and grating, to which he is seized up; he is attended by the ship’s
-surgeon, whose duty it is to decide when the power of nature’s
-endurance has been taxed to its utmost. A boat from every ship in
-the fleet is also present, each carrying one or two officers and two
-marines fully armed. These boats are connected by tow lines to the
-launch.
-
-These preparations made, the crew of the victim’s ship are ordered
-to man the rigging, while the boatswain commences the tragedy. When
-he has administered one, two or three dozen lashes, according to the
-number of ships in the fleet, the prisoner’s shirt is thrown over his
-gory back; the boatswain returns on board, the hands are piped down,
-the drummer beats a mournful melody, called the rogue’s march, and
-the melancholy procession moves on. Arriving at the side of another
-ship, the brutal scene is repeated, until every crew in the fleet has
-witnessed it, and from one to three hundred lashes have lacerated
-the back of the broken-spirited tar to a bleeding pulp. He is then
-placed under the surgeon’s care, to be fitted for duty--_a ruined
-man_--broken in spirit! all sense of self-respect gone, forever
-gone! If he survive, it is only to be like his own brave bark,
-when winds and waves conspire to dash her on the pitiless strand,
-a wretched, hopeless wreck; a living, walking shadow of his former
-self. Shameful blot! most foul and disgraceful stain on the humanity
-of England! How long before this worse than barbarism will disappear
-before the mild influences of civilization and Christianity?
-
-No plea of necessity can be successfully urged in behalf of whipping
-men; for, if subordination or faithful adhesion to orders is expected
-to follow such terrible examples, I know, from my acquaintance
-with the sufferers themselves, that the expectation is vain. One
-of two results always follows. The victim either lives on, a lone,
-dark-minded, broken-spirited man, despising himself and hating
-every one, because he thinks every one hates him; or he lives with
-one fearful, unyielding purpose; a purpose on which he feeds and
-nourishes his galled mind, as food affords life and energy to his
-physical constitution--that purpose is REVENGE. I have heard them
-swear--and the wild flashing eye, the darkly frowning brow, told
-how firm was that intent--that if ever they should be in battle,
-they would shoot their officers. I have seen them rejoice over the
-misfortunes of their persecutors, but more especially at their death.
-That it has frequently led to mutiny, is well verified. I have known
-such severity to result in actual murder. While we lay at Lisbon, a
-sergeant of marines, on board a seventy-four, made himself obnoxious
-by repeated acts of tyranny. Two marines determined upon his death.
-One night, unperceived by any, they seized him, hurried him to the
-gangway, and pitched him overboard. The tide was running strong; the
-man was drowned! But for themselves his fate would have remained
-a secret until the great day of judgment; it was discovered by an
-officer, who accidentally overheard them congratulating each other on
-their achievement. He betrayed them. A court-martial sentenced them.
-They were placed on deck with halters on their necks. Two guns were
-fired, and, when the smoke cleared away, two men were seen dangling
-from the foreyard-arm. Only one day previous, a letter had brought
-a discharge from the service for one of them. Poor fellow! it came
-too late. He was fated to a summary discharge from all service, in a
-manner appalling and repulsive to every finer human feeling.
-
-Such are the actual consequences of severity of discipline on board
-men of war. Punishment leads to revenge; revenge to punishment. What
-is intended to cure, only aggravates the disease; the evil enlarges
-under the remedy; _voluntary_ subordination ceases; gloom overspreads
-the crew; fear fills the breasts of the officers; the ship becomes
-a miniature of the house of fiends. While, on the other hand, mild
-regulations, enforced without an appeal to brute force, are easily
-carried into operation. The sailor has a warm heart; show him
-personal kindness, treat him as a man, he will then be a man; he will
-do anything for a _kind_ officer. He will peril his life for him;
-nay, he will cheerfully rush between him and danger. This was done
-at Tripoli, when the brave James[3] offered his own arm to receive
-the fell stroke of a Turkish scimitar, aimed at the life of the bold
-Decatur, on board the frigate _Philadelphia_. Let naval officers,
-let all ship-masters, once fairly test the effect of kind treatment,
-and I am sure they will never desire to return to severity; unless,
-indeed, they are tyrants at heart, in which case, the sooner they
-lose their commands the better for their country; for no tyrant is
-truly brave or trustworthy. Cowardice and meanness lie curled up in
-the heart of every tyrant. He is too despicable, too unsafe to be
-trusted with the responsibilities of a naval command. Such, at least,
-is the opinion of an old sailor.
-
-One of the greatest enemies to order and happiness in ships of war is
-drunkenness. To be drunk is considered by almost every sailor as the
-_acme_ of sensual bliss; while many fancy that swearing and drinking
-are necessary accomplishments in a genuine man-of-war’s-man. Hence
-it almost universally prevails. In our ship the men would get drunk,
-in defiance of every restriction. Were it not for the moral and
-physical ruin which follows its use, one might laugh at the various
-contrivances adopted to elude the vigilance of officers in their
-efforts to procure rum. Some of our men who belonged to the boats’
-crews provided themselves with bladders; if left ashore by their
-officers a few moments, they would slip into the first grocery, fill
-their bladders, and return with the spoil. Once by the ship’s side,
-the favorable moment was seized to pass the interdicted bladders into
-the port-holes, to some watchful shipmate, by whom it was carefully
-secreted, to be drunk at the first opportunity. The liberty to go on
-shore, which is always granted while in port, was sure to be abused
-for drunken purposes. The Sabbath was also a day of sensuality. True,
-we sometimes had the semblance of religious services, when the men
-were summoned aft to hear the captain read the morning service from
-the church prayer-book; but usually it was observed more as a day
-of revelry than of worship. But at Christmas our ship presented a
-scene such as I had never imagined. The men were permitted to have
-their “full swing.” Drunkenness ruled the ship. Nearly every man,
-with most of the officers, was in a state of beastly intoxication at
-night. Here, some were fighting, but were so insensibly drunk, they
-hardly knew whether they struck the guns or their opponents; yonder,
-a party were singing libidinous or bacchanalian songs, while all
-were laughing, cursing, swearing or hallooing; confusion reigned in
-glorious triumph; it was the very chaos of humanity. Had we been at
-sea, a sudden gale of wind must have proved our destruction; had we
-been exposed to a sudden attack from an enemy’s vessel, we should
-have fallen an easy prey to the victor; just as the poor Hessians,
-at Trenton, fell before the well-timed blow of the sage Washington,
-during the war of the revolution.
-
-Of all places, the labors of temperance men are most needed among
-sailors; and I am glad to know that much has been accomplished among
-them already. From what I _know_ of the sufferings and difficulties
-growing out of intemperance at sea, I most heartily desire to see
-a temperance flag floating at the mast-head of every ship in the
-world. When this is seen, sailors will be a happier class than ever
-they have yet been, from the time when the cautious Phenicians crept
-timidly round the shores of the Mediterranean, to the present day of
-bold and fearless navigation.
-
-[Illustration: (Decorative Separator)]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
-
-Shortly after the Christmas debauch, mentioned in the preceding
-chapter, news was brought to the admiral that nine French
-frigates were cruising on the Spanish coast: immediately, all was
-excitement, bustle, preparation through the fleet. The _Hannibal_
-and _Northumberland_, both seventy-four gun ships, the _Cæsar_ of
-eighty guns, called by the sailors the Old Bull-dog, a gun brig, and
-some others, I forget the names, and the _Macedonian_, were ordered
-to sail in pursuit of the French. This formidable force dropped
-down the river, every man composing it eagerly desiring to meet the
-enemy. The enterprise however, was unsuccessful; after cruising in
-vain for several days, the admiral signalled the fleet to return.
-Before reaching port we fell in with a Scotch ship from Greenock,
-in a most perilous condition; her masts and rudder were gone, while
-her numerous leaks were fast gaining on the labors of the already
-exhausted crew at the pumps. Finding it utterly impossible to save
-the vessel, we took off the crew; and thus our cruise, though
-defeated in its main design, proved the means of rescuing several
-poor wretches from a watery grave. It is a question worthy of
-consideration, whether this was not a really higher result than if
-we had found and beaten the French, and had returned in a crippled
-state, leaving some hundreds killed and wounded. Humanity would
-answer, yea.
-
-So far as the effects of this cruise concerned our own little
-frigate, they were really quite serious. We were reefing topsails
-one night, at sea, when the sailing-master, Mr. Lewis, in a fit of
-ill-humor, threatened to flog some of the men. The captain overheard
-him. Feeling himself hurt by this assumption of his own prerogative,
-he told Mr. Lewis that he was captain in the ship, and it was his
-business to flog the men. Sharp words followed; the captain was
-exasperated; he ordered the sailing-master to be put in irons. Here,
-however, he exceeded his own power, for, though he might place
-the common sailor in irons, he might not do so by an officer with
-impunity. Accordingly, when we reached Lisbon, a court-martial sat on
-the case, which resulted in their both being broken or cashiered.
-
-This was a hard blow for Lord Fitzroy, and he obviously felt it
-most keenly. It also cut off my expectations of being elevated to
-the quarter deck; for, although I had never received any direct
-encouragement from his Lordship, yet I had always nourished the hope
-that ultimately he would keep the promise he made to my mother,
-and do something for my advancement. Now, however, my hopes were
-destroyed. I was doomed to the forecastle for life.
-
-Lord Fitzroy was succeeded by Captain Carson. He however, was soon
-removed to make way for Captain Waldegrave, who proved to be far more
-severe than Fitzroy. He and Lieutenant Hope were kindred spirits:
-cruelty seemed to be their delight, for at the presence of culprits
-tied to the gratings, a gleam of savage animation stole over their
-faces. Punishment was now an almost every-day scene; even the boys
-were not permitted to escape. A lad was appointed boatswain over
-them, and they were consigned to the care of Mr. Hope, who took
-especial delight in seeing them flogged. What a mean, dastardly
-spirit for a British officer! How utterly contemptible he appears
-engaged in whipping a few helpless sailor boys! Yet thus he did
-constantly appear, causing them to be flogged for every trifling
-offence. One poor little fellow, unable to tolerate the thought of
-the lash, hid himself in the cable tier for several days. He was
-discovered, only to be most shamefully punished.
-
-These severities filled our crew with discouragement. A sailor
-dreads the dishonor of the lash. Some, urged by a nice sense of
-honor, have preferred death to its endurance. I have heard of one
-man who actually loaded himself with shot and deliberately walked
-overboard. Among our ship’s company the effects of these severe
-measures showed themselves in frequent desertions, notwithstanding
-the great risk run by such a bold measure; for, if taken, they were
-sure to meet with a fearful retribution. Still, many preferred the
-chance of freedom; some ran off when on shore with the boats, others
-dropped overboard in the night, and either swam on shore or were
-drowned. Many others were kept from running away by the strength of
-their attachment to their old messmates and by the hope of better
-days. Of those who escaped, some were retaken by the Portuguese,
-who delighted to hunt them up for a small sum of money. Two of my
-messmates, named Robert Bell and James Stokes, were taken in this
-manner. I felt greatly affected at losing their company, for they
-were pleasant fellows. I felt a peculiar attachment to poor Stokes;
-he had taught me many things which appertain to seamanship, and had
-cared for my interests with the faithfulness of a parent. O how
-anxiously did I desire they might not be detected, because I knew,
-if they were, that they were doomed men. But they were taken by a
-band of armed Portuguese; barefooted, desponding, broken in spirit,
-they were brought on board, only to be put in irons immediately. By a
-fortunate chance they escaped with _fifty_ lashes, instead of being
-flogged through the fleet.
-
-We had another man who escaped, named Richard Suttonwood; he was very
-profane, and was much in the habit of using the word “bloody;” hence
-he was nicknamed “Bloody Dick” by his shipmates. Well, Dick ran off.
-He succeeded in getting on board an English brig in the merchant
-service. But how chop-fallen was poor Dick when he found that this
-brig was laden with powder for his own frigate! Resolving to make the
-best of the matter, he said nothing of his relation to our frigate,
-but as soon as the brig dropped alongside of the _Macedonian_, he
-came on board and surrendered himself; by this means he escaped
-being flogged, as it was usual to pardon a runaway who voluntarily
-returned to his duty. The crew were all delighted at his return, as
-he was quite popular among them for his lively disposition and his
-talents as a comic singer, which last gift is highly prized in a man
-of war. So joyous were we all at his escape from punishment, that we
-insisted on his giving a concert, which went off well. Seated on a
-gun surrounded by scores of the men, he sung a variety of favorite
-songs, amid the plaudits and _encores_ of his rough auditors.
-
-By such means as these, sailors contrive to keep up their spirits
-amidst constant causes of depression and misery. One is a good
-singer, another can spin tough forecastle yarns, while a third can
-crack a joke with sufficient point to call out roars of laughter. But
-for these interludes, life in a man of war, with severe officers,
-would be absolutely intolerable; mutiny or desertion would mark the
-voyages of every such ship. Hence, officers in general highly value
-your jolly, merry-making, don’t-care sort of seamen. They know the
-effect of their influence in keeping away discontented thought from
-the minds of a ship’s company. One of these official favorites paid
-our frigate a visit while we lay in Lisbon. We had just finished
-breakfast, when a number of our men were seen running in high glee
-towards the main hatchway. Wondering what was going forward, I
-watched their proceedings with a curious eye. The cause of their joy
-soon appeared in the person of a short, round-faced, merry-looking
-tar, who descended the hatchway amid cries of “Hurrah! here’s happy
-Jack!” As soon as the jovial little man had set his foot on the berth
-deck, he began a specimen of his vocal powers. The voice of song was
-as triumphant on board the _Macedonian_, as it was in days of yore
-in the halls of Ossian. Every voice was hushed, all work was brought
-to a standstill, while the crew gathered round their favorite,
-in groups, to listen to his unequalled performances. Happy Jack
-succeeded, while his visit lasted, in communicating his own joyous
-feelings to our people, and they parted from him at night with deep
-regret.
-
-A casual visitor in a man of war, beholding the song, the dance, the
-revelry of the crew, might judge them to be happy. But I know that
-these things are often resorted to, because they feel miserable,
-just to drive away dull care. They do it on the same principle as
-the slave population in the South, to drown in sensual gratification
-the voice of misery that groans in the inner man--that lives within,
-speaking of the indignity offered to its high nature by the chain
-that eats beyond the flesh--discoursing of the rights of man, of
-liberty on the free hills of a happier clime: while amidst the gayest
-negro dance, not a heart among the laughing gang but would beat with
-high emotions and seize the boon with indescribable avidity, should
-it be offered its freedom on the spot. So in a man of war, where
-severe discipline prevails, though cheerfulness smiles at times, it
-is only the forced merriment of minds ill at ease; minds that would
-gladly escape the thraldom of the hated service to which they are
-bound.
-
-Nor is this forced submission to circumstances universal. There are
-individuals who cannot be reached by these pleasantries; in spite of
-everything, their spirits will writhe under the gripe of merciless
-authority. We had a melancholy instance of this species of mind on
-board our frigate. His name was Hill, the ward-room steward. This
-man came on board with a resolute purpose to give satisfaction, if
-possible, to his superiors. He tried his utmost in vain. He was still
-scolded and cursed, until his condition seemed unendurable. One
-morning a boy entered the after ward-room, when the first object that
-met his astonished eye was the body of the steward, all ghastly and
-bleeding. He had cut his throat, and lay weltering in his gore. The
-surgeon was called, who pronounced him to be yet alive. The wound was
-sewed up, the poor sufferer carried to the hospital-ship, which was
-in attendance on the fleet, where he recovered, to be returned to
-his former ship, though in another and worse capacity, that of common
-sailor.
-
-We had on board a colored man whose name was Nugent, who possessed
-a remarkably fine person, was very intelligent, exceedingly polite
-in his manners, and easy in his address. He soon grew weary of the
-caprices of our officers, and ran away. He was taken, however, in
-rather a curious manner. The officers frequently walked the deck with
-their spy-glasses. As one of them was spending a few leisure moments
-in looking at the surrounding shipping, what should appear within
-the field of his glass, but the person of the fugitive Nugent on the
-deck of an American vessel! Upon this, a boat was despatched, which
-soon returned with the crestfallen deserter, who was unceremoniously
-thrown into irons. By some fortunate chance, however, he escaped a
-flogging.
-
-Of course, my situation was as unpleasant as that of any other
-person on board. I could not witness the discomfort and ill-usage
-of others, without trembling for my own back. I, too, had thoughts
-of running away, as opportunities frequently offered themselves.
-But, being ignorant of the Portuguese language, I wisely concluded
-that my condition among them, if I got clear, would, in respect to
-my present state, bear about the same analogy as the fire does to
-the frying-pan. My little adventures on shore gave me full assurance
-of this fact. I remember going ashore on Good Friday. Like good
-Catholics, the Portuguese had the masts of their vessels crossed,
-with effigies of the traitor Judas hanging very significantly at
-their jib-booms. On shore, they were exhibiting the blasphemous
-mimicry of the solemn scene of the crucifixion. One was bearing
-the cross, another a sponge, a third the vinegar. The streets were
-crowded with images of the saints, to which all reverently bowed.
-Woe betide that sacrilegious wretch who refused this tribute to
-their darling images. He _was_ sure of being knocked down; he was
-_not_ sure of getting home alive. I was fain to yield my knees to
-save my skull; so for the time I was as good a Catholic as any of
-them, at least in the matter of bowing and crossing: it was done,
-however, with true Protestant mental reservation, and with a sincere
-determination to prefer my man-of-war’s life to a life in Portugal.
-
-On another occasion, some of our officers took me on shore to help
-them attend to some purchases. After following them a considerable
-distance, they gave me a small commission to execute, with directions
-to return to the ship as soon as it was attended to. This was no
-easy task, however: they had conducted me to a strange part of the
-city, and I knew scarcely a word of Portuguese. There I stood, then,
-surrounded only by foreigners, who neither understood my language
-nor I theirs. All I knew of my destination was, that our boat lay
-near the Fish-market; so, for Fish-market I inquired. Speaking in
-English, I asked the first man I met to direct me. He looked at me
-with the empty stare of an idiot, and passed on. To the next, I said,
-partly in broken Portuguese and partly in my own tongue, “John,”
-(they call everybody John, whose true name they do not know,) “do
-show me the fish-market.” He could not understand me; so, shrugging
-his shoulders, he said, “No entender Englis,” and passed on. I asked
-several others, but invariably received a shrug of the shoulder, a
-shake of the head, and a “no entender Englis,” for an answer. I grew
-desperate, and began to feel as if I had lost myself, when, to my
-unutterable satisfaction, I saw an English soldier. I ran up to him
-and said, “Good luck to you; do tell me where the fish-market is,
-for these stupid Portuguese, bad luck to them, can’t understand a
-word I say; but it is all, no entender Englis.” My countryman laughed
-at seeing my English temper ruffled, and placed me in the way of
-reaching the fish-market. I hurried thither, when, to my chagrin, the
-boats were all gone. Here, then, was another difficulty; for, though
-there were plenty of Portuguese boatmen, they could not understand
-which ship I wished to reach. Here, however, my fingers did what my
-tongue refused; our ship had its mainmast out, so, holding up two
-fingers and pointing to the mast, they at last comprehended me and
-conveyed me on board. Coming alongside, I gave them what I thought
-was right; but they and I differed in opinion on that point; they
-demanded more, with considerable bluster, but the sentry shouted,
-“Shove off there!” and pointed his musket at them. Whether they
-thought a reasonable fee, and a timely retreat, better than a contest
-which might give them the taste of a musket-ball, I cannot determine;
-at all events, I know that boat never left ship faster than theirs,
-when they beheld the gleam of the sentry’s musket flashing in their
-dark faces.
-
-Just after this adventure, I came very near being flogged, to my
-no small alarm. Happening on shore with two more of the officers’
-servants, named Yates and Skinner, we stayed so late, the ship’s
-boats had all gone off. Finding the boats gone, we strayed back into
-the city; night came on, and our return until morning was impossible.
-We had to wander about the city all night, in constant fear of
-being apprehended by the Portuguese as deserters. To prevent this
-no very desirable result, my comrades made me a midshipman; for the
-satisfactory reason, that if an officer was supposed to be in our
-company, no one would trouble us. The summary process by which I was
-inducted into my new station, was by means of a stripe carefully
-marked on my collar with a piece of chalk, to imitate the silver
-lace on a middy’s coat. Thus exalted, I marched my company about
-Lisbon until dawn, when I again found myself the self-same Samuel
-Leech, servant to the surgeon of H. M. frigate _Macedonian_, that
-I was the previous evening, with this additional fact, however, I
-was now liable to be flogged. So, in the true spirit of a _Jeremy
-Sneak_, we went on board, where, with due ceremony, we were parted
-for separate examinations. What tale my fellow-wanderers invented, I
-know not; for my own part, I told the truth of the matter, excepting
-that I suppressed that part of it which related to my transformation
-into an officer. Luckily for us all, one of the party was the first
-lieutenant’s servant; if he flogged one, he must flog the whole. To
-save the back of his own boy, he let us all escape.
-
-We were now ordered on another cruise. Being in want of men, we
-resorted to the press-gang which was made up of our most loyal men,
-armed to the teeth; by their aid we obtained our full numbers. Among
-them were a few Americans; they were taken without respect to their
-protections, which were often taken from them and destroyed. Some
-were released through the influence of the American consul; others,
-less fortunate, were carried to sea, to their no small chagrin.[4]
-
-The duties of the press-gang completed, we once more weighed anchor,
-and were soon careering before the gales of the bay of Biscay. Our
-reception in this proverbially stormy bay was by no means a civil
-one. We met with an extraordinarily severe gale, in which we came
-very near foundering. We had just finished dinner, when a tremendous
-sea broke over us, pouring down the hatchway, sweeping the galley of
-all its half-cooked contents, then being prepared for the officers’
-dinner, and covering the berth deck with a perfect flood. It seemed
-as if old Neptune really intended that wave to sink us to Davy Jones’
-locker. As the water rolled from side to side within, and the rude
-waves without beat against her, our good ship trembled from stem
-to stern, and seemed like a human being gasping for breath in a
-struggle with death. The women (there were several on board) set up
-a shriek, a thing they had never done before; some of the men turned
-pale; others cursed and tried to say witty things; the officers
-started; orders ran along the ship to man the chain-pumps, and to cut
-holes through the berth deck to let the water into the hold. These
-orders being rapidly obeyed, the ship was freed from her danger. The
-confusion of the moment was followed by laughing and pleasantries.
-That gale was long spoken of as one of great danger.
-
-It is strange that sailors, who see so much peril, should treat
-religion with such neglect as it is usual for them to do. When danger
-is imminent, they send up a cry for help; when it is past, they
-rarely return a grateful thank-offering. Yet how truly and eloquently
-has the Psalmist shown, in the 107th Psalm, what should be the moral
-effect of the wonders of the deep. What but a deep-rooted spiritual
-perversity prevents such an effect?
-
-The next incident that disturbed the monotony of our sea-life, was of
-a melancholy character. We had been giving chase to two West Indiamen
-the whole of one Sabbath afternoon; at night it blew so hard we
-had to reef top-sails; when a poor fellow, named John Thomson, was
-knocked from the yard. In falling, he struck some part of the ship,
-and the wave which opened to receive him, never disclosed his form
-again. He was a pressed man, an American by birth, greatly beloved
-by his messmates, by whom his death was as severely felt as when a
-member of a family dies on shore. His loss created a dull and gloomy
-atmosphere throughout the ship: it was several days before the hands
-regained their wonted elasticity of mind and appearance.
-
-My recollections of this cruise are very feeble and indistinct,
-owing to a severe injury which confined me to my hammock nearly
-the whole period. The accident which ended in a severe illness had
-its origin in the following manner. The duty of cleaning knives,
-plates, dish-covers, &c., for the ward-room, devolved alternately on
-the boys employed in the ward-room. Having finished this task, one
-day, in my regular turn, the ward-room steward, a little hot-headed
-Malay, came to me at dinner-time to inquire for the knives. Not
-recollecting for the moment, I made no reply; when he angrily pushed
-me over a sack of bread. In falling my head came in contact with
-the corner of a locker. Feeling much pain, and the blood flowing
-freely, I went to Mr. Marsh, the surgeon’s mate, who dressed it,
-and bade me take care of it. Probably it would have healed speedily
-but for the freak of a sailor a few days after, while holy-stoning
-the decks. By holy-stoning, I mean cleaning them with stones, which
-are used for this purpose in men of war. These stones are, some of
-them, large, with a ring at each end with a rope attached, by which
-it is pulled backwards and forwards on the wet decks. These large
-stones are called holy bibles; the smaller hand ones are also called
-holy-stones, or prayer-books, their shape being something like a
-book. After the decks are well rubbed with these stones, they are
-wiped dry with swabs made of rope-yarns. By this means the utmost
-cleanliness is preserved in the ship. It was customary in our ship,
-during this scrubbing process, for the boys to wash themselves in
-a large tub provided for the purpose on the main deck. The men
-delighted in sousing us with water during this operation. After
-being wounded, as just mentioned, I endeavored to avoid their briny
-libations; but one morning, one of the sailors, seeing my anxiety,
-crept slily up behind me, and emptied a pail of water directly
-over my head. That night I began both to look and to feel sick. My
-messmates said I was sea-sick, and laughed at me. Feeling violent
-pains in my head, ears and neck, I felt relieved when it was time
-to turn in. The next morning, being rather behind my usual time in
-waiting upon the surgeon, he began to scold me. I told him I was
-unwell. He felt my pulse, examined my tongue, and excused me. Growing
-worse, my messmates got down my hammock. I entered it very sick; my
-head and face swelling very large, and my eyes so sunken I could
-scarcely see.
-
-I remained in this sad situation several weeks, carefully attended by
-the surgeon, and watched by the men as tenderly as their rough hands
-could perform the office of nurse. My destiny was considered as being
-sealed, both by the crew and by myself. I was much troubled at the
-thought of dying: it seemed dark and dreary to enter the valley of
-the shadow of death without the presence of a Saviour. To relieve my
-feelings, I frequently repeated the Lord’s prayer, taught me by my
-indulgent mother in my earlier and brighter years. But my mind was
-dark and disconsolate; there were none among that kind-hearted but
-profligate crew to point my soul to its proper rest.
-
-While lying in this state, my life hanging in a doubtful balance, one
-of the crew, named Black Tom, an African, was taken sick. His hammock
-was hung up in the sick bay, a part of the main deck appropriated to
-hospital purposes. Poor Tom, having a constitution already undermined
-by former excesses, soon fell under the attack of disease. He was
-then sewed up in his hammock, with some shot at his feet: at sundown
-the ship’s bell pealed a melancholy note, the ship was “hove to,”
-all hands mustered on deck, but myself; and, amid the most profound
-silence, the body of the departed sailor was laid upon the grating
-and launched into the great deep, the resting-place of many a bold
-head. A plunge, a sudden opening in the water, followed by an equally
-sudden return of the disparted waves, and Black Tom was gone forever
-from his shipmates! In a few moments the yards were braced round, and
-our frigate was cutting her way again through the wide ocean waste.
-It seemed to me that she was soon destined to heave to again, that I
-might also be consigned to an ocean grave. But in this I was happily
-disappointed. By the blessing of a watchful Providence, the aid of
-a sound constitution, assisted by the skill of our surgeon and the
-kindness of my shipmates, I was at last able to leave my hammock.
-Shortly after our return to Lisbon, I was pronounced fit for duty,
-and the surgeon having obtained another boy, I was placed on the
-quarter deck, in the capacity of messenger, or errand boy for the
-captain and his officers.
-
-With my return to active life, came my exposure to hardships, and,
-what I dreaded still more, to punishment. Some of the boys were to be
-punished on the main deck; the rest were ordered forward to witness
-it, as usual. Being so far aft that I could not hear the summons,
-as a matter of course, I remained at my post. The hawk-eye of the
-lieutenant missed me, and in a rage he ordered me to be sent for to
-receive a flogging for my absence. Excuse was vain; for, such was the
-fiendish temper of this brutal officer, he only wanted the shadow of
-a reason for dragging the poor helpless boys of his charge to the
-grating. While I stood in trembling expectation of being degraded
-by the hated cat, a summons from the captain providentially called
-off our _brave_ boy-flogger, and I escaped. The _offence_ was never
-mentioned afterwards. The reader can easily perceive how such a
-constant exposure to the lash must embitter a seaman’s life.
-
-Already, since the _Macedonian_ had been in commission, had she
-changed captains twice. Why it so happened, it is not in my power
-to explain; but while at Lisbon, after the cruise last mentioned,
-our present captain was superseded by Captain John S. Carden. His
-arrival excited a transitory hope of a brighter lot, as he was an
-older man than the others, and, as we vainly trusted, a kinder one.
-Here, however, we were mistaken; he was like all the rest, the same
-heartless, unfeeling lover of whip discipline. At first the men under
-sentence tried their powers at flattery with the grave old man; but
-he was too experienced a sea-dog to be cajoled by a long-faced sailor
-under sentence: when, therefore, they told him he was a kind-hearted
-_fatherly_ gentleman, he only replied by a most provoking laugh, and
-by saying they were a set of very undutiful sons.
-
-Captain Carden was mercilessly severe in punishing theft. He would
-on no account forgive any man for this crime, but would flog the
-thief almost to death. Of this, we soon had a cruel instance. A
-midshipman named Gale, a most rascally, unprincipled fellow, found
-his pocket handkerchief in possession of one of the crew. He charged
-the man with stealing it. It was in vain that the poor wretch
-asserted that he found it under his hammock. He was reported as a
-thief; a court-martial sat upon him, and returned the shamefully
-disproportionate sentence of three hundred lashes through the fleet,
-and one year’s imprisonment! Any of my shipmates who are living, will
-certify to the truth of this statement, brutal and improbable as it
-may appear.
-
-Nor was that sentence a dead letter; the unhappy man endured it to
-the letter. Fifty were laid on alongside of the _Macedonian_, in
-conformity with a common practice of inflicting the most strokes
-at the first ship, in order that the gory back of the criminal may
-strike the more terror into the crews of the other ships. This poor
-tortured man bore two hundred and twenty, and was pronounced by the
-attending surgeon unfit to receive the rest. Galled, bruised, and
-agonized as he was, he besought him to suffer the infliction of the
-remaining eighty, that he might not be called to pass through the
-degrading scene again; but this prayer was denied! He was brought on
-board, and when his wounds were healed, the captain, Shylock-like,
-determined to have the whole pound of flesh, ordered him to receive
-the remainder.
-
-But for my desire to present the reader with a true exhibition of
-life on board a British man of war, it would be my choice to suppress
-these disgusting details of cruelty and punishment. But this is
-impossible; I must either draw a false picture or describe them. I
-choose the latter, in the hope that giving publicity to these facts
-will exert a favorable influence on the already improving discipline
-of ships of war.
-
-The case of our ship’s drummer will illustrate the hopelessness of
-our situation under such officers as commanded our ship; it will
-show that implicit, uncomplaining submission was our only resource.
-This drummer, being seized up for some petty offence, demanded, what
-no captain can refuse, to be tried by a court-martial; in the hope,
-probably, of escaping altogether. The officers laughed among each
-other, and when, a few days afterwards, the poor, affrighted man
-offered to withdraw the demand and take six dozen lashes, they coolly
-remarked, “The drummer is sick of his bargain.” He would have been
-a wiser man had he never made it; for the court-martial sentenced
-him to receive two hundred lashes through the fleet:--a punishment
-ostensibly for his first offence, but really for his insolence (?) in
-demanding a trial by court-martial. Such was the administration of
-justice (?) on board the _Macedonian_.
-
-“Why did not your crew rise in resistance to such cruelty?” is a
-question which has often been proposed to me, when relating these
-facts to my American friends. To talk of mutiny on shore is an easy
-matter; but to excite it on shipboard is to rush on to certain death.
-Let it be known that a man has dared to breathe the idea, and he is
-sure to swing at the yard-arm. Some of our men once saw six mutineers
-hanging at the yard-arm at once, in a ship whose crew exhibited
-the incipient beginnings of mutiny. Let mutiny be successful, the
-government will employ its whole force, if needful, in hunting
-down the mutineers; their blood, to the last drop, is the terrible
-retribution it demands for this offence. That demand is sure to be
-met, as was the case with the crew of the _Hermione_[5] frigate, and
-with the crew of the ill-fated _Bounty_, whose history is imprinted
-on the memory of the whole civilized world. With such tragedies
-flitting before our eyes, who need ask why we did not resist?
-
-Just before we left Lisbon for another cruise, my position was
-once more changed by my appointment to the post of servant to the
-sailing-master; whose boy, for some offence or other, was flogged and
-turned away. Here, too, the captain procured a fine band, composed
-of Frenchmen, Italians and Germans, taken by the Portuguese from a
-French vessel. These musicians consented to serve, on condition of
-being excused from fighting, and on a pledge of exemption from being
-flogged. They used to play to the captain during his dinner hour;
-the party to be amused usually consisting of the captain and one
-or two invited guests from the ward-room; except on Sundays, when
-he chose to honor the ward-room with his august presence. The band
-then played for the ward-room. They also played on deck whenever we
-entered or left a port. On the whole, their presence was an advantage
-to the crew, since their spirit-stirring strains served to spread
-an occasional cheerful influence over them. Soon after they came on
-board, we had orders to proceed to sea again on another cruise.
-
-[Illustration: (Decorative Separator)]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
-
-A few days after we had fairly got out to sea, the thrilling cry of
-“A man overboard!” ran through the ship with electrical effect; it
-was followed by another cry of, “Heave out a rope!” then by still
-another, of “Cut away the life buoy!” Then came the order, “Lower
-a boat!” Notwithstanding the rapidity of these commands, and the
-confusion occasioned by the anticipated loss of a man, they were
-rapidly obeyed. The ship was then hove to. But that time, however,
-the cause of all this excitement was at a considerable distance from
-the ship. It was a poor Swede, named Logholm, who, while engaged in
-lashing the larboard anchor stock, lost his hold and fell into the
-sea. He could not swim; but, somehow, he managed to keep afloat until
-the boat reached him, when he began to sink. The man at the bow ran
-his boat hook down, and caught the drowning man by his clothes: his
-clothes tearing, the man lost his hold, and the Swede once more sunk.
-Again the active bowsman ran the hook down, leaning far over the
-side; fortunately, he got hold of his shirt collar: dripping, and
-apparently lifeless, they drew him into the boat. He was soon under
-the surgeon’s care, whose skill restored him to animation and to
-life. It was a narrow escape!
-
-Rising one morning, I heard the men talking about having been called
-to quarters during the night. They said a strange vessel having
-appeared, the drums beat to quarters, the guns were got ready, those
-great lanterns, which are placed on the main deck, called battle
-lanterns, were got out, and the officers began to muster the men
-at each division; when they discovered the supposed vessel of war
-to be nothing more than a large merchant ship. Upon this the hands
-were sent below. All this was news to me; I had slept through all
-the noise, confusion and bustle of the night, utterly ignorant of
-the whole matter. It was fortunate for me that the real character of
-the strange ship was discovered before my name was called, otherwise
-the morning would have found me at the gratings under punishment.
-Never was boy happier than myself, when made acquainted with my
-hair-breadth escape from the lash.
-
-We had now reached the island of Madeira, occupied by the Portuguese,
-and producing fine oranges, grapes and wine. It is some sixty
-miles in length, about forty in breadth; the climate is hot,
-but salubrious; its harbor, or rather roadstead, is by no means
-commodious or safe--so that our stay was short. Here, the Portuguese
-lad who had supplied my place as servant to the surgeon, was sent on
-shore, for attempting a crime unfit to be mentioned in these pages,
-but quite common among the Spaniards and Portuguese. My old master
-made an effort to obtain me again, but did not succeed.
-
-Sailing from Madeira, we next made St. Michael’s. At this pace
-we had an increase to our crew, in the person of a fine, plump
-boy--born to the wife of one of our men. The captain christened the
-new comer, Michael, naming him after the island. This birth was
-followed by another. Whether the captain did not like the idea of
-such interesting episodes in sea life, or whether any other motive
-inspired him, I cannot tell; but when, shortly after, we returned
-to Lisbon, he ordered all the women home to England, by a ship
-just returning thither. Before this, however, one of our little
-Tritons had died, and found a grave under the billows, leaving its
-disconsolate mother in a state little short of distraction. A man of
-war is no place for a woman.
-
-Short cruises are very popular with man-of-war’s men. On many
-accounts they love being in harbor; on others they prefer being at
-sea. In harbor they have to work all day, but in return for this they
-have the whole night for sleep. At sea, the whole time is divided
-into five watches of four hours each, and two shorter ones, called
-dog watches, of two hours each, or from four to six and from six to
-eight, P. M. The design of these dog watches is to alternate the
-time, so that each watch may have a fair proportion of every night
-below.
-
-While at our station this time, our old friend, Bob Hammond, met with
-some little difficulty, which we will here make matter of record.
-He was below, and one of his messmates did something that vexed him
-exceedingly. Now Bob was not a man to bear vexations tamely, where he
-had the power to resist them; so, lifting his huge fist, he struck at
-the offender; missing his real opponent, the blow fell upon another
-who stood near him. Bob was too much of a bully to offer any apology;
-he merely laughed, and remarked that he had “killed two birds with
-one stone.”
-
-Whether the bird, who, in Bob’s figurative language, was killed,
-did not like being called a bird, or whether he conceived a strong
-dislike to being a mark for Bob to shoot at, is not for me to
-say; but he certainly disliked the one or the other, for the next
-morning he reported the matter to the officers, which complaint was
-considered a most unsailor-like act by the whole crew.
-
-Fighting was a punishable offence, so Bob was called up the next
-morning. The captain mentioned what was reported concerning him. He
-acknowledged it was all true, and without any signs of contrition
-said, “I only killed two birds with one stone.” The angry captain
-ordered two dozen lashes to be laid on; it was done without extorting
-a sigh or a groan. He was then loosed from the grating, and
-questioned; but he merely replied, in a gruff tone, that “the man who
-reported him was a blackguard!” For this, he was seized up again and
-another dozen lashes inflicted; he bore them with the same dogged and
-imperturbable air. Finding it impossible to extort any acknowledgment
-from the stubborn tar, the captain ordered him below.
-
-About the same time one of our crew, named Jack Sadler, a fine,
-noble-hearted seaman, growing weary of the service, determined to
-desert. Dropping into the water, he began swimming towards the shore.
-It was not very dark, and he was discovered; the sentry was ordered
-to fire at him, which he did, but missed his prey. A boat was next
-lowered, which soon overtook and dragged him on board. The officer
-commanding the boat said, “Well, Mr. Sadler, you thought you had got
-away, did you?” “You are not so sure that you have me now,” replied
-Sadler, as he sprung over the side of the boat. Nor would they have
-captured him, had not another ship’s boat arrived to their assistance.
-
-The next day, he was seized up and received three dozen lashes,
-which, considering his offence, was a very light punishment. I
-suppose that his noble bearing, his lion-hearted courage, and his
-undaunted manner, produced a favorable feeling in the captain’s mind;
-especially as he afterwards became his favorite--a fancy man--as
-those men are called who win the favor of their superior officer.
-
-One of Sadler’s failings was that too prevalent evil among seamen,
-drunkenness. Soon after the above affair, he got drunk. Being seen
-by the captain, he was ordered to be put in irons. Sadler was Bob
-Hammond’s messmate; this worthy, finding his comrade in trouble,
-made himself drunk, and purposely placed himself in the way of the
-officers, that he might be put in irons also, to keep his friend
-Sadler company. The plan succeeded. Bob had his wish, and the two
-fearless tars were soon ironed together. Nothing daunted, they began
-to sing, and through the whole night they kept up such a hallooing,
-shouting and singing as might have served for a whole company of idle
-roysterers. Being near the ward-room, they prevented the officers
-from sleeping nearly all night.
-
-As usual, after being in irons, they were brought up for punishment
-the next morning. “Well, Mr. Sadler,” said the captain, “you were
-drunk, were you, last night?”
-
-“I was, sir,” replied the offender.
-
-Had he been any other man, he would have been ordered to strip: as it
-was, the captain proceeded,--
-
-“Do you feel sorry for it, sir?”
-
-“I do, sir.”
-
-“Will you try to keep sober if I forgive you?” continued Captain
-Carden.
-
-“I will try, sir.”
-
-“Then, sir, I forgive you:” and no doubt he was glad to witness that
-contrition in his favorite which made it consistent to forgive him.
-Having dismissed Sadler, he turned to Hammond: assuming a sterner
-look and a harsher voice, he said, in a tone of irony, “Well, Mr.
-Hammond, you got drunk last night, did you, sir?”
-
-Bob shrugged up his shoulders, and removed his enormous quid into a
-convenient position for speaking, and then replied, “I can’t say but
-that I had a horn of malt.”
-
-The captain looked thunder at the stalwart man, as he answered, “A
-horn of malt, you rascal! what do you call a horn of malt?”
-
-“When I was in Bengal, Madras, and Batavia,” said he, “I used to get
-some stuff called arrack--we used to call it a horn of malt; but this
-was some good rum.”
-
-Bob’s manner was so exquisitely ridiculous while delivering this
-harangue, that both officers and men broke out into an involuntary
-laugh. The captain looked confounded, but recovering himself, he said
-to Mr. Hope, the first lieutenant, “Put that rascal in irons; it is
-of no use to flog him.”
-
-One of the peculiarities of Captain Carden was an ardent desire to
-have a crew of picked, first-rate men. The shiftless, slovenly seaman
-was his abhorrence. Had he dared, he would gladly have given all
-such their discharge; as it was, he never attempted their recovery,
-by offering a reward for their detection, if they ran away; while he
-spared no pains to catch an able, active, valuable man like Sadler.
-He even gave these drones opportunity to escape, by sending them on
-shore at Lisbon, to cut stuff to make brooms for sweeping the deck.
-The men sent out on these expeditions were nicknamed “broomers.” Now,
-although Bob Hammond was as expert a sailor as any man in the ship,
-yet his unconquerable audacity made the captain fear his influence,
-and wish to get rid of him; hence, a few days after this drunken
-spree, Bob was called on deck to go with the broomers. “You may go,
-Mr. Hammond,” said the captain, eyeing him in a very expressive
-manner, “with these fellows to cut broom.”
-
-Bob understood the hint perfectly, and replied, “Aye, aye, sir,
-and I will cut a long handle to it.” I scarcely need remark that
-the broomers returned without Bob. Whether he remained on shore to
-cut the long handle, or for some other purpose, he never informed
-us: certain it is, however, that the presence of Bob Hammond never
-darkened the decks of the _Macedonian_ again.
-
-About this time the prevailing topic of conversation among our
-men and officers was the probability of a war with America. The
-prevailing feeling through the whole fleet was that of confidence
-in our own success, and of contempt for the inferior naval force of
-our anticipated enemies. Every man, and especially the officers,
-predicted, as his eye glanced proudly on the fine fleet which was
-anchored off Lisbon, a speedy and successful issue to the approaching
-conflict.
-
-We now received orders to sail to Norfolk, Virginia, with despatches.
-The voyage was accomplished without any occurrence of note. We found
-ourselves on the American coast, with no very pleasant impressions.
-It was late in the fall, and the transition from the mild, soft
-climate of Spain and Portugal, to the bleak, sharp atmosphere of the
-coast of Virginia, was anything but delightful.
-
-The most disagreeable duty in the ship was that of holy-stoning the
-decks on cold, frosty mornings. Our movements were never more elastic
-than when at this really severe task. As usual, it gave occasion to a
-variety of forecastle yarns about cold stations. Among these was one
-which was attested by many witnesses, and there can be no doubt of
-its truth:
-
-A British frigate was once stationed in a cold climate. The first
-lieutenant was a complete tyrant, delighting in everything that
-caused the crew to suffer. Among other things, he took especial care
-to make the work of holy-stoning as painful as possible, by forcing
-them to continue at it much longer than was necessary. Although he
-had no watch on deck, he would contrive to be up in season to annoy
-the men with his hated presence. One morning, the weather being
-unusually severe, the men sprang to their task with unwonted agility,
-and contrived to finish it before the appearance of their persecutor.
-To their vexation, however, just as they had completed their work, he
-bounced on deck, with a peremptory order to wash the decks all over a
-second time.
-
-The men dropped on their knees with the holy-stones, and prayed, as
-the tyrant went below, that he might never come on deck again alive.
-Whether God heard the cry of the oppressed crew, or whether it was
-the action of the ordinary natural laws, the reader must determine
-for himself; but when the lieutenant again appeared on deck, he was
-brought up “feet foremost,” to be buried. He was taken sick that
-morning: his disease baffled the skill of the surgeon, and in a few
-days he was a corpse. The opinion that he died a monument of the
-divine displeasure against cruel, hard-hearted men of power, and of
-disregard for the miseries and tears of the oppressed poor, is at
-least worthy of serious consideration.
-
-Soon after we had descried land, an American pilot came on board to
-pilot us into Hampton Roads. The sound of our own familiar tongue
-from a stranger, was very agreeable to men who had been accustomed to
-hear the semi-barbarous lingo of the Portuguese, and a thrill of home
-remembrances shot through our hearts, as, stepping on deck, the pilot
-exclaimed, “It is very cold!”
-
-While at anchor in Hampton Roads, we fared well. Boats were alongside
-every day with plenty of beef and pork, which was declared, by
-universal consent, to be infinitely superior to what we obtained from
-Portugal. Our men said that the Yankee pork would swell in the pot,
-which they very sagely accounted for on the supposition that the pigs
-were killed at the full of the moon. But I suppose that Virginia corn
-had more to do in this matter than lunar influences; though our men
-most doggedly maintained the contrary and more mystical opinion.
-
-The principal draw-back on the enjoyment of our stay at Norfolk, was
-the denial of liberty to go on shore. The strictest care was taken
-to prevent all communication with the shore, either personally or
-by letter. The reason of this prohibition was a fear lest we should
-desert. Many of our crew were Americans: some of these were pressed
-men; others were much dissatisfied with the severity, not to say
-cruelty, of our discipline; so that a multitude of the crew were
-ready to give “leg bail,” as they termed it, could they have planted
-their feet on American soil. Hence our liberty was restrained.
-
-Our officers never enjoyed better cheer than during our stay at this
-port. Besides feasting among themselves on the fine fat beef, geese
-and turkeys, which came alongside in abundance, they exchanged visits
-with Commodore Decatur and his officers, of the frigate _United
-States_, then lying at Norfolk. These visits were seasons of much
-wassail and feasting. I remember overhearing Commodore Decatur and
-the captain of the _Macedonian_ joking about taking each other’s
-ship, in case of a war; and some of the crew said that a bet of a
-beaver hat passed between them on the issue of such a conflict. They
-probably little thought that this joking over a wine-cup, would
-afterwards be cracked in earnest, in a scene of blood and carnage.
-
-It was at this port that the difficulty between the British ship
-_Leopard_ and the American frigate _Chesapeake_ took place. Several
-American seamen, having escaped from the former, took refuge on board
-the latter. The captain of the _Leopard_ demanded their restoration;
-the captain of the _Chesapeake_ refused submission to the demand. The
-_Leopard_ fired into the frigate, which, being of inferior force,
-struck to her opponent. As it was a time of peace, the _Chesapeake_
-was not kept as a prize; the claimed men were taken from her, and she
-was restored. This was among the circumstances which led to the war
-of 1812.
-
-The despatches delivered, and the object of the voyage accomplished,
-we once more put to sea; having first laid in a liberal store of our
-favorite beef, together with a quantity of Virginia beans, called
-Calavances, which were in high favor with our men. To those of our
-crew who were Americans, this was rather an unpleasant event. Like
-the fabled Tantalus, they had the cup at their mouths, but it receded
-before they could taste its contents. They had been at the threshold
-of “home, sweet home,” but had not been permitted to step within its
-doors. Some of them felt this very keenly, especially a boy, who
-belonged to New York, named Jesse Lloyd. In truth, it was a hard lot.
-
-A quick winter passage brought us to Lisbon, where the arrival of the
-English mail-bag, and orders to proceed to England with a convoy of
-merchantmen, put us all into a tolerably good humor.
-
-The arrival of the mail-bag is a season of peculiar interest on
-board a man of war. It calls the finer feelings of human nature into
-exercise. It awakens conjugal, fraternal, and filial affection
-in almost every breast. The men crowd around, as the letters are
-distributed, and he was pronounced a happy fellow whose name was
-read off by the distributor; while those who had none, to hide their
-disappointment, would jocularly offer to buy those belonging to their
-more fortunate messmates.
-
-During the two years of our absence I had received several letters
-from my mother, which afforded me much satisfaction. To these I had
-faithfully replied. I now experienced the advantage of the primary
-education I had received when a boy. Many of my shipmates could
-neither read nor write, and were, in consequence either altogether
-deprived of the privilege of intercourse with their friends, or were
-dependent on the kindness of others, to read and write for them. For
-these I acted as a sort of scribe. I also solaced many weary hours
-by reading such works as could be obtained from the officers; and
-sometimes I perused the Bible and prayer book which my mother so
-wisely placed in my chest, on the eve of my departure. The pack of
-cards, which so inappropriately accompanied them, I had loaned to
-one of the officers, who took the liberty to keep them. This was,
-perhaps, more fortunate than otherwise, since their possession might
-have led to their use, and their use might have excited a propensity
-to gambling, which would have ended in my ruin.
-
-After remaining a very short time at Lisbon, we one morning fired a
-gun to give notice to our convoy to get under weigh. Immediately the
-harbor was alive with noise and activity. The song of the sailors
-weighing anchor, the creaking of pulleys, the flapping of the sails,
-the loud, gruff voices of the officers, and the splashing of the
-waters, created what was to us, now that we were “homeward bound,”
-a sweet harmony of sounds. Amid all this animation, our own stately
-frigate spread her bellying sails to a light but favoring breeze;
-with colors flying, our band playing lively airs, and the captain
-with his speaking trumpet urging the lagging merchant-ships to more
-activity, we passed gaily through the large fleet consigned to our
-care. In this gallant style we scudded past the straggling ruins of
-old Lisbon, which still bore marks of the earthquake that destroyed
-it. Very soon the merry fishermen, who abound in the Tagus, were
-far at our stern. Next, we glided past the tall granite pinnacles
-of towering mount Cintra; the high-lands passed from our vision
-like the scenes in a panorama, and in a few hours, instead of the
-companionship of the large flocks of gulls, which abound in this
-river, we were attended by only here and there one of these restless
-wanderers of the deep. We were fairly at sea, and, what was the more
-inspiring, we were enjoying the luxury of fond anticipation. Visions
-of many an old fire-side, of many a humble hearth-stone, poor,
-but precious, flitted across the visions of our crew that night.
-Hardships, severe discipline, were for the time forgotten in the
-dreams of hope. Would that I could say that everything in every mind
-was thus absorbed in pleasure! There were minds that writhed under
-what is never forgotten. Like the scar, that time may heal, but not
-remove, the flogged man forgets not that he has been degraded; the
-whip, when it scarred the flesh, went farther; it wounded the spirit;
-it struck the _man_; it begat a sense of degradation he must carry
-with him to his grave. We had many such on board our frigate; their
-laugh sounded empty, and sometimes their look became suddenly vacant
-in the midst of hilarity. IT WAS THE WHIP ENTERING THE SOUL ANEW. But
-the most of our crew were, for the time, happy. They were homeward
-bound!
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
-
-After running a few days before a fair wind, the delightful cry of
-“Land ho!” was heard from the mast-head; a cry always pleasant to
-the inhabitant of a ship, but most especially so when the distant
-hills are those of his native land. Soon after the cry of the man
-aloft, the land became dimly visible from the deck, and our eyes
-glistened, as the bright, emerald fields of old England, in all the
-glory of their summer beauty, lay spread out before us. Ascending the
-British Channel, we soon made the spacious harbor of Plymouth, where
-we came to an anchor. One of our convoy, however, by some unskilful
-management, ran ashore at the mouth of the harbor, where she went to
-pieces.
-
-We found Plymouth to be a naval station of considerable importance,
-well fortified, possessing extensive barracks for the accommodation
-of the military, and having a magnificent dock-yard, abundantly
-supplied with the means of building and refitting the wooden walls.
-
-Nothing would have afforded me a higher gratification, than a trip
-to the pleasant fields and quiet hearth-sides of dear old Bladen. I
-longed to pour out my pent-up griefs into the bosom of my mother,
-and to find that sympathy which is sought in vain in the cold,
-unfeeling world. This privilege was, however, denied to all. No one
-could obtain either leave of absence or money, since a man of war is
-never “paid off” until just before she proceeds to sea. But, feeling
-heartily tired of the service, I wrote to my mother, requesting her
-to endeavor to procure my discharge. This, with the promptitude
-of maternal affection, she pledged herself to do at the earliest
-possible opportunity. How undying is a mother’s love!
-
-When a man of war is in port, it is usual to grant the crew
-occasional liberty to go on shore. These indulgences are almost
-invariably abused for purposes of riot, drunkenness and debauchery;
-rarely does it happen, but that these shore sprees end in bringing
-“poor Jack” into difficulty of some sort; for, once on shore, he is
-like an uncaged bird, as gay and quite as thoughtless. He will then
-follow out the dictates of passions and appetites, let them lead
-him whither they may. Still, there are exceptions; there are a few
-who spend their time more rationally. Were the principles of modern
-temperance fully triumphant among sailors, they would all do so.
-
-I resolved not to abuse my liberty as I saw others doing; so when,
-one fine Sabbath morning, I had obtained leave from our surly first
-lieutenant, I chose the company of a brother to a messmate, named
-Rowe, who lived at Plymouth. At the request of my messmate, I called
-to see him. He received me very kindly, and took me in company with
-his children into the fields, where the merry notes of the numerous
-birds, the rich perfume of the blooming trees, the tall, green
-hedges, and the modest primroses, cowslips and violets, which adorned
-the banks on the road-side, filled me with inexpressible delight.
-True, this was not the proper manner of spending a Sabbath day,
-but it was better than it would have been to follow the example of
-my shipmates generally, who were carousing in the tap-rooms of the
-public houses.
-
-At sunset I went on board and walked aft to the lieutenant, to report
-myself. He appeared surprised to see me on board so early and so
-perfectly sober, and jocosely asked me why I did not get drunk and
-be like a sailor. Merely smiling, I retired to my berth, thinking it
-was very queer for an officer to laugh at a boy for doing right, and
-feeling happy within myself because I had escaped temptation.
-
-By and by, three other boys, who had been ashore, returned, in a
-state which a sailor would call “three sheets in the wind.” They
-blustered, boasted of the high time they had enjoyed, and roundly
-laughed at me for being so unlike a man-of-war’s-man; while they felt
-as big as any man on board. The next morning, however, they looked
-rather chop-fallen, when the captain, who had accidentally seen their
-drunken follies on shore, ordered them to be flogged, and forbade
-their masters to send them ashore while we remained at Plymouth.
-Now, then, it was pretty evident who had the best cruise; the joke
-was on the other side; for while their drunken behavior cost them a
-terrible whipping and a loss of liberty, my temperance gained me the
-_real_ approbation of my officers, and more liberty than ever, since
-after that day I had to go on shore to do errands for their masters,
-as well as for my own. The young sailor may learn from this fact the
-benefit of temperance, and the folly of getting drunk, for the sake
-of being called a fine fellow.
-
-My frequent visits to the shore gave me many opportunities to run
-away; while my dislike of everything about the _Macedonian_ inspired
-me with the disposition to improve them. Against this measure my
-judgment wisely remonstrated, and, happily for my well being,
-succeeded. Such an attempt would inevitably have been followed by
-my recovery, since a handsome bounty was paid for the delivery of
-every runaway. There are always a sufficient number to be found
-who will engage in pursuit for the sake of money--such men as the
-Canadian landlord, described by Rev. Wm. Lighton, in his interesting
-narrative,[6] a work with which, no doubt, most of my readers are
-acquainted, since it has enjoyed an immense circulation. Endurance,
-therefore, was the only rational purpose I could form.
-
-Perhaps the hope of a speedy discharge, through my mother’s efforts,
-tended somewhat to this result in my case; besides, my situation
-had become somewhat more tolerable from the fact, that by dint of
-perseverance in a civil and respectful behavior, I had gained the
-good will both of the officers and crew. Yet, with this advantage, it
-was a miserable situation.
-
-There are few worse places than a man of war, for the favorable
-development of the moral character in a boy. Profanity, in its most
-revolting aspect; licentiousness, in its most shameful and beastly
-garb; vice, in the worst of its Proteus-like shapes, abound there.
-While scarcely a moral restraint is thrown round the victim, the
-meshes of temptation are spread about his path in every direction.
-Bad as things are at sea, they are worse in port. There, boat-loads
-of defiled and defiling women are permitted to come alongside; the
-men, looking over the side, select whoever best pleases his lustful
-fancy, and by paying her fare, he is allowed to take and keep her on
-board as his paramour, until the ship is once more ordered to sea.
-Many of these lost, unfortunate creatures are in the springtime of
-life, some of them are not without pretensions to beauty. The ports
-of Plymouth and Portsmouth are crowded with these fallen beings. How
-can a boy be expected to escape pollution, surrounded by such works
-of darkness? Yet, some parents send their children to sea because
-they are ungovernable ashore! Better send them to the house of
-correction.
-
-There is one aspect in which life at sea and life in port materially
-differ. At sea, a sense of danger, an idea of insecurity, is ever
-present to the mind; in harbor, a sense of security lulls the sailor
-into indulgence. He feels perfectly safe. Yet, even in harbor, danger
-sometimes visits the fated ship, stealing upon her like the spirit of
-evil. This remark was fearfully illustrated in the loss of the _Royal
-George_, which sunk at Spithead, near Portsmouth, on the 29th of
-August, 1782.
-
-This splendid line of battle ship of one hundred and eight guns, had
-arrived at Spithead. Needing some repairs, she was “_heeled down_,”
-or inclined on one side, to allow the workmen to work on her sides.
-Finding more needed to be done to the copper sheathing than was
-expected, the sailors were induced to heel her too much. While in
-this state, she was struck by a slight squall; the cannon rolled over
-to the depressed side; her ports were open, she filled with water,
-and sunk to the bottom!
-
-This dreadful catastrophe occurred about ten o’clock in the morning.
-The brave Admiral Kempenfeldt was writing in his cabin; most of the
-crew, together with some three hundred women, were between decks:
-these nearly all perished. Captain Waghorn, her commander, was saved;
-his son, one of her lieutenants, was lost. Those who were on the
-upper deck were picked up by the boats of the fleet, but nearly one
-thousand souls met with a sudden and untimely end. The poet Cowper
-has celebrated this melancholy event in the following beautiful lines:
-
- Toll for the brave!
- The brave that are no more!
- All sunk beneath the wave,
- Fast by their native shore.
-
- Eight hundred of the brave,
- Whose courage well was tried,
- Had made the vessel heel,
- And laid her on her side.
-
- A land breeze shook the shrouds,
- And she was overset;
- Down went the _Royal George_,
- With all her crew complete.
-
- Toll for the brave--
- Brave Kempenfeldt is gone,
- His last sea fight is fought--
- His work of glory done.
-
- It was not in the battle;
- No tempest gave the shock;
- She sprang no fatal leak;
- She ran upon no rock.
-
- His sword was in its sheath;
- His fingers held the pen,
- When Kempenfeldt went down,
- With twice four hundred men.
-
- Weigh the vessel up,
- Once dreaded by our foes!
- And mingle with our cup
- The tear that England owes.
-
- Her timbers yet are sound,
- And she may float again,
- Full charged with England’s thunder,
- And plough the distant main.
-
- But Kempenfeldt is gone,
- His victories are o’er;
- And he, and his eight hundred,
- Shall plough the wave no more.
-
-To return to my narrative: Our ship, having been at sea two years,
-needed overhauling. She was therefore taken into one of the splendid
-dry docks in the Plymouth dock-yard, while the crew were placed, for
-the time being, on board an old hulk. A week or two sufficed for
-this task, when we returned to our old quarters. She looked like a
-new ship, having been gaily painted within and without. We, too,
-soon got newly rigged; for orders had reached us from the Admiralty
-office to prepare for sea, and we were paid off. Most of the men laid
-out part of their money in getting new clothing; some of it went to
-buy pictures, looking-glasses, crockery ware, &c., to ornament our
-berths, so that they bore some resemblance to a cabin. The women were
-ordered ashore, and we were once more ready for sea.
-
-The practice of paying seamen at long intervals, is the source of
-many evils. Among these, is the opportunity given to pursers to
-practise extortion on the men--an opportunity they are not slow in
-improving. The spendthrift habits of most sailors leave them with a
-barely sufficient quantity of clothing, for present purposes, when
-they ship. If the cruise is long, they are, consequently, obliged to
-draw from the purser. This gentleman is ever ready to supply them,
-but at ruinous prices. Poor articles with high prices are to be
-found in his hands; these poor Jack must take of necessity, because
-he cannot get his wages until he is paid off. Hence, what with poor
-articles, high charges and _false_ charges, the purser almost always
-has a claim which makes Jack’s actual receipts for two or three
-years’ service, wofully small. Were he paid at stated periods, he
-could make his own purchases as he needed them. The sailor is aware
-of this evil, but he only shows his apprehension of it in his usually
-good-humored manner. If he sees a poor, ill-cut garment, he will
-laugh, and say it “looks like a purser’s shirt on a handspike.” These
-are small matters, but they go to make up the sum total of a seaman’s
-life, and should therefore be remedied as far as possible.
-
-Our preparations all completed, the hoarse voice of the boatswain
-rang through the ship, crying, “All hands up anchor, ahoy!” In a
-trice, the capstan bars were shipped, the fifer was at his station
-playing a lively tune, the boys were on the main deck holding on to
-the “nippers,” ready to pass them to the men, who put them round the
-“messenger” and cable; then, amid the cries of “Walk round! heave
-away, my lads!” accompanied by the shrill music of the fife, the
-anchor rose from its bed, and was soon dangling under our bows. The
-sails were then shaken out, the ship brought before the wind, and we
-were once more on our way to sea. We were directed to cruise off the
-coast of France this time; where, as we were then at war with the
-French, we were likely to find active service.
-
-We first made the French port of Rochelle; from thence, we sailed
-to Brest, which was closely blockaded by a large British fleet,
-consisting of one three-decker, with several seventy-fours, besides
-frigates and small craft. We joined this fleet, and came to an
-anchor in Basque Roads, to assist in the blockade. Our first object
-was to bring a large French fleet, greatly superior to us in size
-and numbers, to an engagement. With all our manœuvring, we could
-not succeed in enticing them from their snug berth in the harbor of
-Brest, where they were safely moored, defended by a heavy fort, and
-by a chain crossing the harbor, to prevent the ingress of any force
-that might be bold enough to attempt to cut them out. Sometimes we
-sent a frigate or two as near their fort as they dared to venture, in
-order to entice them out; at other times, the whole fleet would get
-under weigh and stand out to sea; but without success. The Frenchmen
-were either afraid we had a larger armament than was visible to them,
-or they had not forgotten the splendid victories of Nelson at the
-Nile and Trafalgar. Whatever they thought, they kept their ships
-beyond the reach of our guns. Sometimes, however, their frigates
-would creep outside the forts, when we gave them chase, but seldom
-went beyond the exchange of a few harmless shots. This was what our
-men called “boy’s play;” and they were heartily glad when we were
-ordered to return to Plymouth.
-
-After just looking into Plymouth harbor, our orders were
-countermanded, and we returned to the coast of France. Having
-accomplished about one half the distance, the man at the mast-head
-cried out, “Sail ho!”
-
-“Where away?” (what direction?) responded the officer of the deck.
-The man having replied, the officer again asked, “What does she look
-like?”
-
-“She looks small; I cannot tell, sir.”
-
-In a few minutes the officer hailed again, by shouting, “Mast-head,
-there! what does she look like?”
-
-“She looks like a small sail-boat, sir.”
-
-This was rather a novel announcement; for what could a small
-sail-boat do out on the wide ocean? But a few minutes convinced us
-that it was even so; for, from the deck, we could see a small boat,
-with only a man and a boy on board. They proved to be two French
-prisoners of war, who had escaped from an English prison, and, having
-stolen a small boat, were endeavoring to make this perilous voyage
-to their native home. Poor fellows! they looked sadly disappointed
-at finding themselves once more in British hands. They had already
-been in prison for some time; they were now doomed to go with us, in
-sight of their own sunny France, and then be torn away again, carried
-to England, and imprisoned until the close of the war. No wonder
-they looked sorrowful, when, after having hazarded life for home and
-liberty, they found both snatched from them in a moment, by their
-unlucky rencontre with our frigate. I am sure we should all have been
-glad to have missed them. But this is only one of the consequences of
-war.
-
-Having joined the blockading fleet again, we led the same sort of
-life as before: now at anchor, then giving chase; now standing in
-shore, and anon standing out to sea; firing, and being fired at,
-without once coming into action.
-
-Determined to accomplish some exploit or other, our captain ordered
-an attempt to be made at cutting out some of the French small craft
-that lay in shore. We were accustomed to send out our barges almost
-every night, in search of whatever prey they might capture. But on
-this occasion the preparations were more formidable than usual. The
-oars were muffled; the boat’s crew increased, and every man was
-armed to the teeth. The cots were got ready on board, in case any
-of the adventurers should return wounded. Cots are used to sleep in
-by ward-room officers and captains; midshipmen and sailors using
-hammocks. But a number of cots are always kept in a vessel of war,
-for the benefit of wounded men; they differ from a hammock, in
-being square at the bottom, and consequently more easy. The service
-on which the barge was sent being extremely dangerous, the cots
-were got ready to receive the wounded, should there be any; but
-notwithstanding these expressive preparations, the brave fellows
-went off in as fine spirits as if they had been going on shore for
-a drunken spree. Such is the contempt of danger that prevails among
-sailors.
-
-We had no tidings of this adventure until morning, when I was
-startled by hearing three cheers from the watch on deck; these were
-answered by three more from a party that seemed approaching us. I ran
-on deck just as our men came alongside with their bloodless prize--a
-lugger, laden with French brandy, wine and Castile soap. They had
-made this capture without difficulty; for the crew of the lugger made
-their escape in a boat, on the first intimation of danger. As this
-was our first prize, we christened her the _Young Macedonian_. She
-was sent to the admiral; but what became of her, I never heard.
-
-Before sending her away, however, the officers, having a peculiar
-itching for some of the brandy, took the liberty of replenishing
-their empty bottles from the hold. This, with true aristocratic
-liberality, they kept to themselves, without offering the smallest
-portion to the crew. Some of them showed, by their conduct
-afterwards, that this brandy possessed considerable strength. We
-had no further opportunity to signalize either ourselves or our
-frigate by our heroism at Brest; for we were soon after ordered back
-to Plymouth, where, for a short time, we lay at our old anchorage
-ground.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
-
-At Plymouth we heard some vague rumors of a declaration of war
-against America. More than this, we could not learn, since the utmost
-care was taken to prevent our being fully informed. The reason of
-this secrecy was, probably, because we had several Americans in our
-crew, most of whom were pressed men, as before stated. These men,
-had they been certain that war had broken out, would have given
-themselves up as prisoners of war, and claimed exemption from that
-unjust service, which compelled them to act with the enemies of
-their country. This was a privilege which the magnanimity of our
-officers ought to have offered them. They had already perpetrated a
-grievous wrong upon them in impressing them; it was adding cruelty
-to injustice, to compel their service in a war against their own
-nation. But the difficulty with naval officers is, that they do
-not treat with a sailor as with a _man_. They know what is fitting
-between each other as officers; but they treat their crews on
-another principle; they are apt to look at them as pieces of living
-mechanism, born to serve, to obey their orders, and administer to
-their wishes without complaint. This is alike a bad morality and a
-bad philosophy. There is often more real manhood in the forecastle
-than in the ward-room; and until the common sailor is treated _as a
-man_, until every feeling of human nature is conceded to him in naval
-discipline--perfect, rational subordination will never be attained in
-ships of war, or in merchant vessels. It is needless to tell of the
-intellectual degradation of the mass of seamen. “A man’s a man for a’
-that;” and it is this very system of discipline, this treating them
-as automatons, which keeps them degraded. When will human nature put
-more confidence in itself?
-
-Leaving Plymouth, we next anchored, for a brief space, at Torbay, a
-small port in the British Channel. We were ordered thence to convoy
-a huge East India merchant vessel, much larger than our frigate, and
-having five hundred troops on board, bound to the East Indies, with
-money to pay the troops stationed there. We set sail in a tremendous
-gale of wind. Both ships stopped two days at Madeira to take in wine
-and a few other articles. After leaving this island, we kept her
-company two days more; and then, according to orders, having wished
-her success, we left her to pursue her voyage, while we returned to
-finish our cruise.
-
-Though without any positive information, we now felt pretty certain
-that our government was at war with America. Among other things, our
-captain appeared more anxious than usual; he was on deck almost all
-the time; the “look-out” aloft was more rigidly observed; and every
-little while the cry of “Mast-head there!” arrested our attention.
-
-It is customary in men of war to keep men at the fore and main
-mast-heads, whose duty it is to give notice of every new object that
-may appear. They are stationed on the royal yards, if they are up,
-but if not, on the top-gallant yards: at night a look-out is kept on
-the fore-yard only.
-
-Thus we passed several days; the captain running up and down, and
-constantly hailing the man at the mast-head: early in the morning he
-began his charge “to keep a good look-out,” and continued to repeat
-it until night. Indeed, he seemed almost crazy with some pressing
-anxiety. The men felt there was something anticipated, of which they
-were ignorant; and had the captain heard all their remarks upon
-his conduct, he would not have felt very highly flattered. Still,
-everything went on as usual; the day was spent in the ordinary duties
-of man-of-war life, and the evening in telling stories of things most
-rare and wonderful; for your genuine old tar is an adept in spinning
-yarns, and some of them, in respect to variety and length, might
-safely aspire to a place beside the great magician of the north,
-Sir Walter Scott, or any of those prolific heads that now bring
-forth such abundance of fiction to feed a greedy public, who read as
-eagerly as our men used to listen. To this yarn-spinning was added
-the most humorous singing, sometimes dashed with a streak of the
-pathetic, which I assure my readers was most touching; especially one
-very plaintive melody, with a chorus beginning with,
-
- “Now if our ship should be cast away,
- It would be our lot to see old England no more,”
-
-which made rather a melancholy impression on my boyish mind, and
-gave rise to a sort of presentiment that the _Macedonian_ would
-never return home again; a presentiment which had its fulfilment in
-a manner totally unexpected to us all. The presence of a shark for
-several days, with its attendant pilot fish, tended to strengthen
-this prevalent idea.
-
-The Sabbath came, and it brought with it a stiff breeze. We usually
-made a sort of holiday of this sacred day. After breakfast it was
-common to muster the entire crew on the spar deck, dressed as the
-fancy of the captain might dictate; sometimes in blue jackets and
-white trousers, or blue jackets and blue trousers; at other times in
-blue jackets, scarlet vests, and blue or white trousers; with our
-bright anchor buttons glancing in the sun, and our black, glossy
-hats, ornamented with black ribbons, and with the name of our ship
-painted on them. After muster, we frequently had church service read
-by the captain; the rest of the day was devoted to idleness. But we
-were destined to spend the Sabbath, just introduced to the reader, in
-a very different manner.
-
-We had scarcely finished breakfast, before the man at the mast-head
-shouted, “Sail ho!”
-
-The captain rushed upon deck, exclaiming, “Mast-head there!”
-
-“Sir!”
-
-“Where away is the sail?”
-
-The precise answer to this question I do not recollect, but the
-captain proceeded to ask, “What does she look like?”
-
-“A square-rigged vessel, sir,” was the reply of the look-out.
-
-After a few minutes, the captain shouted again, “Mast-head there!”
-
-“Sir!”
-
-“What does she look like?”
-
-“A large ship, sir, standing toward us!”
-
-By this time, most of the crew were on deck, eagerly straining their
-eyes to obtain a glimpse of the approaching ship, and murmuring their
-opinions to each other on her probable character. Then came the voice
-of the captain, shouting, “Keep silence, fore and aft!” Silence being
-secured, he hailed the look-out, who, to his question of “What does
-she look like?” replied, “A large frigate, bearing down upon us, sir!”
-
-A whisper ran along the crew that the stranger ship was a Yankee
-frigate. The thought was confirmed by the command of “All hands clear
-the ship for action, ahoy!” The drum and fife beat to quarters;
-bulk-heads were knocked away; the guns were released from their
-confinement; the whole dread paraphernalia of battle was produced;
-and after the lapse of a few minutes of hurry and confusion, every
-man and boy was at his post, ready to do his best service for his
-country, except the band, who, claiming exemption from the affray,
-safely stowed themselves away in the cable tier. We had only one
-sick man[7] on the list, and he, at the cry of battle, hurried from
-his cot, feeble as he was, to take his post of danger. A few of the
-junior midshipmen were stationed below, on the berth deck, with
-orders, given in our hearing, to shoot any man who attempted to run
-from his quarters.
-
-Our men were all in good spirits; though they did not scruple to
-express the wish that the coming foe was a Frenchman rather than a
-Yankee. We had been told, by the Americans on board, that frigates in
-the American service carried more and heavier metal than ours. This,
-together with our consciousness of superiority over the French at
-sea, led us to a preference for a French antagonist.
-
-The Americans among our number felt quite disconcerted, at the
-necessity which compelled them to fight against their own countrymen.
-One of them, named John Card, as brave a seaman as ever trod a plank,
-ventured to present himself to the captain, as a prisoner, frankly
-declaring his objections to fight. That officer, very ungenerously,
-ordered him to his quarters, threatening to shoot him if he made
-the request again. Poor fellow! He obeyed the unjust command, and
-was killed by a shot from his own countrymen. This fact is more
-disgraceful to the captain of the _Macedonian_, than even the loss of
-his ship. It was a gross and a palpable violation of the rights of
-man.
-
-As the approaching ship showed American colors, all doubt of her
-character was at an end. “We must fight her,” was the conviction of
-every breast. Every possible arrangement that could insure success,
-was accordingly made. The guns were shotted; the matches lighted;
-for, although our guns were all furnished with first-rate locks, they
-were also provided with matches, attached by lanyards, in case the
-lock should miss fire. A lieutenant then passed through the ship,
-directing the marines and boarders, who were furnished with pikes,
-cutlasses, and pistols, how to proceed if it should be necessary to
-board the enemy. He was followed by the captain, who extorted the
-men to fidelity and courage, urging upon their consideration the
-well-known motto of the brave Nelson, “England expects every man to
-do his duty.” In addition to all these preparations on deck, some
-men were stationed in the tops with small-arms, whose duty it was
-to attend to trimming the sails, and to use their muskets, provided
-we came to close action. There were others also below, called sail
-trimmers, to assist in working the ship, should it be necessary to
-shift her position during the battle.
-
-My station was at the fifth gun on the main deck. It was my duty
-to supply my gun with powder, a boy being appointed to each gun in
-the ship on the side we engaged, for this purpose. A woollen screen
-was placed before the entrance to the magazine, with a hole in it,
-through which the cartridges were passed to the boys; we received
-them there, and covering them with our jackets, hurried to our
-respective guns. These precautions are observed to prevent the powder
-taking fire before it reaches the gun.
-
-Thus we all stood, awaiting orders, in motionless suspense. At last
-we fired three guns from the larboard side of the main deck; this was
-followed by the command, “Cease firing; you are throwing away your
-shot!”
-
-Then came the order to “wear ship,” and prepare to attack the enemy
-with our starboard guns. Soon after this I heard a firing from some
-other quarter, which I at first supposed to be a discharge from our
-quarter deck guns; though it proved to be the roar of the enemy’s
-cannon.
-
-A strange noise, such as I had never heard before, next arrested
-my attention; it sounded like the tearing of sails, just over our
-heads. This I soon ascertained to be the wind of the enemy’s shot.
-The firing, after a few minutes’ cessation, recommenced. The roaring
-of cannon could now be heard from all parts of our trembling ship,
-and, mingling as it did with that of our foes, it made a most hideous
-noise. By-and-by I heard the shot strike the sides of our ship;
-the whole scene grew indescribably confused and horrible; it was
-like some awfully tremendous thunder-storm, whose deafening roar is
-attended by incessant streaks of lightning, carrying death in every
-flash, and strewing the ground with the victims of its wrath: only,
-in our case, the scene was rendered more horrible than that, by the
-presence of torrents of blood which dyed our decks.
-
-Though the recital may be painful, yet, as it will reveal the horrors
-of war, and show at what a fearful price a victory is won or lost,
-I will present the reader with things as they met my eye during the
-progress of this dreadful fight. I was busily supplying my gun with
-powder, when I saw blood suddenly fly from the arm of a man stationed
-at our gun. I saw nothing strike him; the effect alone was visible;
-in an instant, the third lieutenant tied his handkerchief round the
-wounded arm, and sent the groaning wretch below to the surgeon.
-
-The cries of the wounded now rang through all parts of the ship.
-These were carried to the cockpit as fast as they fell, while those
-more fortunate men, who were killed outright, were immediately thrown
-overboard. As I was stationed but a short distance from the main
-hatchway, I could catch a glance at all who were carried below. A
-glance was all I could indulge in, for the boys belonging to the guns
-next to mine were wounded in the early part of the action, and I
-had to spring with all my might to keep three or four guns supplied
-with cartridges. I saw two of these lads fall nearly together. One
-of them was struck in the leg by a large shot; he had to suffer
-amputation above the wound. The other had a grape or canister shot
-sent through his ankle. A stout Yorkshireman lifted him in his arms,
-and hurried him to the cockpit. He had his foot cut off, and was thus
-made lame for life. Two of the boys stationed on the quarter deck
-were killed. They were both Portuguese. A man, who saw one of them
-killed, afterwards told me that his powder caught fire and burnt the
-flesh almost off his face. In this pitiable situation, the agonized
-boy lifted up both hands, as if imploring relief, when a passing shot
-instantly cut him in two.
-
-I was an eye-witness to a sight equally revolting. A man named
-Aldrich had one of his hands cut off by a shot, and almost at the
-same moment he received another shot, which tore open his bowels in
-a terrible manner. As he fell, two or three men caught him in their
-arms, and, as he could not live, threw him overboard.
-
-One of the officers in my division also fell in my sight. He was a
-noble-hearted fellow, named Nan Kivell.[8] A grape or canister shot
-struck him near the heart: exclaiming, “Oh! my God!” he fell, and was
-carried below, where he shortly after died.
-
-Mr. Hope, our first lieutenant, was also slightly wounded by a
-grummet, or small iron ring, probably torn from a hammock clew by a
-shot. He went below, shouting to the men to fight on. Having had his
-wound dressed, he came up again, shouting to us at the top of his
-voice, and bidding us fight with all our might. There was not a man
-in the ship but would have rejoiced had he been in the place of our
-master’s mate, the unfortunate Nan Kivell.
-
-The battle went on. Our men kept cheering with all their might.
-I cheered with them, though I confess I scarcely knew for what.
-Certainly there was nothing very inspiriting in the aspect of things
-where I was stationed. So terrible had been the work of destruction
-round us, it was termed the slaughter-house. Not only had we had
-several boys and men killed or wounded, but several of the guns were
-disabled. The one I belonged to had a piece of the muzzle knocked
-out; and when the ship rolled, it struck a beam of the upper deck
-with such force as to become jammed and fixed in that position. A
-twenty-four pound shot had also passed through the screen of the
-magazine, immediately over the orifice through which we passed
-our powder. The schoolmaster[9] received a death wound. The brave
-boatswain, who came from the sick bay to the din of battle, was
-fastening a stopper on a back-stay which had been shot away, when his
-head was smashed to pieces by a cannon-ball; another man, going to
-complete the unfinished task, was also struck down. Another of our
-midshipmen also received a severe wound. The unfortunate ward-room
-steward, who, the reader will recollect, attempted to cut his throat
-on a former occasion, was killed. A fellow named John, who, for some
-petty offence, had been sent on board as a punishment, was carried
-past me, wounded. I distinctly heard the large blood-drops fall pat,
-pat, pat, on the deck; his wounds were mortal. Even a poor goat, kept
-by the officers for her milk, did not escape the general carnage; her
-hind legs were shot off, and poor Nan was thrown overboard.
-
-Such was the terrible scene, amid which we kept on our shouting
-and firing. Our men fought like tigers. Some of them pulled off
-their jackets, others their jackets and vests; while some, still
-more determined, had taken off their shirts, and, with nothing but
-a handkerchief tied round the waistbands of their trousers, fought
-like heroes. Jack Sadler, whom the reader will recollect, was one of
-these. I also observed a boy, named Cooper, stationed at a gun some
-distance from the magazine. He came to and fro on the full run, and
-appeared to be as “merry as a cricket.” The third lieutenant cheered
-him along, occasionally, by saying, “Well done, my boy, you are worth
-your weight in gold.”
-
-I have often been asked what were my feelings during this fight. I
-felt pretty much as I suppose every one does at such a time. That
-men are without thought when they stand amid the dying and the dead,
-is too absurd an idea to be entertained a moment. We all appeared
-cheerful, but I know that many a serious thought ran through my
-mind: still, what could we do but keep up a semblance, at least, of
-animation? To run from our quarters would have been certain death
-from the hands of our own officers; to give way to gloom, or to show
-fear, would do no good, and might brand us with the name of cowards,
-and ensure certain defeat. Our only true philosophy, therefore,
-was to make the best of our situation, by fighting bravely and
-cheerfully. I thought a great deal, however, of the other world;
-every groan, every falling man, told me that the next instant I might
-be before the Judge of all the earth. For this, I felt unprepared;
-but being without any particular knowledge of religious truth, I
-satisfied myself by repeating again and again the Lord’s Prayer,
-and promising that if spared I would be more attentive to religious
-duties than ever before. This promise I had no doubt, at the time, of
-keeping; but I have learned since that it is easier to make promises
-amidst the roar of the battle’s thunder, or in the horrors of
-shipwreck, than to keep them when danger is absent, and safety smiles
-upon our path.
-
-While these thoughts secretly agitated my bosom, the din of battle
-continued. Grape and canister shot were pouring through our
-port-holes like leaden rain, carrying death in their trail. The
-large shot came against the ship’s side like iron hail, shaking her
-to the very keel, or passing through her timbers, and scattering
-terrific splinters, which did a more appalling work than even their
-own death-giving blows. The reader may form an idea of the effect
-of grape and canister, when he is told that grape shot is formed by
-seven or eight balls confined to an iron and tied in a cloth. These
-balls are scattered by the explosion of the powder. Canister shot
-is made by filling a powder canister with balls, each as large as
-two or three musket balls; these also scatter with direful effect
-when discharged. What then with splinters, cannon balls, grape and
-canister poured incessantly upon us, the reader may be assured
-that the work of death went on in a manner which must have been
-satisfactory even to the King of Terrors himself.
-
-Suddenly, the rattling of the iron hail ceased. We were ordered to
-cease firing. A profound silence ensued, broken only by the stifled
-groans of the brave sufferers below. It was soon ascertained that the
-enemy had shot ahead to repair damages, for she was not so disabled
-but she could sail without difficulty; while we were so cut up that
-we lay utterly helpless. Our head braces were shot away; the fore
-and main top-masts were gone; the mizzen mast hung over the stern,
-having carried several men over in its fall: we were in the state of
-a complete wreck.
-
-A council was now held among the officers on the quarter deck. Our
-condition was perilous in the extreme: victory or escape was alike
-hopeless. Our ship was disabled; many of our men were killed, and
-many more wounded. The enemy would without doubt bear down upon us
-in a few moments, and, as she could now choose her own position,
-would without doubt rake us fore and aft. Any further resistance was
-therefore folly. So, in spite of the hot-brained lieutenant, Mr.
-Hope, who advised them not to strike, but to sink alongside, it was
-determined to strike our bunting.[10] This was done by the hands of a
-brave fellow named Watson, whose saddened brow told how severely it
-pained his lion heart to do it. To me it was a pleasing sight, for I
-had seen fighting enough for one Sabbath; more than I wished to see
-again on a week day. His Britannic Majesty’s frigate _Macedonian_ was
-now the prize of the American frigate _United States_.
-
-Before detailing the subsequent occurrences in my history, I will
-present the curious reader with a copy of Captain Carden’s letter to
-the government, describing this action. It will serve to show how he
-excused himself for his defeat, as well as throw some light on those
-parts of the contest which were invisible to me at my station. My
-mother presented me with this document, on my return to England. She
-had received it from Lord Churchill, and had carefully preserved it
-for twenty years.
-
- “ADMIRALTY OFFICE, Dec. 29, 1812.
-
- Copy of a letter from Captain John Surman Carden, late commander of
- His Majesty’s ship the _Macedonian_, to John Wilson Croker, Esq.,
- dated on board the American ship _United States_, at sea, the 28th
- October, 1812:--
-
- “SIR: It is with the deepest regret, I have to acquaint you, for
- the information of my Lords Commissioners of the Admiralty, that
- His Majesty’s late ship _Macedonian_ was captured on the 25th
- instant, by the United States ship _United States_, Commodore
- Decatur commander. The detail is as follows:
-
- A short time after daylight, steering N. W. by W., with the wind
- from the southward, in latitude 29° N., and longitude 29° 30′
- W., in the execution of their Lordships’ orders, a sail was seen
- on the lee beam, which I immediately stood for, and made her out
- to be a large frigate, under American colors. At nine o’clock I
- closed with her, and she commenced the action, which we returned;
- but from the enemy keeping two points off the wind, I was not
- enabled to get as close to her as I could have wished. After an
- hour’s action, the enemy backed and came to the wind, and I was
- then enabled to bring her to close battle. In this situation I soon
- found the enemy’s force too superior to expect success, unless
- some very fortunate chance occurred in our favor; and with this
- hope I continued the battle to two hours and ten minutes; when,
- having the mizzen mast shot away by the board, topmasts shot away
- by the caps, main yard shot in pieces, lower masts badly wounded,
- lower rigging all cut to pieces, a small proportion only of the
- fore-sail left to the fore-yard, all the guns on the quarter deck
- and forecastle disabled but two, and filled with wreck, two also on
- the main deck disabled, and several shot between wind and water, a
- very great proportion of the crew killed and wounded, and the enemy
- comparatively in good order, who had now shot ahead, and was about
- to place himself in a raking position, without our being enabled
- to return the fire, being a perfect wreck and unmanageable log; I
- deemed it prudent, though a painful extremity, to surrender His
- Majesty’s ship; nor was this dreadful alternative resorted to till
- every hope of success was removed, even beyond the reach of chance;
- nor till, I trust their Lordships will be aware, every effort had
- been made against the enemy by myself, and my brave officers and
- men, nor should she have been surrendered whilst a man lived on
- board, had she been manageable. I am sorry to say our loss is very
- severe; I find by this day’s muster, thirty-six killed, three of
- whom lingered a short time after the battle; thirty-six severely
- wounded, many of whom cannot recover, and thirty-two slightly
- wounded, who may all do well; total, one hundred and four.
-
- The truly noble and animating conduct of my officers, and the
- steady bravery of my crew, to the last moment of the battle, must
- ever render them dear to their country.
-
- My first lieutenant, David Hope, was severely wounded in the head,
- towards the close of the battle, and taken below; but was soon
- again on deck, displaying that greatness of mind and exertion,
- which, though it may be equalled, can never be excelled. The third
- lieutenant, John Bulford, was also wounded, but not obliged to quit
- his quarters; second lieutenant, Samuel Mottley, and he deserves
- my highest acknowledgments. The cool and steady conduct of Mr.
- Walker, the master, was very great during the battle, as also that
- of Lieutenants Wilson and Magill, of the marines.
-
- On being taken on board the enemy’s ship, I ceased to wonder
- at the result of the battle. The _United States_ is built with
- the scantling of a seventy-four gun-ship, mounting thirty long
- twenty-four pounders (English ship-guns) on her main deck,
- and twenty-two forty-two pounders, carronades, with two long
- twenty-four pounders, on her quarter deck and forecastle, howitzer
- guns in her tops, and a travelling carronade on her upper deck,
- with a complement of four hundred and seventy-eight picked men.
-
- The enemy has suffered much in masts, rigging, and hull, above and
- below water. Her loss in killed and wounded I am not aware of; but
- I know a lieutenant and six men have been thrown overboard.
-
- JNO. S. CARDEN.
-
- To J. W. CROKER, Esq., Admiralty.”
-
-Lord Churchill sent the above letter, with a list of the killed and
-wounded annexed, to inform my mother that the name of her son was not
-among the number. The act shows how much he could sympathize with a
-mother’s feelings.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
-
-I now went below, to see how matters appeared there. The first
-object I met was a man bearing a limb, which had just been detached
-from some suffering wretch. Pursuing my way to the ward-room, I
-necessarily passed through the steerage, which was strewed with
-the wounded: it was a sad spectacle, made more appalling by the
-groans and cries which rent the air. Some were groaning, others were
-swearing most bitterly, a few were praying, while those last arrived
-were begging most piteously to have their wounds dressed next. The
-surgeon and his mate were smeared with blood from head to foot: they
-looked more like butchers than doctors. Having so many patients, they
-had once shifted their quarters from the cockpit to the steerage;
-they now removed to the ward-room, and the long table, round which
-the officers had sat over many a merry feast, was soon covered with
-the bleeding forms of maimed and mutilated seamen.[11]
-
-While looking round the ward-room, I heard a noise above, occasioned
-by the arrival of the boats from the conquering frigate. Very soon
-a lieutenant, I think his name was Nicholson,[12] came into the
-ward-room, and said to the busy surgeon, “How do you do, doctor?”
-
-“I have enough to do,” replied he, shaking his head thoughtfully;
-“you have made wretched work for us!” These officers were not
-strangers to each other, for the reader will recollect that the
-commanders and officers of these two frigates, had exchanged visits
-when we were lying at Norfolk, some months before.
-
-I now set to work to render all the aid in my power to the sufferers.
-Our carpenter, named Reed, had his leg cut off. I helped to carry him
-to the after ward-room; but he soon breathed out his life there, and
-then I assisted in throwing his mangled remains overboard. We got out
-the cots as fast as possible; for most of them were stretched out on
-the gory deck. One poor fellow who lay with a broken thigh, begged me
-to give him water. I gave him some. He looked unutterable gratitude,
-drank, and died. It was with exceeding difficulty I moved through the
-steerage, it was so covered with mangled men, and so slippery with
-streams of blood. There was a poor boy there crying as if his heart
-would break. He had been servant to the bold boatswain, whose head
-was dashed to pieces. Poor boy! he felt that he had lost a friend. I
-tried to comfort him by reminding him that he ought to be thankful
-for having escaped death himself.
-
-Here, also, I met one of my messmates, who showed the utmost joy at
-seeing me alive, for, he said, he had heard that I was killed. He was
-looking up his messmates, which he said was always done by sailors.
-We found two of our mess wounded. One was the Swede, Logholm, who
-fell overboard, as mentioned in a former chapter, and was nearly
-lost. We held him while the surgeon cut off his leg above the
-knee. The task was most painful to behold, the surgeon using his
-knife and saw on human flesh and bones, as freely as the butcher at
-the shambles does on the carcass of the beast! Our other messmate
-suffered still more than the Swede; he was sadly mutilated about the
-legs and thighs with splinters. Such scenes of suffering as I saw in
-that ward-room, I hope never to witness again. Could the civilized
-world behold them as they were, and as they often are, infinitely
-worse than on that occasion, it seems to me they would forever put
-down the barbarous practices of war, by universal consent.
-
-Most of our officers and men were taken on board the victor ship. I
-was left, with a few others, to take care of the wounded. My master,
-the sailing-master, was also among the officers, who continued in
-their ship. Most of the men who remained were unfit for any service,
-having broken into the spirit-room and made themselves drunk; some of
-them broke into the purser’s room and helped themselves to clothing;
-while others, by previous agreement, took possession of their dead
-messmates’ property. For my own part I was content to help myself to
-a little of the officers’ provisions, which did me more good than
-could be obtained from rum. What was worse than all, however, was the
-folly of the sailors in giving spirit to their wounded messmates,
-since it only served to aggravate their distress.
-
-Among the wounded, was a brave fellow named Wells. After the surgeon
-had amputated and dressed his arm, he walked about in fine spirits,
-as if he had received only a slight injury. Indeed, while under the
-operation, he manifested a similar heroism--observing to the surgeon,
-“I have lost my arm in the service of my country; but I don’t mind
-it, doctor, it’s the fortune of war.” Cheerful and gay as he was, he
-soon died. His companions gave him rum; he was attacked by fever and
-died. Thus his messmates actually killed him with kindness.
-
-We had all sorts of dispositions and temperaments among our crew.
-To me it was a matter of great interest to watch their various
-manifestations. Some who had lost their messmates appeared to care
-nothing about it, while others were grieving with all the tenderness
-of women. Of these, was the survivor of two seamen, who had formerly
-been soldiers in the same regiment; he bemoaned the loss of his
-comrade with expressions of profoundest grief. There were, also, two
-boatswain’s mates, named Adams and Brown, who had been messmates for
-several years in the same ship. Brown was killed, or so wounded that
-he died soon after the battle. It was really a touching spectacle
-to see the rough, hardy features of the brave old sailor streaming
-with tears, as he picked out the dead body of his friend from among
-the wounded, and gently carried it to the ship’s side, saying to
-the inanimate form he bore, “O Bill, we have sailed together in
-a number of ships, we have been in many gales and some battles,
-but this is the worst day I have seen! We must now part!” Here he
-dropped the body into the deep, and then, a fresh torrent of tears
-streaming over his weather-beaten face, he added, “I can do no more
-for you. Farewell! God be with you!” Here was an instance of genuine
-friendship, worth more than the heartless professions of thousands,
-who, in the fancied superiority of their elevated position in the
-social circle, will deign nothing but a silly sneer at this record of
-a sailor’s grief.
-
-The circumstance was rather a singular one, that in both the
-contending frigates the second boatswain’s mate bore the name of
-William Brown, and that they both were killed; yet such was the fact.
-
-The great number of the wounded kept our surgeon and his mate busily
-employed at their horrid work until late at night; and it was a long
-time before they had much leisure. I remember passing round the
-ship the day after the battle. Coming to a hammock, I found some
-one in it apparently asleep. I spoke; he made no answer. I looked
-into the hammock; he was dead. My messmates coming up, we threw the
-corpse overboard; that was no time for useless ceremony. The man
-had probably crawled to his hammock the day before, and, not being
-perceived in the general distress, bled to death! O War! who can
-reveal thy miseries!
-
-When the crew of the _United States_ first boarded our frigate, to
-take possession of her as their prize, our men, heated with the fury
-of the battle, exasperated with the sight of their dead and wounded
-shipmates, and rendered furious by the rum they had obtained from
-the spirit-room, felt and exhibited some disposition to fight their
-captors. But after the confusion had subsided, and part of our men
-were snugly stowed away in the American ship, and the remainder found
-themselves kindly used in their own, the utmost good feeling began
-to prevail. We took hold and cleansed the ship, using hot vinegar to
-take out the scent of the blood that had dyed the white of our planks
-with crimson. We also took hold and aided in fitting our disabled
-frigate for her voyage. This being accomplished, both ships sailed in
-company toward the American coast.
-
-I soon felt myself perfectly at home with the American seamen;
-so much so, that I chose to mess with them. My shipmates also
-participated in similar feelings in both ships. All idea that we
-had been trying to shoot out each other’s brains so shortly before,
-seemed forgotten. We ate together, drank together, joked, sung,
-laughed, told yarns; in short, a perfect union of ideas, feelings,
-and purposes, seemed to exist among all hands.
-
-A corresponding state of unanimity existed, I was told, among the
-officers. Commodore Decatur showed himself to be a gentleman as well
-as a hero in his treatment of the officers of the _Macedonian_. When
-Captain Carden offered his sword to the commodore, remarking, as he
-did so, “I am an undone man. I am the first British naval officer
-that has struck his flag to an American:” the noble commodore either
-refused to receive the sword, or immediately returned it, smiling
-as he said, “You are mistaken, sir; your _Guerrière_ has been taken
-by us, and the flag of a frigate[13] was struck before yours.” This
-somewhat revived the spirits of the old captain; but, no doubt,
-he still felt his soul stung with shame and mortification at the
-loss of his ship. Participating as he did in the haughty spirit of
-the British aristocracy, it was natural for him to feel galled and
-wounded to the quick, in the position of a conquered man.
-
-We were now making the best of our way to America. Notwithstanding
-the patched-up condition of the _Macedonian_,[14] she was far
-superior, in a sailing capacity, to her conqueror. The _United
-States_ had always been a dull sailer, and had been christened by the
-name of the Old Wagon. Whenever a boat came alongside of our frigate,
-and the boatswain’s mate was ordered to “pipe away” the boat’s crew,
-he used to sound his shrill call on the whistle, and bawl out, “Away,
-Wagoners, away,” instead of “away, _United States_ men, away.” This
-piece of pleasantry used to be rebuked by the officers, but in a
-manner that showed they enjoyed the joke. They usually replied,
-“Boatswain’s mate, you rascal, pipe away _United States_ men, not
-Wagoners. We have no wagoners on board of a ship.” Still, in spite
-of rebuke, the joke went on, until it grew stale by repetition.
-One thing was made certain however by the sailing qualities of the
-_Macedonian_; which was, that if we had been disposed to escape from
-our foe before the action, we could have done so with all imaginable
-ease. This, however, would have justly exposed us to disgrace, while
-our capture did not. There was every reason why the _United States_
-should beat us. She was larger in size, heavier in metal, more
-numerous in men, and stronger built than the _Macedonian_. Another
-fact in her favor was, that our captain at first mistook her for the
-_Essex_, which carried short carronades, hence he engaged her at
-long shot at first; for, as we had the weather gage, we could take
-what position we pleased. But this manœuvre only wasted our shot,
-and gave her the advantage, as she actually carried larger metal
-than we did. When we came to close action, the shot from the _United
-States_ went through and through our ship, while ours struck her
-sides, and fell harmlessly into the water. This is to be accounted
-for both by the superiority of the metal and of the ship. Her guns
-were heavier and her sides thicker than ours. Some have said that her
-sides were stuffed with cork. Of this, however, I am not certain.
-Her superiority, both in number of men and guns, may easily be
-seen by the following statistics. We carried forty-nine guns; long
-eighteen-pounders on the main deck, and thirty-two pound carronades
-on the quarter deck and forecastle. Our whole number of hands,
-including officers, men and boys, was three hundred. The _United
-States_ carried four hundred and fifty men and fifty-four guns: long
-twenty-four pounders on the main deck, and forty-two pound carronades
-on the quarter deck and forecastle. So that in actual force she was
-immensely our superior.
-
-To these should be added the consideration that the men in the two
-ships fought under the influence of different motives. Many of our
-hands were in the service against their will; some of them were
-Americans, wrongfully impressed, and inwardly hoping for defeat:
-while nearly every man in our ship sympathized with the great
-principle for which the American nation so nobly contended in the
-war of 1812. What that was, I suppose all my readers understand.
-The British, at war with France, had denied the Americans the right
-to trade thither. She had impressed American seamen, and forcibly
-compelled their service in her navy; she had violated the American
-flag by insolently searching their vessels for her runaway seamen.
-Free trade and sailors’ rights, therefore, were the objects contended
-for by the Americans. With these objects our _men_ could but
-sympathize, whatever our officers might do.
-
-On the other hand, the crew of our opponent had all shipped
-_voluntarily_ for the term of two years only; (most of our men were
-shipped for life.) They understood what they fought for; they were
-better used in the service. What wonder, then, that victory adorned
-the brows of the American commander? To have been defeated under such
-circumstances would have been a source of lasting infamy to any naval
-officer in the world. In the matter of fighting, I think there is
-but little difference in either nation. Place them in action under
-equal circumstances and motives, and who could predict which would
-be victor? Unite them together, they would subject the whole world.
-So close are the alliances of blood, however, between England and
-America, that it is to be earnestly desired, they may never meet in
-mortal strife again. If either will fight, which is to be deprecated
-as a crime and a folly, let it choose an enemy less connected by the
-sacred ties of consanguinity.
-
-Our voyage was one of considerable excitement. The seas swarmed with
-British cruisers, and it was extremely doubtful whether the _United
-States_ would elude their grasp, and reach the protection of an
-American port with her prize. I hoped most sincerely to avoid them,
-as did most of my old shipmates; in this we agreed with our captors,
-who wisely desired to dispose of one conquest before they attempted
-another. Our former officers, of course, were anxious for the sight
-of a British flag. But we saw none, and, after a prosperous voyage
-from the scene of conflict, we heard the welcome cry of “Land ho!”
-The _United States_ entered the port of New London; but, owing to a
-sudden shift of the wind, the _Macedonian_ had to lay off and on for
-several hours. Had an English cruiser found us in this situation, we
-should have been easily recovered; and, as it was extremely probable
-we should fall in with one, I felt quite uneasy, until, after several
-hours, we made out to run into the pretty harbor of Newport. We fired
-a salute as we came to an anchor, which was promptly returned by the
-people on shore.
-
-With a few exceptions, our wounded men were in a fair way to recover
-by the time we reached Newport. The last of them, who died of their
-wounds on board, was buried just before we got in. His name was
-Thomas Whittaker; he had been badly wounded by splinters. While he
-lived, he endured excessive torture. At last his sufferings rendered
-him crazy, in which sad state he died. He was sewed up in his
-hammock, by his messmates, and carried on a grating to the larboard
-bow port. There Mr. Archer, a midshipman of the _Macedonian_, read
-the beautiful burial service of the church of England. When he came
-to that most touching passage, “we commit the body of our brother
-to the deep,” the grating was elevated, and, amid the most profound
-silence, the body fell heavily into the waters. As it dropped
-into the deep, a sigh escaped from many a friendly bosom, and an
-air of passing melancholy shrouded many a face with sadness. Old
-recollections were busy there, calling up the losses of the battle;
-but it was only momentary. The men brushed away their tears, muttered
-“It’s no use to fret,” and things once more wore their wonted aspect.
-
-At Newport our wounded were carried on shore. Our former officers
-also left us here. When my master, Mr. Walker, took his leave of me,
-he appeared deeply affected. Imprinting a kiss on my cheek, the tears
-started from his eyes, and he bade me adieu. I have not seen him
-since.
-
-While we lay here, a few days, several of our men contrived to run
-away. I should have done so too, but for the vigilance of the prize
-officers, who were ordered to keep us, that we might be exchanged for
-those Americans who had fallen into British hands.
-
-After staying a short time in this port, we got under weigh and ran
-into New London. Here we fired a gun as a signal; it was answered
-by the _United States_, and both ships were presently sailing in
-company to New York. We found the Sound plentifully dotted with
-sloops, carrying passengers, for this was before the days of modern
-steamboating. After we reached Hurl-gate, vessels here gave us
-plenty of employment. Most of them honored us with three cheers, as
-they passed. Of course, the prize crew could do no less than cheer
-again, so that we passed our time amidst continued cheering. While
-here, we were favored with abundant visitors, curious to see the
-captive frigate. Finding these visitors extremely inquisitive, and
-being tolerably good-natured myself, I found a profitable business in
-conducting them about the ship, describing the action, and pointing
-out the places where particular individuals fell. For these services,
-I gained some money and more good will. The people who had been to
-see us, used to tell on shore how they had been on board of us, and
-how the English boy had conducted them over the ship, and told them
-the particulars of the fight. It soon became quite common for those
-who came to inquire “if I was the English boy that was taken in her.”
-This civility on my part was not without a motive; it was productive
-of profit, and I wanted money to aid me whenever I got clear, which I
-was fully determined to do, the first opportunity.
-
-To this step I was encouraged by our pilot, who brought us from New
-London, Mr. Tinker. He promised to take me as his apprentice, if I
-ran away. Also a gentleman who visited us told me to call at his
-house in Pearl street, and he would give me a dinner. Many others
-advised me to get away if possible. But I was so closely watched that
-my mind was haunted with fear, lest, after all, I should be sent
-back to England in the Cartel, which was expected every day for the
-release of the prisoners. To fail in the attempt, exposed me to the
-danger of being reported to the officer who might come for us, and
-thus I was liable to be flogged whenever I arrived in a British port.
-Great caution was therefore necessary in making the effort; since it
-was better not to try at all, than to fail of success.
-
-Christmas was now drawing near. The day before Christmas day, the
-Americans contrived to get well supplied with wine from a barrel
-they found below. As they had no funds, I bought my messmates some
-apples and a turkey, so that on the morrow they were quite taken up
-with feasting. We also had a great many visitors that day; many of
-them were ladies, and the officers got a chair out, which Captain
-Carden had rigged up, to lift ladies on board. It was made from an
-old hogshead, in the following manner. One head was knocked out and
-the barrel scooped out in front; a seat was then inserted, with a
-flag thrown over the whole; so that when it was lowered into a boat
-alongside, the lady had but to step in and throw the flag round her
-feet; in a trice, the chair was whipt upon deck by the halyards, when
-the lady could step out with perfect ease. This contrivance afforded
-a great deal of amusement, and kept the officers busily occupied in
-waiting upon their lady visitors. Now then, thought I, is my time for
-escape, or not at all. I had already made a friend of the American
-boatswain, Mr. Dawson, who promised to carry my clothes to New York,
-if I got clear. So, looking over the ship’s side, I saw a small
-colored boy in a boat. “Can you tell me,” said I, hailing him, “where
-I can get some geese and turkeys on shore for our officers?”
-
-“I guess you can at some of the houses,” responded the lad.
-
-“Well, then,” I continued, “will you set me ashore? I want to get
-some for our officers.”
-
-To this he replied, “Yes, if you will go and ask my master, who is on
-board your ship.”
-
-This was a damper on my young hopes, since it was not likely that his
-master would give permission. I went below, somewhat disconcerted.
-There I met a boy named James Day, two years younger than myself. I
-told him I was going to run away, and urged him to go with me. He
-declined at first, saying, “I have no money to pay my expenses.”
-
-“But I have money,” returned I, “and as long as I have a shilling,
-you shall have half of it.”
-
-“Besides,” continued he, “I am afraid we cannot get away without
-being caught, and so get a thorough flogging.”
-
-“Never mind that,” said I; “I have contrived that business.
-The boat’s waiting to set us ashore. Come along, Jim; don’t be
-frightened; ‘Nothing venture, nothing have,’ you know. Come, come,
-here’s the boat alongside.” At length he consented; we returned to
-the ship’s side, and told the boy his master was willing, provided
-he would make haste. We jumped into the boat, and were soon hurrying
-towards the shore, full of the hope of freedom.
-
-Never did my heart misgive me as it did when we were on our way to
-the shore; the voice of the boy’s master came echoing along the
-waves. “Where are you going with that boat?” he shouted. Recovering
-myself, I persuaded the boy he was only bidding him to make haste.
-So the lad replied, “I am going to get some geese, sir!” and pulled
-on. A few minutes more, and, to my unspeakable delight, I stood on
-American soil. Giving the boy a half dollar, we pushed on for New
-York, some ten miles distant.
-
-For this act of running away, I have never blamed myself; for the
-means by which it was effected, I have frequently done so. As the
-reader has seen, it was done at the expense of truth. I told several
-deliberate lies to the deceived boy in the boat. This is inexcusable,
-and the only palliation that can be offered is, my want of religious
-instruction. I was not then a Christian. Still, the act of lying was
-an offence before God, and no man should purchase his liberty at the
-price of a lie. He who saves his life at the cost of offending God,
-pays dearly for the purchase. I am thankful I have since learned this
-lesson, at the foot of the cross of Jesus Christ.
-
-Not having our “land legs” on, we soon became excessively fatigued.
-When within two or three miles of the city, we concluded to stop all
-night at a tavern on the road.
-
-The inmates looked somewhat surprised to see two sailor lads
-inquiring for lodgings; so I at once told them we were runaways from
-the captured frigate. This made them our friends! The evening passed
-quite pleasantly; we relating the particulars of the battle, and
-singing sea songs, and they listening with the utmost good humor.
-
-It seemed strange to us to find ourselves in a bed, after sleeping
-two years and a half in a hammock; nevertheless, we slept soundly,
-and to our inexpressible pleasure arose in the morning at our
-leisure, without being driven by the swearing boatswain at our heels.
-After breakfast, our generous host having refused to receive any
-payment for his hospitality, we set out for the city of New York.
-
-Here I very fortunately alighted on one of the crew of the
-_Macedonian_, named Fitzgibbons, who informed me that most of our men
-had been landed at New London, and confined as prisoners in an old
-barn; but that, not being over closely guarded, most of them had run
-away. He also introduced me to a sailors’ boarding-house, kept by a
-widow named Elms, near the old Fly Market in Front street.
-
-After spending a week in roving about the city, I heard a tremendous
-roaring of cannon in the harbor; it proceeded from the two
-frigates--which had dropped down from Hurl-gate and hauled up off the
-navy yard. What was more to my satisfaction, however, was the news
-that the Cartel had arrived and carried off the British crew, or,
-rather, the fragment that remained of them. Had I delayed my escape
-three days longer, instead of spending the rest of my days in America
-and in the American service, I should have been chained to the
-obnoxious discipline of the British navy. The reader may be assured
-that the narrowness of my escape very greatly enhanced the value I
-set upon my freedom.
-
-I now ventured on board the _Macedonian_ again to obtain my clothes.
-As I stepped on board, my mind misgave me, as Lieutenant Nicholson
-eyed me somewhat sternly; but I was reassured, when, kindly speaking,
-he informed me that the Cartel was gone, and I was safe. The sailors,
-also, congratulated me on my success in getting clear.
-
-The officers and crew were about to have a public dinner, and to
-visit the theatre in commemoration of their achievement. The sailors
-invited me to join them. To this I agreed. But overhauling my
-clothes, and contriving how I should appear as well as any shipmates,
-who were all going to have new suits for the occasion, the bright
-anchor buttons, which shone on my best suit, presented an insuperable
-objection. For how could I appear among them with the badge of the
-British service on my coat? This dilemma was removed, however, by
-the skill of my landlady, the widow, who very carefully covered the
-buttons with blue cloth.
-
-There was great excitement in New York, when the brave tars of the
-victorious _United States_, walked in triumphant procession through
-the streets, in the presence of countless citizens. First, came
-Captain Carden’s band, which had now shipped with Decatur; they were
-followed by the commodore and his officers, and these by the crew.
-At the City Hotel, all hands partook of a sumptuous dinner. This was
-followed by rather more than a usual amount of drinking, laughing,
-and talking; for as liquor was furnished in great abundance, the men
-could not resist the temptation to get drunk. As they left the room
-to go to the theatre, the poor plates on the sideboard proclaimed
-that “Jack was full three sheets in the wind.” Almost every one, as
-he passed, gave them a crack, crying out as they fell, “Save the
-pieces;” thus illustrating the old proverb, “When rum is in, wit is
-out.”
-
-The visit to the theatre passed off very much like the dinner, to
-wit, there was an abundance of shouting and cheering all the evening.
-After the close of the play, all hands scattered to see their
-friends, with orders to be on board next day. It was a week before
-they all returned.
-
-I was much struck with the appearance of Decatur that evening, as he
-sat in full uniform, his pleasant face flushed with the excitement of
-the occasion. He formed a striking contrast to the appearance he made
-when he visited our ship on the passage to New York. Then, he wore an
-old straw hat and a plain suit of clothes, which made him look more
-like a farmer than a naval commander.
-
-Never had men more friends than the crew of the _United States_ at
-this period. Every boarding-house was open to them; every merchant
-would trust them; every one was willing to lend them money. What was
-it that gained them such public favor? “O their victory, of course,”
-replies the reader. Stop; I will reveal the secret. They had some
-prize money coming to them in a few weeks! That was the key that
-unlocked coffers; the warmth that melted the heart; the spirit that
-clothed the face with smiles. But for that--THE PRIZE MONEY--poor
-Jack’s credit and favor would, as usual, have been below _par_.
-
-Of course, this profusion, this universal popularity, almost turned
-the brains of some of those old tars; and at every opportunity they
-would steal ashore for a spree. This brought them into trouble; it
-brought some of them to the gangway to be flogged. These floggings,
-however, were not very severe; they were rather a species of farce,
-enacted to preserve alive the forms of discipline. To avoid even
-these forms, the men were accustomed, after staying on a spree for
-several days, to visit the commodore’s lady, with some piteous tale,
-begging her to intercede for them with their captain. This she did
-with almost constant success. The lucky tar would then go on board,
-telling his messmates that she was the sailor’s friend, and using the
-usual saying in such cases, “Good luck to her--she has a soul to be
-saved.”
-
-By this time, the late crew of the _Macedonian_, or those of them who
-had not gone home with the Cartel, were pretty well scattered over
-the country. One of the marines, named Luke Oil, went to Springfield,
-Mass., where he was employed as a file-cutter by Colonel Lee, of the
-U. S. armory, at the rate of $75 per month. This prosperity, and an
-unfortunate marriage, led him into unsteady habits. He enlisted into
-the U. S. army; but growing sick of that, Colonel Lee procured his
-discharge. He afterwards enlisted again, which is the last I ever
-heard of Luke Oil. Two more of our marines, named Shipley and Taylor,
-also went to Springfield, and were employed by a Mr. Ames.
-
-Several of the others enlisted to serve in the fort at New London.
-One of these, whose name was Hawkins, was very highly esteemed for
-his excellence as a soldier, and was soon made sergeant. But being
-an inveterate drunkard, he lost his office, and was degraded to the
-ranks.
-
-I have a characteristic anecdote to record of Sadler, the messmate of
-Bob Hammond. He enlisted in the American army, and was quartered at
-Hartford. He was so delighted with everything American, that he had
-grown to be an enthusiast in his encomiums on the government, as was
-exhibited one day in a somewhat peculiar way. The company to which he
-belonged was marched to church, one Sabbath, to hear (I think it was)
-priest Strong.[15] The text was, “Fear God and honor the king.” This
-was too much for the newly-made American; and he put the congregation
-into a broad grin, by exclaiming aloud, “Don’t let us hear about the
-King, but about Congress.” The good people of Hartford would have
-pardoned this violation of Puritan propriety, if they had seen that
-brave fellow flogged, as I had, in the king’s service.
-
-Our fifer, Charles Robinson, also enlisted in the same regiment.
-Perhaps some of the inhabitants of Hartford still remember the
-soldier who amused them, during his stay, by playing on the bugle in
-the morning, from the top of the court-house. Robinson was perfect
-master of several instruments, especially the fife and the bugle.
-
-One of our boys, named William Madden, but better known in the
-_Macedonian_ by the nick-name of “Billy O’Rook,” from his practice of
-singing a song about that hero, enlisted in the army, and afterwards
-performed a signal service for his adopted country, at Sacket’s
-Harbor. The Americans were in full retreat before the British troops,
-whose general,[16] mounted on a superb charger, was at their head,
-shouting, “Huzza, my boys, the day is ours!” when young Madden
-rendered desperate by the certainty of being shot, if taken by his
-countrymen, deliberately aimed his rifle at the general. The shot
-struck him, he fell, and the British retreated. This brave lad
-lost his life in a subsequent action. I make this statement on the
-authority of Captain Badger, of Williamstown, Mass., confirmed by the
-testimony of several other persons.
-
-The reader has probably not forgotten the name of “Bloody Dick.” He
-shipped on board the _Hornet_, sloop of war, and with that vessel
-very narrowly escaped falling into the hands of the English. I met
-him afterwards in New York. He told me how he trembled during the
-chase, knowing that if captured he should be hung for entering the
-American service; the British having given express orders for a
-strict look-out after our crew, that they might make examples of them.
-
-Besides the men just mentioned, others of our crew shipped and
-wandered in every direction; some in men of war, some in merchant
-vessels; some, fearful of the risk of being retaken, settled ashore.
-In short, it is impossible to trace them, so variously did they
-diverge from each other. I have been particular in mentioning the
-history of a few, to gratify the parties, should they be living, and
-ever see my book; to confirm the reader in the truthfulness of my
-account, and to show some of the changes that followed in consequence
-of the victory of the _United States_ over the _Macedonian_. It
-would be an interesting task, were it possible, to trace out all the
-results of that victory. Having detained the reader thus long in
-following the fate of my shipmates, I will resume the record of my
-own in the following chapter.
-
-[Illustration: (Decorative Separator)]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-Nearly two weeks had passed since I left the _Macedonian_. I and my
-companion were living upon the sums I had saved from the presents I
-received for my civilities to her numerous visitors. One day, as I
-was sauntering round the wharves, with my protégé, I met a number of
-men-of-war’s men. Stepping up to them, I perceived some of the old
-_Macedonians_. Of course, I hailed them. They were glad to see me.
-They had shipped on board the _John Adams_, guard ship, to which they
-were returning, having been enjoying a few days’ liberty. Nothing
-would satisfy them, but for us to accompany them, and ship too. The
-midshipman who was with them, joined his entreaties to theirs, and we
-at last consented.
-
-To avoid being detected by the British, it was usual for our men to
-assume new names, and to hail from some American port, on shipping in
-an American vessel. My shipmates advised me to do the same. To this I
-had some objections, because I knew that changing my name would not
-make me a Yankee, while it might bring me into as awkward a position
-as it did an Irishman, who was found by an English cruiser on board
-an American vessel. After he had declared himself an American, the
-officer asked him, “What part of America did you come from?”
-
-“I used to belong to Philamadelph, but now I belong to Philama York,”
-replied Paddy, concealing his brogue as much as possible. “Well,”
-continued the officer, “can you say pease?”
-
-“Pase, sir,” said Pat in true Irish style. The officer laughed and
-replied, “Mr. Pase, you will please to get into the boat.” The poor
-Irishman was unsuccessful in playing the Yankee.
-
-Mentioning these fears, the midshipman said, “Call yourself William
-Harper, and hail from Philadelphia;” then turning to my companion, he
-added, “and call yourself James Wilson.”
-
-“But,” said I, “suppose the officer should ask any questions about
-Philadelphia, what should I do?”
-
-“O say you belong to Pine street.”
-
-“But what if he asks me in what part of the city Pine street is
-situated, and what streets join it?” I answered, determined not to
-take a step in the dark if I could avoid it.
-
-The midshipman assured me that no such questions would be put;
-and, partly confiding and partly doubting, I resolved to make the
-experiment. Going on board, we were paraded before the officers.
-Addressing me, one of them said, “Well, my boy, what is your name?”
-
-Mustering all the confidence I could command, I boldly answered,
-“William Harper, sir.”
-
-“What part of America do you belong to, my boy?”
-
-“Philadelphia, sir.”
-
-Here one of the officers smiled and remarked, “Ah, a townsman.” I
-trembled at hearing this, inwardly hoping that they would ask me
-no more questions. To my increased alarm, however, he continued by
-asking, “What street in Philadelphia?”
-
-“Pine street, sir,” said I, with the air of a man who feels himself
-drawn toward a crisis he cannot escape.
-
-“What street joins Pine street, my lad?” asked my tormentor, with a
-knowing laugh.
-
-This was a poser; for further than this my instructions had not
-proceeded. However, I rallied the little confidence which remained,
-and said, “I don’t remember, sir.”
-
-The officer who had claimed me as a townsman, mentioned the next
-street, and my examiner went on by asking me what street joined the
-one mentioned by the officer.
-
-My colors, which had fallen to half-mast before, were now fairly
-struck. I had to surrender at discretion; but thinking to get off
-with the honors of war, I answered, “Gentlemen, it is so long since I
-was in Philadelphia, I have forgotten all about it.”
-
-This point blank shot might have saved me, when, as if Providence had
-determined to make my attempt at lying a total failure, one of them
-detected a glittering anchor button, which had contrived to get rid
-of the covering placed over it by the fingers of the widow. Pointing
-it out to the others, he said, “Where did you get that English
-button? Did you pick it up in Philadelphia?”
-
-This was a shot which raked me fore and aft. I hauled down my colors
-and stood silent. The officers laughed heartily as one of them said,
-“Go below, my lad; you will make a pretty good Yankee.”
-
-Through all this procedure the reader will perceive how perfect was
-the disregard of truth among all parties, from my humble self to the
-officers, who were evidently rather pleased than otherwise at my
-attempt to pass for an American. Such an absence of moral rectitude
-is deplorable; it exhibits the unfitness of the parties for a mansion
-in His kingdom who is a God of truth: it lays the foundation for a
-mutual distrust and suspicion among men, and it leaves the offender
-to meet a fearful weight of responsibility in the day that shall try
-every man’s work. I am thankful that the influences of Christianity
-have fallen upon me since that time, in such abundance as to renew
-the spirit of my mind, and to fill me with abhorrence towards a
-violation of truth.
-
-The next morning I and my companion, who had escaped the ordeal
-that had proved too much for me, were summoned to go ashore to the
-rendezvous, that we might sign the ship’s articles; or, in sailor
-phrase, get shipped. The officer of the watch shouted, “Boatswain’s
-mate!”
-
-“Sir,” answered a deep, gruff voice.
-
-“Pipe away the cutter,” said the officer.
-
-“Aye, aye, sir.”
-
-“Pass the word for James Wilson and William Harper.”
-
-“Aye, aye, sir.”
-
-Then followed a loud, shrill whistle, accompanied with the cry of,
-“Away, there, cutters, away!” We were also summoned to appear,
-and told to take our seats in the cutter, which by this time lay
-alongside, manned by her crew of six men, who sat each with his
-oar elevated in the air, waiting the word of command. We were soon
-seated, the lieutenant passed the words, “Let fall, and give way;”
-the oars fell into the water with admirable precision, and away we
-flew towards the shore.
-
-On our way to the rendezvous, I told my companion I should not ship
-in the _John Adams_, because so many of the _Macedonians_ were
-already there, and it was impossible for us to pass for Americans.
-After some debate, we agreed together not to sign the articles. On
-entering the house where the stars and stripes were flying over the
-door, in token of its being the naval rendezvous, being anxious to
-have my friend Wilson pass the ordeal first, I affected to stumble,
-and then continued apparently engaged in fixing my shoe-string.
-“Well, my boy, what is your name? Just sign it here, will you?” said
-the officer.
-
-I took no notice, but remained very busy with my shoes. My shipmate
-replied in a low, bashful voice, “I don’t like to ship, sir.”
-
-“Very well, then go below,” said the officer. At this juncture,
-feeling encouraged by his remark, I looked up; when, to my
-discomfiture, the officer, fixing his eyes on my retreating
-companion, observed, “That fellow will certainly be hung;” meaning
-that he would get caught by the English. Then, addressing me, he
-said, “Now, my lad, just sign your name.”
-
-“Sir,” said I, “I had better not ship alone. The other boy is only
-frightened; let me talk to him a little, and I can persuade him to
-ship with me.”
-
-The shipping officer was too old a bird to be snared with such chaff
-as this. So, speaking rather sharply, he said, “Let him go, sir, and
-ship yourself; then he’ll come back and join you; and”--he smiled as
-he spoke--“I will let you come ashore to persuade him, in a day or
-two.”
-
-Still I pretended not to be convinced, and, after considerable
-debate, he let me off. Once more clear, I joined my young shipmate,
-and we proceeded together to our boarding-house, congratulating
-ourselves on our fortunate escape, as it appeared to us.
-
-Two weeks of idleness had nearly exhausted the little stock of
-funds I had picked up on board my old ship, and it was becoming
-necessary for me to find some means or other of supporting myself;
-for although the prim widow, with whom I boarded, was quite obliging
-while her bills were paid, it was altogether probable that she would
-become a little crusty if they should be neglected. At this crisis I
-fortunately met with an Englishman, who had visited our frigate at
-Hurl-gate. His name was Smith; he was a deserter from the British
-army; but was now settled in New York, as a boot-maker, in the
-employment of the firm of Benton & Co., Broadway. He offered to take
-me and initiate me into the art, science and secrets of boot-making.
-Seeing no better opportunity before me, I accepted his kind offer,
-and at once entered on my novitiate.
-
-Behold me then, kind reader, transformed from the character of a
-runaway British sailor, into that of a quiet scholar, at the feet
-of St. Crispin, where in the matter of awls, wax-ends, lapstones and
-pegs, I soon became quite proficient.
-
-It is altogether probable that the rest of my life would have glided
-away in this still and quiet manner, but for a report that reached
-me, one Sabbath, as I was wasting its precious hours in wandering
-about among the shipping. This was, that there was a tall, stout
-seaman on board the _United States_, named George Turner. From
-the name and description, I had no doubt that this was my cousin,
-who (the reader has not forgotten I presume) presented himself so
-unceremoniously to my aunt at Wanstead.
-
-This intelligence determined me to pay that frigate a visit. Going
-on board, I found her crew living in a complete Elysium of sensual
-enjoyment. They had recently received their prize money. Salt beef
-and pork were now rejected with disdain: Jack’s messkids smoked with
-more savory viands, such as soft tack (bread) and butter, fried eggs,
-sausages, &c.; the whole well soaked with copious streams of rum and
-brandy.
-
-Those of the crew who had been in the _Macedonian_, hailed me with a
-hearty welcome; those for whom I had bought the turkey and apples at
-Christmas repaid me fourfold, so that when I went ashore that night
-my purse was as heavy as on the afternoon when I quitted my ship.
-My cousin did not recognise me at first; but by referring him to
-his visit to my old abode, he at last felt satisfied that I was his
-cousin. He then charged me not to mention our relationship, because
-he wished to pass for an American. Having given me this charge, he
-surveyed me from head to foot, and then said, “What are you doing in
-New York?”
-
-“I am learning to make boots and shoes.”
-
-“I am sorry you are bound to a shoemaker,” said he; “I don’t like
-that business.”
-
-“I am not _bound_ to Mr. Smith, but can leave him when I please.”
-
-“Well, then,” he remarked thoughtfully, “I don’t want you to go to
-sea again. Go to Salem, in the state of Massachusetts. I have a wife
-and children there, and shall be at home in a few weeks.”
-
-This was a kind offer, and I at once agreed to take his advice. I
-had already grown somewhat weary with the confinement of my new
-mode of life, though, on the whole, considering my education, and
-the character of the influence exerted upon me in the _Macedonian_,
-I was a steady lad. Mr. Smith had left me pretty much to my own
-inclinations during the two months of my residence with him; yet my
-utmost misconduct had been the drinking of a little spirit, and the
-violation of the Sabbath by roaming about the docks and wharves. My
-Sabbath evenings I had usually spent in a more profitable manner, it
-being my habit to spend them at the Methodist chapel in Duane street.
-
-On returning to the house of my kind employer, I lost no time in
-communicating to him my change of purpose. He objected, and justly
-too, to be left just as the pains he had taken to instruct me were
-about to be requited by my usefulness. However, as I offered him five
-dollars, he consented to my departure.
-
-At that time there were no steamboats ploughing the waters of the
-Sound, so I engaged a steerage passage to Providence, for five
-dollars, on board a packet sloop, and, with a light heart and elastic
-step, carried my clothes-bag on board. Here, however, I met with a
-trifling loss. While ashore waiting for a fair wind, a negro, who had
-engaged a passage in the sloop, robbed my bag of several articles
-of wearing apparel, and took French leave. In consideration of this
-mishap, the captain exacted only three dollars passage-money. From
-Providence a stage, chartered exclusively by a party of sailors,
-conveyed me to Boston; from whence I soon reached the house of my
-cousin in Salem.
-
-Mrs. Turner received me with great kindness; indeed, she pretended
-not to be surprised at my visit, assigning as a reason the very
-satisfactory fact that she had seen me with my bag on my shoulder
-in the _grounds of a teacup_! She was a believer in fortune-telling
-and dreams, having, for aught I know, received her convictions as
-an heirloom from her witch-burning[17] ancestors. At any rate she
-was strongly confirmed in her favorite theory by my timely arrival;
-verifying, as it did, to the very particular of the bag on the
-shoulder, the truth-telling tea-grounds.
-
-She gave me another proof, after I had been there a few weeks, of
-the truthfulness and verity of dreams, by calling me up one morning,
-with an injunction to make haste to the post-office, for she had
-dreamed of catching fish. Sure enough, if she caught no fish in her
-dreams, she caught a very fine one in the letter I brought to her,
-for it contained a one hundred dollar bill from her husband, with
-information that his ship was blockaded in the port of New London by
-Commodore Hardy.
-
-Accident or curiosity, I forget which, led me to attend the religious
-services of the Baptists in Salem. They were enjoying a season of
-religious refreshing: several were baptized. The hymn beginning with
-the line--
-
- “Oh, how happy are they who their Saviour obey,”
-
-was sung as the converts came out of the water, and made a strong
-impression on my mind. Had some devoted Christian made himself
-acquainted with my feelings, and given me suitable advice, there is
-no doubt but that I should have been led to embrace the Lord Jesus
-Christ. How many divine impressions are destroyed, through lack of
-faithfulness in Christians!
-
-Perhaps the great reason why these serious impressions were so
-transient, was because the company I kept was so unfavorable to their
-growth. Most of my time was spent about the shipping: among these
-were many privateers, the profanity of whose crews was such that it
-had passed into a proverb. It was usual to say to a gross swearer,
-“You swear like a privateer’s-man.” Religion could not flourish in an
-atmosphere tainted by their vices.
-
-Among my favorite pursuits was that of fishing. Sometimes I went
-with mixed parties of males and females; at others, with a few
-sailor companions. One of these excursions came very near costing
-rather more than it was worth. We had been out all night; towards
-morning we thought we would get a little sleep, and for this purpose
-laid ourselves down under the top-gallant forecastle. Luckily for
-us, we had an old sailor, named Lewis Deal, on board. He had been
-quartermaster on board the _United States_. Knowing that the coast
-was strictly guarded by British cruisers, he kept awake. Just at dawn
-the _bang_ of a single gun led him to call us, saying, “There, I told
-you to look out for Johnny Bull.”
-
-Looking about us, we saw an English gun brig in chase after a
-Boston sloop. This was a sight that inspired us with a very sudden
-and wonderful agility, since we had a decided repugnance to a free
-passage in the aforesaid brig to Halifax; especially as in my case
-it might have the rather unpleasant termination of an airing at the
-yard-arm; which, for very strong reasons I chose to avoid if possible.
-
-By dint of strong arms and quick movements, we succeeded in
-hauling in our anchor and getting under weigh, without attracting
-the Englishman’s attention. Expecting a shot at our heels every
-moment, we sat breathlessly measuring our distance from the brig.
-Fortunately, we escaped notice, and reached Salem in safety.
-
-Shortly after this adventure, the good citizens of Salem were
-thrown into a high state of excitement by the noise of a heavy
-cannonading. A general rush took place from all quarters towards the
-Neck. I followed with the rest. We found it to be occasioned by the
-engagement between the _Chesapeake_ and _Shannon_, in compliance
-with a challenge, sent by the latter, which was accepted by Captain
-Lawrence, of the former. The result is well known. After a short
-action, the _Chesapeake_ struck to the _Shannon_, and was carried
-away by the victors, in triumph, to Halifax. One reason for the
-defeat of the American frigate, may perhaps be found in the fact that
-her crew were newly shipped; some of them were volunteer landsmen,
-while none of them had what sailors call their sea-legs on. No ship
-is fit for action until she has been at sea at least a month. In this
-action the captain, first lieutenant, and several men, were killed.
-Mr. George Crowninshield sent a vessel to Halifax for the bodies of
-those gallant officers; they were interred in Salem with naval honors.
-
-My cousin, having now reached home, was desirous to have me devote
-myself to some business. He proposed that of a sailmaker; but by this
-time I had quite a desire to go to sea again.
-
-The _Constitution_, the _Frolic_ sloop of war, and the gun brig
-_Siren_, were all shipping hands in Boston. My feelings inclined
-me towards old _Ironsides_; but my cousin, having sailed with
-Captain Parker,[18] of the _Siren_, recommended that officer so
-strongly, that I was induced to join his ship, in company with the
-quartermaster and several of the former hands of the _United States_.
-My cousin also overruled my design of shipping in a false name; so
-that, in defiance of my fears, I suffered myself to be entered as
-Samuel Leech, on the books of the U. S. brig _Siren_, of sixteen
-guns. The payment of three months’ advance, with the sum I brought
-with me from New York, enabled me honorably to discharge my board
-bills at my cousin’s, and to purchase a little clothing necessary to
-fit me for sea. I was then in the seventeenth year of my life.
-
-Once more in a man of war, my seriousness all vanished like mist
-before the sun. Alas, it was poor soil to nourish the seed of
-life! barren of everything that related to purity, religion, and
-immortality.
-
-My first impressions of the American service were very favorable. The
-treatment in the _Siren_ was more lenient and favorable than in the
-_Macedonian_. The captain and officers were kind, while there was
-a total exemption from that petty tyranny exercised by the upstart
-midshipmen in the British service. As a necessary effect, our crew
-were as comfortable and as happy as men ever are in a man of war.
-
-While we lay in Boston harbor, Thanksgiving-day arrived. Some of our
-Salem men inquired if I was not going home to keep Thanksgiving,
-for they all supposed I belonged to Salem. What they meant by
-Thanksgiving, was a mystery to me, but, dissembling my ignorance,
-I obtained leave, determined to learn what it meant. The result of
-my visit was the idea that Thanksgiving was one in which the people
-crammed themselves with turkeys, geese, pumpkin-pies, &c.; for,
-certainly, that was the chief business of the day, so far as I could
-perceive. With too many people, I believe that this is the leading
-idea associated with the day even now.
-
-Our brig had before this taken in her guns, consisting of two long
-nine-pounders, twelve twenty-four pound carronades, and two forty-two
-pounders. Our crew was composed of some one hundred and twenty-five
-smart, active men. We were all supplied with stout leather caps,
-something like those used by firemen. These were crossed by two
-strips of iron, covered with bearskin, and were designed to defend
-the head, in boarding an enemy’s ship, from the stroke of the
-cutlass. Strips of bearskin were likewise used to fasten them on,
-serving the purpose of false whiskers, and causing us to look as
-fierce as hungry wolves. We were also frequently exercised in the
-various evolutions of a sea-fight; first using our cannon, then
-seizing our cutlasses and boarding-pikes, and cutting to the right
-and left, as if in the act of boarding an enemy’s ship. Thus we
-spent our time from early in the fall until after Christmas, when we
-received orders to hold ourselves in readiness for sea.
-
-[Illustration: (Decorative Separator)]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
-
-As we lay waiting for our final orders, a report reached us that
-a large English brig of war, called the _Nimrod_, lay in a cove
-somewhere near Boston bay. Upon this information, our officers
-planned a night expedition for the purpose of effecting her capture.
-Our intended mode of attack was to run close alongside, pour a
-broadside upon her, and then, without further ceremony, board her,
-cutlass in hand. So we took in our powder, ground up our cutlasses,
-and towards night got under weigh. A change in the wind, however,
-defeated our designs, and we put into Salem harbor, with no other
-result than the freezing of a man’s fingers, which happened while we
-were furling our sails. Thus ended our first warlike expedition in
-the _Siren_.
-
-Shortly after this affair, we received orders to start on a cruise
-to the coast of Africa, and, in company with the _Grand Turk_,[19]
-a privateer, set sail from Salem. Passing the fort, we received the
-usual hail from the sentry, of “Brig ahoy! where are you bound to?”
-
-To this salutation the first lieutenant jocosely answered, “There,
-and back again, on a man of war’s cruise.” Such a reply would
-not have satisfied a British soldier; but we shot past the fort
-unmolested. After two days we parted company with the _Grand
-Turk_, and by the aid of a fair wind soon found ourselves in the
-Gulf Stream; where, instead of fearing frozen fingers, we could go
-bare-footed and feel quite comfortable.
-
-We now kept a sharp look-out at the mast-head, but met with nothing
-until we reached the Canary Islands, near which we saw a boat-load of
-Portuguese, who, coming alongside, talked in their native tongue with
-great noise and earnestness, but were no more intelligible to us than
-so many blackbirds.
-
-While off the African coast, our captain died. His wasted body was
-placed in a coffin, with shot to sink it. After the service had been
-read, the plank on which the coffin rested was elevated, and it
-slipped into the great deep. The yards were braced round, and we were
-under weigh again, when, to our surprise and grief, we saw the coffin
-floating on the waves. The reason was, the carpenter had bored holes
-in the top and bottom; he should have made them only in the top.
-
-After the funeral, the crew were called aft, and the first
-lieutenant, Mr. Nicholson,[20] told us that it should be left to
-our decision whether he should assume the command and continue the
-cruise, or return home. We gave him three hearty cheers, in token of
-our wish to continue the cruise. He was a noble-minded man, very kind
-and civil to his crew; and the opposite, in every respect, to the
-haughty, lordly captain with whom I first sailed in the _Macedonian_.
-Seeing me one day with rather a poor hat on, he called me aft and
-presented me with one of his own, but little worn. “Good luck to
-him,” said I, in sailor phrase, as I returned to my messmates; “he
-has a soul to be saved.” We also lost two of our crew, who fell
-victims to the heat of the climate.
-
-One morning the cry of “Sail ho!” directed our attention to a strange
-sail, which had hove to, with her courses hauled up. At first, we
-took her for a British man-of-war brig. The hands were summoned to
-quarters, and the ship got ready for action. A nearer approach,
-however, convinced us that the supposed enemy, was no other than our
-old friend, the _Grand Turk_. She did not appear to know us; for no
-sooner did she see that our craft was a brig of war, than, supposing
-us to belong to Johnny Bull, she crowded all her canvas, and made the
-best of her way off. Knowing what she was, we permitted her to escape
-without further alarm.
-
-The first land we made was Cape Mount. The natives came off to a
-considerable distance in their canoes, clothed in nothing but a piece
-of cloth fastened round the waist, and extending downward to the
-feet. As we approached the shore, we saw several fires burning; this,
-we were told, in the broken English spoken by our sable visitors,
-was the signal for trade. We bought a quantity of oranges, limes,
-cocoanuts, tamarinds, plantains, yams and bananas. We likewise took
-in a quantity of cassava, a species of ground root, of which we made
-tolerable pudding and bread; also a few hogs and some water.
-
-We lay here several days looking out for any English vessels that
-might come thither for purposes of trade.
-
-Meanwhile, we began to experience the inconvenience of a hot climate.
-Our men were all covered with blotches or boils, probably occasioned
-by so sudden a transition from extreme cold to extreme heat. What
-was worse than this, was the want of a plentiful supply of water. In
-the absence of this, we were placed on an allowance of two quarts
-per diem, to each man. This occasioned us much suffering; for, after
-mixing our Indian for puddings, our cassava for bread, and our whisky
-for grog, we had but little left to assuage our burning thirst. Some,
-in their distress, drank large quantities of sea water, which only
-increased their thirst and made them sick; others sought relief in
-chewing lead, tea-leaves, or anything which would create moisture.
-Never did we feel more delighted than when our boat’s crew announced
-the discovery of a pool of fine clear water. We received it with
-greater satisfaction than ever prodigal did tidings of the death of
-some rich old relative, to whose well-laden purse he was undisputed
-heir. We could have joined in the most enthusiastic cold-water song
-ever sung by either hermit or Washingtonian.[21]
-
-While cruising along the coast, we one night perceived a large ship
-lying at anchor near the shore. We could not decide whether she was
-a large merchantman or a man of war; so we approached her with the
-utmost caution. Our doubts were soon removed, for she suddenly loosed
-all her sails and made chase after us. By the help of their glasses,
-our officers ascertained her to be an English frigate. Of course, it
-was folly to engage her; so we made all the sail we could carry, beat
-to quarters, lighted our matches, and lay down at our guns, expecting
-to be prisoners of war before morning. During the night we hung out
-false lights, and altered our course; this baffled our pursuer; in
-the morning she was no more to be seen.
-
-The next sail we made was not so formidable. She was an English
-vessel at anchor in the Senegal river. We approached her and hailed.
-Her officer returned an insolent reply, which so exasperated our
-captain that he passed the word to fire into her, but recalled it
-almost immediately. The countermand was too late; for in a moment,
-everything being ready for action, we poured a whole broadside into
-our unfortunate foe. The current carried us away from the stranger.
-We attempted to beat up again, but our guns had roused the garrison
-in a fort which commanded the river; they began to blaze away at us
-in so expressive a manner, that we found it prudent to get a little
-beyond the reach of their shot, and patiently wait for daylight.
-
-The next morning we saw our enemy hauled close in shore, under
-the protection of the fort, and filled with soldiers. At first,
-it was resolved to man the boats and cut her out; but this, after
-weighing the subject maturely, was pronounced to be too hazardous an
-experiment, and, notwithstanding our men begged to make the attempt,
-it was wisely abandoned. How many were killed by our hasty broadside,
-we never learned, but doubtless several poor fellows were hurried to
-a watery and unexpected grave, affording another illustration of the
-_beauty_ of war. This affair our men humorously styled “the battle of
-Senegal.”
-
-After visiting Cape Three Points, we shaped our course for St.
-Thomas. On our way, we lost a prize through a display of Yankee
-cunning in her commander. We had hoisted English colors; the officer
-in command of the stranger was pretty well versed in the secrets of
-false colors, and in return he ran up the American flag. The bait
-took: supposing her to be American, we showed the stars and stripes.
-This was all the merchantman desired. It told him what we were, and
-he made all possible sail for St. Thomas. We followed, crowding every
-stitch of canvas our brig could carry; we also got out our sweeps and
-swept her along, but in vain. The merchantman was the better sailer,
-and succeeded in reaching St. Thomas, which, being a neutral port,
-secured her safety. Her name was the _Jane_, of Liverpool. The next
-morning, another Liverpool merchantman got into the harbor, unseen
-by our look-out until she was under the protection of the laws of
-neutrality.
-
-Our next business was to watch the mouth of the harbor, in the hope
-of catching them as they left port. But they were too cautious to run
-into danger, especially as they were expecting a convoy for their
-protection, which might make us glad to trust more to our canvas than
-to our cannon.
-
-Shortly after this occurrence, we made another sail standing in
-towards St. Thomas. Hoisting English colors, our officers also
-donning the British uniform, we soon came near enough to hail her;
-for, not doubting that we were a British brig, the merchantman made
-no effort to escape us. Our captain hailed her, “Ship ahoy!”
-
-“Halloa!”
-
-“What ship is that?”
-
-“The ship _Barton_.”
-
-“Where do you belong?”
-
-“To Liverpool.”
-
-“What is your cargo?”
-
-“Red-wood, palm oil and ivory.”
-
-“Where are you bound to?”
-
-“To St. Thomas.”
-
-Just at that moment our English flag was hauled down, and, to the
-inexpressible annoyance of the officers of the _Barton_, the stars
-and stripes supplied its place.
-
-“Haul down your colors!” continued Captain Nicholson.
-
-The old captain, who, up to this moment, had been enjoying a
-comfortable nap in his very comfortable cabin, now came upon deck
-in his shirt sleeves, rubbing his eyes, and looking so exquisitely
-ridiculous, it was scarcely possible to avoid laughing. So surprised
-was he at the unexpected termination of his dreams, he could not
-command skill enough to strike his colors; which was accordingly done
-by the mate. As they had two or three guns aboard, and as some of the
-men looked as if they would like to fight, our captain told us, if
-they fired to not “leave enough of her to boil a tin pot with.” After
-this expressive and _classical_ threat, we lowered our boats and took
-possession of this our first prize.
-
-After taking out as much of her cargo as we desired, just at night
-we set her on fire. It was an imposing sight, to behold the antics
-of the flames, leaping from rope to rope, and from spar to spar,
-until she looked like a fiery cloud resting on the dark surface of
-the water. Presently, her spars began to fall, her masts went by the
-board, her loaded guns went off, the hull was burned to the water’s
-edge, and what, a few hours before, was a fine, trim ship, looking
-like a winged creature of the deep, lay a shapeless, charred mass,
-whose blackened outline, shadowed in the clear, still waves, looked
-like the grim spirit of war lurking for its prey.
-
-This wanton destruction of property was in accordance with our
-instructions, “to _sink_, _burn_ and _destroy_” whatever we took from
-the enemy. Such is the war-spirit! SINK, BURN and DESTROY! how it
-sounds! Yet such are the instructions given by Christian (?) nations
-to their agents in time of war. What Christian will not pray for the
-destruction of such a spirit?
-
-The crew of the _Barton_ we carried into St. Thomas, and placed
-them on board the _Jane_, excepting a Portuguese and two colored
-men, who shipped among our crew. We also took with us a fine black
-spaniel dog, whom the men called by the name of Paddy. This done, we
-proceeded to watch for fresh victims, on which to wreak the vengeance
-of the war-spirit.
-
-The next sail we met, was an English brig, called the _Adventure_;
-which had a whole menagerie of monkeys on board. We captured and
-burned her, just as we did the _Barton_. Her crew were also disposed
-of in the same manner. One of them, an African prince, who had
-acquired a tolerable education in England, and who was remarkably
-polite and sensible, shipped in the _Siren_. His name was Samuel
-Quaqua.
-
-We now remained at St. Thomas several days, carrying on a petty
-trade with the natives. Our men bought all kinds of fruit, gold dust
-and birds. For these things, we gave them articles of clothing,
-tobacco, knives, &c. For an old vest, I obtained a large basket of
-oranges; for a hand of tobacco, five large cocoanuts: a profitable
-exchange on my side; since, although I drew my tobacco of the purser,
-I fortunately never acquired the habit of using it; a loss I never
-regretted. My cocoanuts were far more gratifying and valuable when we
-got to sea, parched with thirst, and suffering for water, than all
-the tobacco in the ship.
-
-While in this port, I had to throw myself on the protection of
-the officers, to avoid the disposition to abuse which existed in
-one of the petty officers. Several of these gentlemen, who messed
-together, had a large boy to wait on them. He was unacquainted with
-naval usages, and somewhat awkward withal. This led them to oppress
-him: they frequently knocked him round, and even ventured to flog
-him with a rope’s-end. The poor lad used to cry, and fret about it,
-leading quite a miserable life. By some means, it happened that I was
-ordered to take his place; and I determined to resist their habit of
-punishing their servant; so, one day, when the gunner came below for
-his share of the whisky, and found it was gone, his messmates having
-drank the whole, and asked me for his whisky, I boldly answered “I
-know nothing about it.”
-
-At this, he broke out into a furious passion, declaring that if I did
-not find his whisky he would have my heart’s blood.
-
-To this _dignified_ and _manly_ threat I made no reply, but proceeded
-forthwith to the first lieutenant, and laid the facts before him. The
-gunner was sent for, reprimanded, and threatened with degradation, if
-ever he either struck or offered to strike me again. Of course, I had
-no further trouble with these would-be tyrants.
-
-The only other difficulty I ever had on board the _Siren_, was with a
-young midshipman, who was on his first voyage--who was, in sailor’s
-language, “a real green-horn.” He ordered me, one day, to wash his
-clothes. I refused, saying it was not my duty. Putting on the air
-of a pompous man, he told me it was my duty to obey an officer, and
-I should do it. I persisted in resisting this sprig of American
-aristocracy, and as I heard no more of it, I suppose he learned that
-he was in the wrong.
-
-The effect of my conduct on the gunner was seen a short time
-afterwards, in the following little incident, which will also show
-the reader the nature of the pranks practised in men of war, by the
-hands. The gunner was a very selfish man, and somehow, when we were
-on short allowance of water, he contrived to keep a keg filled, which
-he kept in a small state-room; and a man might choke before he would
-part with a drop. One night, when my throat was parched with thirst,
-I met the boatswain’s mate, and said, “If I were minded to play the
-rogue, I could hook some water.”
-
-The mate, who was as dry as myself, looked mightily gratified at this
-piece of news, and asked, “Where?”
-
-“I have a key that will fit the lock of the room where the gunner
-keeps his water keg.”
-
-“Well,” said he, “give me the key. I will be the rogue, while you
-keep watch for the old gunner.”
-
-After drinking all we desired, we locked the door and returned to our
-posts, wondering how the gunner would feel when he found that some
-one had been practising the arithmetical rule, called reduction, on
-his water keg.
-
-The next day the offended gunner threw out sundry hints to his
-messmates about his loss, indirectly charging them with the robbery.
-This drew down their wrath upon him, and he was compelled to be
-content with swallowing his choler, and getting a new lock for his
-state-room. In all his rage he never uttered a word to me: he had not
-forgotten my appeal to his superiors.
-
-From St. Thomas we proceeded to Angola, where we staid long enough
-to clean, paint and refit our brig, from stem to stern. This was the
-last port we intended to touch at on the coast of Africa. Our next
-anchorage was to be in Boston harbor--at least so we purposed; but
-Providence and the British ordered it otherwise.
-
-To accomplish our object, we had to run the gauntlet through the
-host of English cruisers that hovered about, like birds of prey,
-along both sides of the Atlantic coast. This enterprise appeared
-so impossible to my mind, while we lay at Angola, and the fear of
-being retaken and hung operated so strongly on my imagination, that,
-more than once, I determined to run away and find a refuge among the
-Africans; but my better judgment prevailed at last, and I continued
-at my post.
-
-Still, I used every possible precaution to escape detection in case
-of our capture. In accordance with the custom of our navy at that
-period, I let my hair grow long behind. To change my looks more
-effectually, instead of tying mine in a cue as the others did, I let
-it hang in ringlets all round my face and neck. This, together with
-the effect of time, caused me to appear quite a different lad from
-what I was, when a boy, on board the _Macedonian_. I also adopted
-that peculiarity of dress practised by American men-of-war’s-men,
-which consisted in wearing my shirt open at the neck, with the
-corners thrown back. On these corners a device was wrought,
-consisting of the stars of the American flag, with the British flag
-underneath. By these means I hoped to pass for a genuine Yankee,
-without suspicion, in case we should fall into English hands.
-
-Having finished our preparations, we left Angola for Boston. We
-reached the island of Ascension in safety, where was a post-office
-of a truly patriarchal character. A box is nailed to a post near
-the shore. Ships that pass send to the box and deposit or take out
-letters, as the case may be. This is probably the cheapest general
-post-office establishment in the world.
-
-We had scarcely left this island before the cry of “Sail ho!”
-arrested every ear. Supposing her to be a large merchantman, we made
-towards her; but a nearer approach made it doubtful whether she was
-an Indiaman or a man of war. The captain judged her to be the latter,
-and tacked ship immediately. He was unwilling to place himself in the
-situation of an American privateer, who, mistaking a seventy-four for
-a merchantman, ran his ship close alongside, and boldly summoned
-her to haul down her colors. The captain of the other ship coolly
-replied, “I am not in the habit of striking my colors.” At the same
-moment the ports of his ship were opened, and disclosed her long
-ranges of guns, yawning over the decks of the privateer. Perceiving
-his mistake, the privateer, with admirable tact and good humor,
-said, “Well, if you won’t, I will,” and pulling down his bunting,
-surrendered to his more powerful foe. To avoid such a mistake as
-this, our captain made all sail to escape the coming stranger, which
-was now bearing down upon us under a heavy pressure of canvas,
-revealing, as she gained upon our little brig, that she bore the
-formidable character of a seventy-four gun ship, under English colors.
-
-Of course, fighting was out of the question. It would be like
-the assault of a dog on an elephant, or a dolphin on a whale. We
-therefore crowded all possible sail, threw our guns, cables, anchors,
-hatches, &c., overboard, to increase her speed. But it soon became
-apparent that we could not escape. The wind blew quite fresh, which
-gave our opponent the advantage: she gained on us very fast. We
-shifted our course, in hopes to baffle her until night, when we felt
-pretty sure of getting out of her way. It was of no use, she still
-gained, until we saw ourselves almost within gun-shot of our opponent.
-
-In this extremity, the captain ordered the quartermaster, George
-Watson, to throw the private signals overboard. This was a hard
-task for the bold-hearted fellow. As he pitched them into the sea,
-he said, “Good-bye, brother Yankee;” an expression which, in spite
-of their mortifying situation, forced a smile from the lips of the
-officers.
-
-The sound of a gun now came booming through the air. It was a signal
-for us to heave to, or to look out for consequences. What might
-have been, we learned afterwards, for a division of the crew of the
-seventy-four had orders to sink us if we made the least show of
-resistance. Finding it useless to prolong the chase, our commander
-reluctantly ordered the flag to be struck. We then hove to, and our
-foe came rolling down upon us, looking like a huge avalanche rushing
-down the mountain side to crush some poor peasant’s dwelling. Her
-officers stood on her quarter deck, glancing unutterable pride, while
-her captain shouted, “What brig is that?”
-
-“The United States brig _Siren_,” replied Captain Nicholson.
-
-“This is his Britannic Majesty’s ship _Medway_!”[22] he answered. “I
-claim you as my lawful prize.”
-
-Boats were then lowered, the little brig taken from us, and our crew
-transferred to the _Medway_, stowed away in the cable tier, and put
-in messes of twelve, with an allowance of only eight men’s rations
-to a mess; a regulation which caused us considerable suffering from
-hunger. The sight of the marines on board the _Medway_ made me
-tremble, for my fancy pointed out several of them as having formerly
-belonged to the _Macedonian_. I really feared I was destined to
-speedily swing at the yard-arm; it was, however, a groundless alarm.
-
-This event happened July 12, 1814. Only eight days before, we
-had celebrated the independence of our country, by dancing and
-splicing the main-brace. Now we had a fair prospect of a rigorous
-imprisonment. Such are the changes which constantly occur under the
-rule of the war-spirit.
-
-The day subsequent to our capture, we were marched to the quarter
-deck with our clothes-bags, where we underwent a strict search. We
-were ordered to remove our outside garments for this purpose. They
-expected to find us in possession of large quantities of gold dust.
-What little our crew had purchased was taken from them, with a spirit
-of rapacity altogether beneath the dignity of a naval commander.
-
-Our short allowance was a source of much discomfort in this our
-prison-ship. But, in the true spirit of sailors, we made even this a
-subject of coarse jests and pleasant remark. Some would sit and paint
-the luxuries of shore life until our mouths watered at the idea of
-soft tack, fried eggs, sausages, and those other delicacies which
-go to make up a sailor’s idea of a sensual paradise. Others would
-discourse about roast beef, boiled lamb, and caper sauce; to which
-some old weather-beaten tar would answer, “Give me the lamb and a
-knife and fork, and I will cut capers enough.” This would draw out
-peals of laughter, to be followed by various yarns of feasts gone
-by, and of sprees enjoyed on liberty and paydays. Thus we beguiled
-our time; though, with all our laughing, we could not laugh away the
-clamors of our hungry stomachs; and when I took my turn of a few
-minutes on deck, the gift of a piece of hard, dry biscuit, afforded
-me more gustatory delight, than would the taste of the richest
-pound-cake, now that I have an abundance of food.
-
-Enduring this evil, we proceeded on our course. When the _Medway_
-arrived at Simon’s Town, about twenty-one miles from the Cape of Good
-Hope, we met the _Denmark_, seventy-four, on her way to England, with
-prisoners from Cape Town. The captain had hitherto intended to land
-us at the latter place, but the presence of the _Denmark_ led him to
-change his purpose, and land us at Simon’s Town.
-
-The journey from this place to the Cape was one of great suffering to
-our crew. We were received on the beach by a file of Irish soldiers.
-Under their escort we proceeded seven miles, through heaps of burning
-sand, seeing nothing worthy of notice on the way, but a number of men
-busily engaged in cutting up dead whales on the sea-shore.
-
-After resting a short time, we recommenced our march, guarded by
-a new detachment of soldiers. Unused to walking as we were, we
-began to grow excessively fatigued; and, after wading a stream of
-considerable depth, we were so overcome, that it seemed impossible to
-proceed any farther. We lay down, discouraged and wretched, on the
-sand. The guard brought us some bread, and gave half-a-pint of wine
-to each man. This revived us somewhat. We were now placed under a
-guard of dragoons. They were very kind, and urged us to attempt the
-remaining seven miles. To relieve us, they carried our clothes-bags
-on their horses; and overtaking some Dutch farmers, going to the Cape
-with broom-stuff and brush, the officer of the dragoons made them
-carry the most weary among us in their wagons. It is not common for
-men to desire the inside of a prison, but I can assure my readers
-we did most heartily wish ourselves there, on that tedious journey.
-At last, about nine o’clock, P. M., we arrived at Cape Town, having
-left one of our number at Wineburg, through exhaustion, who joined us
-the next day. Stiff, sore, and weary, we hastily threw ourselves on
-the hard boards of our prison, where, without needing to be soothed
-or rocked, we slept profoundly until late the next morning. For a
-description of our prison, with what happened to us there, the reader
-is referred to the succeeding chapter.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
-
-The next morning we took a survey of our new quarters. We found
-ourselves placed in a large yard, surrounded by high walls, and
-strongly guarded by soldiers. Within this inclosure, there was a
-building, or shed, composed of three rooms, neither of which had
-any floor. Round the sides stood three benches or stages, one above
-the other, to serve for berths. On these we spread our hammocks and
-bed-clothes, making them tolerably comfortable places to sleep in. A
-few of the men preferred to sling their hammocks, as they did at sea.
-Here, also, we used to eat, unless, as was our frequent practice, we
-did so in the open air.
-
-Our officers had been sent thirty miles inland, so that we had lost
-the natural exactors of discipline among seamen. To remedy this
-deficiency, our first step was to adopt a set of regulations in
-respect to order, cleanliness, &c., and to appoint certain of our
-number to enforce them.
-
-We experienced some unpleasantness, at first, from the insolence of
-some of the sergeants commanding the prison guard. Most of these
-petty officers were very friendly and kind, but two or three of them
-manifested a surly, tyrannical temper, annoying us in many little
-things, enough to embitter our enjoyment, while they were on duty.
-This petty despotism we soon cured, by returning their abuse in a
-rather provoking kind of coin. We used to plague them by causing
-a long delay when the hour arrived for them to be relieved. They
-were required to muster us every morning, that we might be counted
-before the new guard took us in charge. On those occasions some would
-purposely absent themselves; others were sent to find the absentees;
-these, in their turn, would hide themselves, and require to be sought
-by others. This was excessively vexatious to the soldiers, and as
-it occurred only when a tyrannical sergeant was on guard, they soon
-understood its meaning. The plan was successful, and we thus got rid
-of one source of discomfort.
-
-Our next difficulty was with the old Dutchman, named Badiem, who
-furnished our prison with provisions. He had already learned the
-difficulty of cheating a Yankee; for the Americans who were carried
-away in the _Denmark_ had been in this same prison, and had taught
-the old man that they were rougher customers than the Frenchmen who
-had preceded them. We gave him another lesson.
-
-He undertook to wrong us and benefit himself by furnishing a very
-inferior article of bread. After counselling among ourselves, we took
-the following plan to bring him to his senses:
-
-We were visited every day by a superior officer, called the officer
-of the day. He was a kind old man, who had seen service in the war
-of the revolution, and was at the battle of Bunker Hill. He had a
-profound respect for the American character, and could not speak of
-that great action without tears. One day a friendly sergeant being on
-duty, we gave him a piece of the old Dutchman’s bread, complaining
-bitterly of its quality. When the old officer came round as usual,
-on a fine, dashing charger, and asked his customary question of “All
-right?” our friend the sergeant replied, “No, sir!”
-
-“What is the matter?” asked the venerable old gentleman.
-
-“The prisoners complain of their bread, sir,” said the sergeant.
-
-“Let me see it,” answered the general. The sergeant gave him a small
-piece. He examined it, wrapped it up carefully in some paper, clapped
-the spurs to his horse, and rode off. The next day, we had better
-bread than ever before, and an order came for a man from each room
-to go with the sentry to the town every morning, to examine our
-daily provision; and, if not what it should be, to reject it. This
-completely upset the golden visions of the old Dutchman. With much
-choler he exclaimed, “I had rather have one tousand Frenchmen, than
-one hundred Yankees.”
-
-We could not now complain of our fare. We had an abundance of beef
-and mutton, beside a full allowance of bread, &c. The beef, to be
-sure, was poor, lean stuff, but the mutton was excellent. The sheep
-at the Cape have a peculiarity, which may cause the reader to smile.
-They have enormously large, flat tails, weighing from twelve to
-twenty pounds. These are regularly sold by the pound for purposes of
-cookery. Should any one treat this statement as a forecastle yarn, I
-refer him to the descriptions of these sheep, given by travellers and
-naturalists.[23]
-
-Besides our prison allowance, we had opportunity to purchase as many
-little luxuries and niceties as our slender finances would permit.
-These were furnished by a slave, who was the property of the old
-Dutchman, and who was so far a favorite as to be indulged with two
-wives, and the privilege of selling sundry small articles to the
-prisoners. This sable polygamist furnished us with coffee, made from
-burnt barley, for a _doublegee_ (an English penny)[24] per pint; the
-same sum would purchase a sausage, a piece of fish, or a glass of
-rum. On equally reasonable terms, he furnished us with blackberries,
-oranges, &c. Our men, who, by the way had eaten fruit in every
-quarter of the globe, and were therefore competent judges, pronounced
-the latter the best in the world. The berries afforded me a rich
-treat at Christmas.
-
-To obtain means for the purchase of these dainties, our men braided
-hats, wrought at mechanical employments, or at such pursuits as their
-respective tastes and capacities suggested. These occupations served
-to beguile our confinement of much of its tediousness.
-
-Still, we had many vacant, listless hours. To fill them, we resorted
-to the demoralizing practice of gambling. A game with balls, called
-shake-bag, loo, venture, all-fours, &c. occupied our evening hours,
-and sometimes the whole night. It was not uncommon for the game to
-be protracted beyond the midnight hour of Saturday, into the sacred
-moments of the holy Sabbath. On one of these guilty mornings, some
-of us, on retiring to a shed, found the dead body of a black slave,
-hanging by the rope, with which, in a moment of unpardonable despair,
-he had committed the horrid crime of suicide. The hour, the scene,
-the place, our recent guilty profanation of God’s holy day, conspired
-to fill many of us with profound dread. In my own mind it led to a
-few transient purposes of amendment. Alas! when the bright sun arose,
-these purposes had vanished. The influence of vice triumphed. I grew
-more and more hardened in wickedness.
-
-Cape Town contained a large slave population. These poor wretches
-had been extremely degraded under the rule of the Dutch. It was said
-that their condition had been essentially improved since the conquest
-of the place by the English. Still, as the suicide just mentioned
-demonstrated, slavery was a bitter draught. The British have done
-wisely since then in granting freedom to the slaves in all their
-colonies. May the whole world imitate the noble example!
-
-We were subjected to frequent and violent gales of wind while here.
-The approach of these storms was always faithfully proclaimed by the
-mountain that towered up behind us; a large white cloud, resting
-on its summit, like a tablecloth, was a certain indication of the
-elemental warfare. Whenever this phenomenon appeared, our men
-used to remark, “Look out for a blow, the cloth is beginning to
-spread.” Very soon the vessels in the bay could be seen striking
-their top-gallant masts and yards, and sometimes even housing their
-top-masts. In a few minutes the ocean would give signs of the coming
-commotion; the waves became crested with clouds of foam, and the
-spirit of the storm was seen careering in triumph over the liquid
-mountains of the angry deep.
-
-Besides Table mountain, there was another near it, called the Lion’s
-Rump, from its similarity to that noble animal in a sitting posture.
-On the summit of this mountain was a telegraph, which informed us, in
-common with the people of the Cape, of the approach of shipping to
-the harbor.
-
-At the town, the British had a hospital for the accommodation of
-their army and navy. The advantages of this institution were humanely
-and properly offered to us, whenever we were sick. Happening to be
-quite unwell one day, my shipmates advised me to go thither. Now,
-on board the _Siren_, when in a similar state, the surgeon had
-administered an ounce of Glauber salts. The dose caused such nausea,
-that from that time I held salts in profound abhorrence. When the
-hospital was suggested to me, I associated it with the idea of salts,
-and, shuddering, remarked that “I would go if I thought they would
-not give me salts.” My shipmates all said they thought I should not
-have salts prescribed: so, under the guard of a sentry, I sallied
-forth to the hospital. “Well, my boy,” said the doctor, “what’s the
-matter with you?”
-
-With many wry faces, I told him my symptoms; when, to my
-inconceivable mortification and disgust, he spoke to a sort of
-lob-lolly boy, who waited upon him, and said, “Doctor Jack! bring
-this boy six ounces of salts.”
-
-This was intolerable. One ounce had sickened me for months at the
-bare mention of salts, and now I was to swallow six! It seemed
-impossible. The remedy was worse than the disease. I wished myself
-back at my quarters. This was, however, in vain, unless I took
-a dangerous leap from the window. I must submit. The salts were
-brought, but they were not so bad, either in quality or quantity, as
-my dose in the _Siren_. The reason I found to consist in the fact,
-that they were Epsom instead of Glauber, and that the six ounces
-included the weight of the water in which they were dissolved. So
-well was I pleased with my visit to the hospital, and especially with
-the privilege afforded me of walking about the streets of Cape Town,
-that I afterwards feigned illness to gain another admission. I was
-willing to take the salts for the sake of the liberty of jaunting
-about the streets. Of the sin of lying I thought nothing. I was a
-sailor, caring little for aught but present gratification. The beauty
-of truth I had never seen; the hatefulness of a lie I had never
-learned. Most gratefully do I acknowledge that Divine goodness, which
-has since effectually taught me both the one and the other.
-
-At Cape Town there was a small prison, called the “Trunk.” To this
-place those of our number, who were disorderly, were sent, to be
-closely confined, on no other diet than bread and water, for as many
-days as the commandant might designate. We always quietly permitted
-any offender among us to be sent thither without resistance: but
-when, on one occasion, an attempt was made to confine two of our
-shipmates unjustly, we gave them a demonstration, which saved us
-afterwards from any similar attempt.
-
-Two of our men had hung out some clothes, they had just washed, in
-our yard, near their own shed. Now, it happened that the doctor to
-the military stationed at the Cape, had an entrance to his office
-through our yard. The clothes were undesignedly hung across his path,
-compelling him either to stoop a little in passing, or to ask their
-removal. He was too proud to adopt either of these peaceful methods,
-but, with manifest spitefulness, he took out his knife and cut the
-line, so that the clothes fell into the dirt. The owners, seeing
-their wet clothing in this condition, broke out into passionate
-inquiries after the offender. “It was the English doctor,” replied
-one of our shipmates, who had witnessed the whole affair. This
-brought forth a volley of sailors’ oaths from the offended parties.
-The enraged doctor overheard their wrathful ebullitions, and, without
-further ceremony, ordered the two men to be carried to the “Trunk.”
-
-Here, then, was a manifest case of injustice. We resolved not to
-submit to it, let the consequences be what they might. When the
-sergeant came in for the doctor’s victims, we all turned out in
-a body, declaring we would all go to the “Trunk” together. The
-sergeant, seeing us in this state of rebellion, called out the whole
-guard, and ordered them to load and fire upon us. We were not however
-so easily scared. We shouted, “Fire away! You will have but one fire,
-and then it will be our turn.” At the same time we picked up all the
-broken glass, sticks, stones, &c., which were within our reach, and
-stood waiting for their firing as the signal for a general _mêlée_.
-The sergeant, seeing our resolution, and wisely considering that our
-superiority in numbers, might secure us a victory over the handful
-composing his guard, ordered the soldiers to retire. We never heard
-any more of the little doctor’s indignation: it probably evaporated,
-like the moisture from the clothes his petty indignation had thrown
-to the ground. How insignificant such acts appear, in men professing
-to be gentlemen!
-
-Shortly after this event, we were thrown into confusion and temporary
-excitement, by the approach of a large party to our prison, at
-midnight, attended by a band of music. We turned out and rushed
-to the gate of our yard. The guard turned out likewise, trembling
-under the impression that our countrymen had captured the town and
-were coming to give us our liberty. Their fears and our wonder were
-quieted, however, by a speedy discovery of the true character of this
-midnight party. It was a Dutch wedding, coming to the house of the
-old Dutchman, our caterer; the entrance to which being in our yard,
-the party had to pass directly through our territories; which they
-did, their band playing the tune of “A free and accepted Mason.”
-
-Notwithstanding we were in tolerably comfortable circumstances, our
-confinement soon became exceedingly irksome. We pined for freedom; we
-longed to get once more where the “old gridiron” floated in fearless
-triumph. A report of the burning of Washington by the British added
-not a little to our desire. We began to talk of home. This led to
-other suggestions; these to the formation of plans for our escape. We
-at length concerted a measure, which was, to break from the prison
-in the night, disarm and confine the guard, help ourselves to boats,
-and cut out some large ship, in which we might make our escape to
-America. The success of this plot, however, was never tested; for,
-reaching the ears of the commander, the guards were strengthened;
-the light dragoons ordered out to patrol the harbor; and such other
-preventive measures adopted, as cut off all hope of forcible escape.
-Our only remedy for this disappointment, was submission, and boasting
-of what we would have done, had we got into the strife for liberty.
-
-As the period of our imprisonment drew towards a close, we were
-informed that the Rev. George Thom, a missionary, was desirous to
-come and preach to us. Some of our men objected, because, they
-said, he would preach about his king, and they had no desire to
-hear anything about kings. Others said, “Let him come; we will hear
-him with attention, and if we don’t like him we can afterwards stay
-away. At any rate, don’t let us abuse him; but rather show him that
-Americans know what is good behavior.”
-
-This reply shows the true spirit of the mass of seamen in respect
-to religion; for though they care little about personal piety, they
-will not, usually, unless intoxicated, insult a minister. This was
-once shown in the experience of the eccentric Rowland Hill; when a
-mob threatened the old gentleman with mischief, some sailors present
-rallied round him, threatening vengeance on any who dared to insult
-the preacher.
-
-Accordingly, we sent our respects to Mr. Thom, inviting him to
-favor us with a visit. We then cleaned and fitted up one room with
-benches. The following Sabbath he came. His preaching was earnest,
-simple and interesting. Instead of discoursing about kings, as some
-had predicted, the only king about whom he preached, was the King of
-heaven. We invited him to come again. He accepted the invitation,
-and our meetings soon began to be profitable and interesting. We had
-singing, for several of our men were tolerable singers, and they
-were aided by the presence of some pious soldiers from the garrison,
-and occasionally by Mrs. Thom, the amiable lady of our excellent
-preacher. Our officers, too, frequently came from their residence,
-and were pleased to see the good order and happiness apparent on
-these occasions. I assure my readers, that the most delightful
-moments of our imprisonment were those we spent in singing some sweet
-hymn, in the good old-fashioned tunes of _Bridgewater_, _Russia_,
-_Wells_, &c.
-
-Among the texts used by Mr. Thom, I remember the following: “Turn ye
-to the strong-hold, ye prisoners of hope;” Zech. ix. 12. “Behold,
-I stand at the door and knock,” &c.; Rev. iii. 20. “And yet there
-is room;” Luke xiv. 22. It was really pleasing to hear the various
-remarks made by our men, after listening to faithful discourses from
-these and similar texts. One would remark, “He hit me a clew.” To
-this another would reply, “He shot away my colors.” A third would
-add, “He shot away my rigging;” while a fourth would say, “He gave me
-a shot;” and a fifth, “He gave me a broadside.” Thus, in their rough
-way, did they express the impressions made on their minds by the
-discourse.
-
-Mr. Thom was a faithful servant of his Master, the Lord Jesus Christ.
-He did not rest satisfied with these public efforts, but, during the
-week, he visited us for the purpose of serious conversation. Several
-of us were really under strong conviction, and would confess, at
-these inquiry meetings, and to each other as we paced the yard,
-how often we had sinned, even cursing our Maker when on the yard at
-night, amid the roaring of the storm, the bellowing of the thunder,
-and the angry flashing of the lightning. A happy practical effect
-followed. Gambling ceased, cards and shake-bag lost their charms.
-The time was spent in reading useful books. Bibles and religious
-books were given or loaned to us. Among these were Baxter’s _Call_,
-Doddridge’s _Rise and Progress of Religion_, &c. To some extent we
-were altered men. Had we remained much longer under these gracious
-influences, most of us, I think, would have become experimental
-Christians. As it was, the seed was not wholly wasted. Impressions
-were made, which, no doubt, have, in many cases, yielded rich fruit
-long before this.
-
-My own mind was strongly wrought upon. A singular dream added
-to my seriousness. In my dream, I saw myself drowning, while a
-fierce-looking soldier was pointing his loaded musket at my head.
-Thus death threatened me from two sources. In this extremity my
-anguish was very great. All my gracious opportunities passed before
-me, but now it seemed too late for salvation. “Oh,” thought I in my
-sleep, “what would I give, if this were only a dream! How faithfully
-would I serve the Lord when I awoke.” Just at that moment I did
-awake, scarcely able to convince myself that the ideal scene was not
-an awful reality. That day I eagerly sought the missionary, and sat
-with serious delight listening to his instructions. Still I did not
-give myself up to the service of Christ. So difficult was it for me
-to make the requisite sacrifice of my beloved sins.
-
-Just at this interesting crisis, a glad report of peace between
-England and America reached our prison. With joyful faces we
-assembled round the good man, when he came that day, to inquire if it
-was really so. While he assured us of its truth, he mildly asked “if
-it was peace with Heaven;” assuring us that it was a matter of the
-greatest importance for us to be at peace with God.
-
-As a memento of our esteem for Mr. Thom, we made him several little
-presents. One of them was a hat made from a _bullock’s horn_. The
-horn was peeled into narrow slips, these were scraped, split, and
-braided like straw, and then sewed together. We also made him a model
-of a ship, fully rigged from stem to stern. The missionary received
-these marks of our regard with evident pleasure; and, no doubt, when
-looking upon them afterwards, offered many a prayer for the salvation
-of the prisoners, who were, for many weeks, the subjects of his
-anxiety and labors. Blessings rest on him, if he yet lives! Peace to
-his ashes, if he slumbers among the dead!
-
-Great was the joy of my companions, when the news reached us that
-we were to embark shortly, in the _Cumberland_, seventy-four, for
-England. Little was now said or done, except what related to our
-departure. With strange, yet common perversity of conduct, serious
-matters were laid aside for the one absorbing thought, “We shall soon
-be free!” Thus, an event which should have given birth to gratitude
-and religious service, only served for an occasion of further neglect
-and unthankfulness. How strangely wicked is the human heart!
-
-For myself, the tidings filled me with fear. Directly to America I
-would have gladly gone; but to be carried to England, in one of her
-ships of war, was like going to certain death. How was it possible
-for me to escape detection? How could I avoid meeting with some old
-_Macedonians_, who would, of course, recognise and betray me? These
-questions had resolved me to volunteer to remain at the Cape, a short
-time before, when some of our number were sent to England. Now,
-they tortured me beyond endurance. I felt like an escaped criminal
-with the officers of justice at his heels. Death at the yard-arm
-haunted me day and night, like the fancied ghost of a murdered man,
-staring ghastly at the window of his murderer. No one can imagine my
-uneasiness, unless he has been placed in a similar situation. I made
-many promises to God that if he would carry me in safety to America,
-I would cease to be a swearer, and would most punctually attend his
-house every Sabbath. These things constituted my highest ideas of
-human duty at that time; but even these promises, like those made
-during the heat of the battle in the _Macedonian_, were made to be
-broken.
-
-After a little delay, we were conveyed on board the _Cumberland_,
-where we soon heard the well-known summons of “All hands up anchor,
-ahoy!” A cloud of canvas dropped from her gigantic yards; the
-sportive breeze came obedient to our wish; and the huge form of the
-_Cumberland_, accompanied by a large convoy of merchant vessels,
-was borne rapidly along upon the yielding waves. Cape Town, Table
-Mountain, the Lion’s Rump, and our prison-yard, were soon left far
-behind, leaving no traces of their existence on the distant horizon;
-they were to be known to us hereafter only among the images of the
-brain--as recollections, not as realities. We had spent eight months
-in the prison of Cape Town.
-
-Our treatment in this ship was superior to what we received in the
-_Medway_. Instead of the cable tier, we had berths on the upper gun
-deck, and our allowance of food was sufficient for our wants.
-
-Arriving at St. Helena, we remained a few days in port. This rough,
-rock-bound island had not yet received its future prisoner, the
-emperor of France. Here we were removed from the _Cumberland_.
-Twenty-four of us were sent on board the _Grampus_, of fifty guns,
-the rest were sent home in our old conqueror, the _Medway_; my lot
-being cast among the former.
-
-This transfer to the _Grampus_ greatly alarmed me; since the more
-men I saw, the greater, of course, was my chance of detection. I
-had already escaped being known on board of two seventy-fours; but
-I could not promise myself the same impunity much longer. However,
-as I saw no one whose face was familiar, when I went on board, I
-felt a little more easy. But that night, I had occasion for great
-trepidation and alarm. About nine o’clock, I heard the order from
-an officer, of “Pass the word for the boy Leech.” This was followed
-by several voices hallooing, “Boy Leech! boy Leech!” My heart beat
-like a trip-hammer against my bosom, and a cold sweat crept over my
-whole body. My shipmates said they meant me; but I would not reply.
-After a few moments, I breathed more freely, and the fear of death
-passed away. I heard some one saying, “Your master wants you;” which
-convinced me that there was a “boy Leech” among the crew of the
-_Grampus_, as well as another boy Leech among the American prisoners.
-
-On our passage, we made a strange sail. Coming up to her, to our
-infinite satisfaction we beheld the stars and stripes at her
-mast-head. “Brother Jonathan has come to town,” said one of our men.
-“He is a most welcome visitor,” the rest replied; for indeed “the
-old gridiron” never looked so pleasant as it did then. This meeting
-confirmed us in the report of peace between the two nations. This was
-as gratifying to the crew of the _Grampus_ as to us; for they had
-recently heard that the war with France was ended, and they were all
-hoping to get discharged. This expectation was defeated, however,
-by intelligence from some passing ship, that Napoleon was at Paris
-again, with a force of sixty thousand men.
-
-Nothing could exceed the joy of the officers, and the vexation of
-the crew, at this piece of information. The former dreaded a peace,
-because it would place many of them on half-pay; while the chances of
-war inspired them with hopes of promotion; hence they ran alongside
-almost every ship in the fleet, shouting, “Have you heard the news?
-Bonaparte has got to Paris with sixty thousand men!” Really, some of
-them seemed crazy with joy at the idea of protracted war. Not so,
-however, the seamen; they longed for peace, since war only brought
-them hard usage, wounds and death. While, therefore, the officers
-were rejoicing, they were muttering curses and oaths, wishing
-Bonaparte and his army at perdition. Nor was it strange that they
-felt thus; for the discipline on board the _Grampus_ was excessively
-severe. They were constantly flogging in the most harsh and cruel
-manner. The _Sirens_ were astonished at what they saw; for on board
-our brig, we seldom saw more than a dozen lashes inflicted at one
-time, and that not very often.
-
-At last we came in sight of the white cliffs of old England. To
-avoid suspicion, I appeared much interested in everything I saw on
-the coast, and asked the men all those questions which are natural
-to a stranger, when he sees a new country for the first time. These
-inquiries they answered with the utmost good humor; for an Englishman
-is proud of his country, notwithstanding he may find hard usage from
-her hands.
-
-My American friends have frequently asked if my language did not
-excite suspicion that I was English. It never did to my knowledge;
-indeed, so free was I from English provincialisms, that it was often
-remarked to me, that I “needed no protection;” meaning, that I should
-be taken for a Yankee, without offering proof.
-
-With all this in my favor, I could not behold myself approaching my
-native soil, without many misgivings. To a man who knows a halter
-is hanging over his head, everything furnishes cause for alarm; a
-piercing look, a whisper, or the sudden mention of his name, is a
-cause of disquietude, sufficient to stir his inmost soul. Captain
-Nicholson gave me no little uneasiness, by sending for me one day,
-just before we arrived in port, to make some inquiries about Mr.
-Crowninshield, of Salem, Mass. Luckily, I could say I had seen him;
-beyond that, I could give no further information. He supposed me
-to be a native of Salem, while I was quaking, through a fearful
-expectation of being found nearly as ignorant of that city, as I had
-been, on another occasion, of the city of Philadelphia.
-
-At length we reached Spithead, and were removed to an old
-prison-ship, called the _Puissant_, which had once belonged to the
-French. Here we were treated with great lenity; we were even allowed
-liberty to go on shore. Had I dared, I would have run away; the dread
-of the halter restrained me! I did not even venture to write, lest my
-mother should be tempted to visit me, or even to write; since even a
-letter from any place in England, might awaken suspicion concerning
-my true character.[25]
-
-After a stay of several weeks in the old _Puissant_, orders came for
-our transfer to the _Rover_, a gun-brig, which had orders to carry us
-to Plymouth. Here was a double risk again before me. I had to risk
-being known by the crew of the _Rover_, and by the many persons who
-had known me at Plymouth. However, the good hand of Providence was
-with me to preserve me. We reached our port in safety, where, to our
-great delight, we heard that the _Woodrop Simms_, of Philadelphia,
-was to be the Cartel to convey us to America.
-
-Before we were allowed to tread her decks, however, we had to spend
-two or three days on board the _Royal Sovereign_, of one hundred and
-ten guns, because the _Woodrop Simms_ was not quite ready to receive
-us. Here I was exposed to the gaze of eight hundred men; but none of
-them knew me. Indeed, this was my most hazardous situation; for the
-_Sovereign_ and _Macedonian_ had sailed in company before the capture
-of the latter. Whenever any of her men came near our quarters, I
-endeavored to look cross-eyed, or closed one eye so as to appear
-partially blind; and in various other ways altered my appearance, so
-that even an old shipmate would have been puzzled to recognise me at
-first.
-
-At last, the grateful news reached us that the Cartel was ready. We
-went on board with great gaiety, where we met our shipmates who had
-left the Cape before us. They had been confined in the celebrated
-Dartmoor prison, with a number of other prisoners, where they had met
-with rather rough treatment and rougher fare. They were present at
-what they called the Massacre. Several of the prisoners were detected
-in an effort to escape. To strike terror into the poor victims,
-Captain Shortland ordered his men to fire in upon them. Quite a
-number were killed, and more wounded, by this cold-blooded act;
-the rest sought the shelter of the prison walls. Several Americans
-suffered in this wanton assault. Our meeting at this juncture was a
-source of mutual gratulation.
-
-Our ship was now surrounded with boats containing provisions of all
-descriptions. To our surprise, the Dartmoor men bought freely of
-everything. Where they obtained their money, we could not imagine. We
-learned afterwards that their stock consisted of counterfeit coins,
-manufactured by the prisoners! It was well for them that our ship put
-to sea before John Bull’s peace officers received information of the
-fraud. What a school for every species of vice is opened by war! The
-corruptions and vices occasioned by the operation of this system, are
-beyond the power of the imagination to conceive.
-
-My feelings were peculiar as I beheld my native land receding from
-my vision. I was happy, and yet sad. Happy, because I was now safe;
-sad, because I was again leaving the soil which held my mother and my
-friends. On the whole, my joyous feelings prevailed.
-
-A few days out, we were hailed by an English frigate. She sent a
-boat alongside to make some inquiries, and left us to pursue our
-way in peace. We were all in good spirits; our men being divided
-into watches to assist the crew of the ship; our officers all snugly
-quartered in the cabin, and myself appointed to assist the steward;
-an office quite agreeable to one who had lived on prisoners’ fare
-more than a year,[26] because it brought me a few of the spare
-luxuries from the officers’ table.
-
-One morning, shortly after the English frigate had boarded us,
-Captain Nicholson asked me something about Salem. I smiled. He
-inquired why I laughed. “Sir,” said I, “Salem is not my native place
-by considerable.”
-
-“What do you mean?” asked the captain, looking somewhat puzzled at my
-manner of treating the subject.
-
-I then unfolded the secret of my having been one of the crew
-captured in the _Macedonian_. They seemed amazed at the risks I had
-encountered since the capture of the _Siren_, and congratulated me
-very warmly on my really hair-breadth escape from the halter. It was
-a fortunate escape indeed, for which I can never be sufficiently
-thankful to that All-seeing Eye, that watched for my safety in the
-moment of peril.
-
-During this voyage, a great deal was said about quitting the seas
-and settling down in quietness ashore. One of our shipmates, named
-William Carpenter, who belonged to Rhode Island, had a particular
-enthusiasm in favor of farming. He promised to take me with him,
-where I could learn the art of cultivating the soil. Many of us made
-strong resolutions to embark in some such enterprise. The pleasures
-of agriculture were sung and praised among us in so ardent a manner,
-that he must have been incredulous indeed, who could have doubted,
-for a moment, the certainty of quite a number of our hands becoming
-farmers, whenever we should gain the land.
-
-One night we lay in our hammocks, talking with great earnestness
-about our favorite scheme, the wind blowing quite freshly on deck.
-Said one, “If I ever get home, you won’t catch me on board of a
-ship again.” “Yes,” said another; “farmers live well, at any rate.
-They are not put on allowance, but have enough to eat: if they work
-hard all day, they can turn in at night; and if it blows hard, the
-house won’t rock much, and there’s no sails to reef.” While this
-and similar conversation was going on, the wind was blowing harder
-and harder: from occasional heavy puffs, it at last grew to be a
-tremendous gale. Hearing so much wind, though there were hands enough
-on deck to manage the ship, some of us got up to assist if we were
-needed. It was now blowing most fearfully; the wild howling and
-whistling among the rigging, the wilder roar of the angry sea, the
-hallooing of the captain, and the impenetrable darkness which lent
-its horrors to the scene, were appalling even to a sailor’s breast.
-Just as I stepped upon deck she shipped a heavy sea, which drenched
-me to the skin. Presently, we heard the crash of falling timbers, and
-away went a top-mast, and a yard in the slings. There were now so
-many men on deck that we were in each other’s way; some of us went
-below and turned in, with the full expectation that our ship would
-founder before morning; and thinking it would be as well to go down
-in our hammocks as on deck.
-
-While this state of gloomy foreboding continued, some of my shipmates
-manifested great alarm about eternity. They prayed aloud, in deep
-distress. Others only cursed, and said, as if in bravado, “We are all
-going to hell together.” For my own part I kept repeating the Lord’s
-prayer, and renewing those promises so often made in the moment of
-apparent destruction.
-
-At length the day dawned, revealing the sad havoc made by the winds,
-of our masts and rigging. We also saw a number of those dwellers
-on the ocean, called Mother Carey’s chickens. Our shattered aspect
-reminded me of the _Macedonian_ after the battle, excepting that we
-had no wounded and dead about us now. Captain Jones, who had not left
-the deck a moment during the night, declared that, though he had
-been twenty-five years at sea, he had never witnessed such a gale
-before. Our ship was nearly new, and an excellent sea-boat, or she
-would have shared the fate of many a ship in that terrible gale. As
-the wind abated with the approach of day, we repaired our damages
-and proceeded on our voyage, frequently passing vessels which had
-suffered as severely as ourselves. This gale was on the 9th and 10th
-days of August, 1815. Probably many, both sailors and landsmen, will
-recollect this and the September gale of that year, which occasioned
-such destruction of life and shipping.
-
-Sailors are superstitious. Our men attributed this mishap to the
-presence of some Jonah in the ship. The man they pitched upon, as the
-probable offender, was an old sea-captain, who had been cast away
-several times. That he had done some fearful deed, was a matter of
-undoubted truth among them; but not being so resolute as the mariners
-of Tarshish, they did not cast him into the sea; neither did this
-liberality on their part cost us our lives, for, after several days
-of pleasant weather, we one morning found ourselves safely anchored
-at the quarantine ground, near the city of New York.
-
-The crew of the _Siren_ having obtained leave to go on shore,
-full of my good purposes to lead a steady life on the land, I
-hurried directly to Broadway, to inquire for my former employer,
-the kind-hearted boot-maker. To my disappointment, he had gone to
-Philadelphia; so that I returned on board, somewhat chagrined at the
-failure of my plan.
-
-The next morning we were conveyed, in a large sail-boat, on board the
-_Tom Bowling_, an hermaphrodite brig. Here I was congratulated by
-the old quartermaster, Lewis Deal, who was with me when we narrowly
-escaped capture at the mouth of Salem harbor, while on a fishing
-excursion. He said he had felt much anxiety for my safety all the
-voyage, especially as it was reported that my former captain had made
-strict search for the _Macedonians_ among all the American prisoners
-who were carried to England. The kind-hearted old man wept tears of
-gladness at my safe return.
-
-While we staid in the _Tom Bowling_, the September gale, mentioned
-above, took place. We were right glad, as it broke its fury over
-our anchorage in vain, to think we were so safely housed in a good
-harbor, instead of being exposed to its wrath on the deep. Many a
-brave heart perished in that memorable storm.
-
-The two years having expired for which we shipped, we were paid off.
-With the sum of one hundred dollars, I hurried on shore and deposited
-my funds in the hands of my landlord, at a sailor’s boarding-house.
-Now followed a life of dissipation and folly. The grave resolutions,
-passed at sea, to settle down as steady farmers, vanished into
-air. Drinking, swearing, gambling, going to the theatre, and other
-kindred vices, took up all our time as long as our money lasted. Our
-religious vows were equally slighted and forgotten: instead of being
-better, we became worse than ever. We felt as if New York belonged
-to us, and that we were really the happiest, jolliest fellows in the
-world.
-
-For my own part, I fell deeper into wickedness than ever before:
-drinking, swearing, and gambling as I had never done on any former
-occasion. How could it be otherwise? Who cared for the sailor then?
-Not one. He was left to his own depraved heart’s promptings. Bethels
-and religious boarding-houses did not then throw their genial
-influences round his path, to charm his footsteps to the shrines of
-virtue and religion. Near the very spot where the Bethel church
-now stands in New York, I have frequently gambled for hours, with a
-bottle of spirits on the table, uncaring and uncared for by any human
-being. Thrice blessed be the man who first established Bethels and
-temperance boarding-houses! They are the sailor’s life-boats, which
-snatch him from the gory jaws of the unprincipled landsharks who
-fatten on his ruin.
-
-Sometimes, in a sober moment, I thought I would break away from
-this wicked mode of life. I even engaged myself to a boot-maker,
-to complete my knowledge of his business; but, the dread of the
-confinement to the shoe-bench, which my riotous fancy painted as
-being worse than a prison, drove me from my purpose, and left me
-still among my shipmates.
-
-At last my landlord told me my money was all expended, and that I
-must look out for something to do. My shipmates were in a similar
-dilemma, their number decreasing every day, as one after another
-shipped in the various merchant vessels preparing for sea. Alas!
-for our farmers in perspective. Their dreams of ploughing the land
-evaporated, leaving them what they were before, and what most of
-them remained until death, the ploughmen of the ocean. My landlord’s
-gentle hint put a stop to my excesses, for the very sufficient reason
-that it was attended with a protest on my further checks for funds.
-For a while, I found employment in loading and unloading ships, and
-in assisting to fit them for sea. But this proving an uncertain
-employment, I was induced to join a number of my fellow-boarders in
-going to the rendezvous of the United States brig _Boxer_. Here we
-shipped for two years more. I was then eighteen years of age, and was
-rated as an ordinary seaman, with ten dollars per month wages. Behold
-me then, dear reader, once more on board a man of war, in spite of
-all the dangers I had escaped, and the promises I had made to risk
-myself no more on the ocean! The next chapter will unfold the events
-which transpired while I sailed in the _Boxer_.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
-
-On shipping in the _Boxer_, I received three months’ advance, which,
-excepting a small sum expended for clothing, fell into the hands of
-my rapacious landlord. How much this gentleman contrived to filch
-from me, it is not in my power to say; but that he was well paid, I
-have no doubt. He had my hundred dollars, my advance, all I earned
-for working on the wharves, and nine dollars beside, which I obtained
-from the purser. All this, according to his account, I spent in
-a few weeks, with the exception of a very small sum laid out for
-clothing. As I had no means of proving his statements false, there
-was no alternative but submission, and a return to a life of toil and
-danger, to earn a fresh supply.
-
-As the method by which I obtained the nine dollars, above mentioned,
-from the purser, will exhibit one of the modes in which seamen are
-sometimes cheated, I will relate it. While in the _Siren_ I drew but
-half my allowance of grog. By the rules of the service, I could claim
-the balance in money. This I overlooked when we were paid off, but,
-when my funds got low, it came into my mind. I proposed to some of
-the boys, who had a similar claim, to visit the purser. They only
-laughed at me, and said it would be of no use, for he would not pay
-it now we were discharged. Finding they would not join me, I went
-alone to the City Hotel, where the purser boarded, and inquired
-for him of the bar-tender. He came down stairs, and I spread out
-my complaint before him. He blustered and said I had no such claim
-allowed; I insisted, and told him it was my right, and he must pay
-it. Hoping to get rid of me, he told me to call again the next day.
-This I did, when he paid me nine dollars. This will show the reader
-one of the ways in which poor Jack is plundered, and that too by
-GENTLEMEN!
-
-The _Boxer_ lay at the navy yard, whither we were conducted. The
-vacillation of a seaman’s character was illustrated before we got
-on board, by one of our hands running away: another went a little
-beyond the first. He went on board, where he pretended to lose his
-hat overboard. Begging permission to recover it, he seized the rope
-which fastened the boat to the shore, dropped over the stern into the
-boat, and pushing up to the wharf, leaped ashore and made off. Such
-fickle-mindedness is not uncommon among sailors.
-
-We lost another of our crew in a more melancholy manner; he was in my
-mess, an Englishman by birth, who had just left a British vessel to
-enter the American service. He was at work on the main yard, and by
-some means or other, losing his foothold, he fell. Unfortunately, he
-struck a carronade screw in his descent, which inflicted a terrible
-wound. The poor man suffered excruciating agonies for a short time,
-and died. We buried him on shore, in a plain coffin, without form or
-ceremony. Such are the contingencies which wait to hurry seamen to
-the grave!
-
-We were kept busily at work upon the brig for some time; after which
-our commander, Captain Porter, came on board. We soon found him to
-belong rather to the race of Fitzroys and Cardens, than to that of
-Decaturs, Parkers or Nicholsons. He was inclined to tyranny and
-severe discipline.
-
-He soon gave us a specimen of his character in a most illegal act
-of punishment. We lay alongside the _Hornet_ or _Peacock_, I forget
-which. It happened that her captain and most of her officers were
-gone ashore one day. Our captain accidentally saw one of her men
-engaged in some act of misconduct: instead of entering a complaint
-against the man to his own officers, he ordered him to be seized up
-and severely flogged, notwithstanding the earnest entreaties of the
-offender for pardon. Why the captain of that vessel did not call
-Captain Porter to an account for this manifest invasion of his
-prerogatives, I never knew, for we put to sea shortly afterwards. An
-officer who would thus gratuitously volunteer his services to punish
-a man, must be a tyrant at heart. So at least we thought; while many
-misgivings, concerning the future, troubled our minds.
-
-As I was now rated an ordinary seaman, and not a boy, as heretofore,
-I had a station assigned me in the fore-top, instead of being a
-servant to any of the officers. I was also appointed to be one of the
-crew of the captain’s gig. This made my lot one of more fatigue and
-exposure than in any former voyage; a proof of which, I very soon
-experienced. It being now late in the fall, the weather became very
-cold. One afternoon, the pennant having got foul of the royal mast,
-an officer ordered me to go up and clear it. I had no mittens on; it
-took me some time to perform my task, and before I came down one of
-my fingers was frozen. Thus it is, however, with the poor tar; and he
-thinks himself happy to escape his dangers with injuries so slight as
-this.
-
-The disposition of our commanding officer was still further revealed
-to my discomfort one day, while we were at work on the cables.
-Something I did, not happening to suit him, he gave me a severe blow
-on the head with his fist, not far from the place where I had been
-previously injured by the malice of the Malay boy. This unmanly blow
-occasioned me violent pains for several days.
-
-Since that time, I have felt a peculiar hostility to a practice,
-which is lamentably common in some schools and families; I mean that
-of rapping children on the head with a thimble, or with the knuckles,
-or anything else. The practice is the result of irrational passion,
-it is dangerous, and cannot therefore be too severely reprobated. If
-it is pleaded as necessary to enforce obedience and ensure respect,
-I know it will fail of such effects; it will only excite feelings of
-revenge, ill-will and malice.
-
-We now received sailing orders, and were very soon under weigh,
-bound to the Balize at the mouth of the Mississippi. On this passage
-we had further opportunities of learning the character of our
-officers. Although Captain Porter was stern and severe, yet he never
-used bad language. He always spoke with the utmost deliberation, but
-with such obvious indications of feeling, that we often trembled
-to hear his voice. Most of the other officers were by no means
-novitiates in the art of swearing; but our sailing-master exceeded
-all the rest in this diabolical habit. Whenever it was his watch on
-deck, he exercised his voice, and practised the use of his choice
-and varied vocabulary of oaths, by hallooing and threatening the
-men continually. Whenever we had to set on sail, or to reef, he was
-especially diligent in these matters; mingling with his curses,
-threats of the lash to those who were tardy, or whose movements did
-not exactly suit his taste. If such officers could only apprehend the
-profound contempt and bitter hatred with which they are regarded by
-their maddened crew, they would both tremble for safety, and despise
-their own littleness of soul. No really great man would enact the
-childish vagaries of a petty tyrant.
-
-There was one respect in which we were more annoyed in the _Boxer_
-than I had been in the _Macedonian_. In this latter ship, none but
-the captain could order a man to be flogged; in the _Boxer_, the
-lieutenant or the officer of the watch could send a man to the
-gangway, and order the boatswain to lay on with a rope’s-end. This
-is a liberty which the laws of the navy should prohibit. A man
-should be secured the rights of a citizen, as well on the _planks_
-as on the _soil_ of his country. True, it may be said, severity of
-discipline is necessary to good order in a ship. Not _severity_,
-but _strictness_, is what is wanted. Let a strict discipline be
-enforced, with pleasant looks, and a “Hurrah my lads, bear a hand!”
-and obedience will be more prompt and more perfect than when every
-order is accompanied with a “Damn you,” and with an exhibition of the
-rope’s-end or cat-o’-nine-tails. Common sense, as well as experience,
-will sustain this opinion.
-
-While these matters were passing on board, our little brig was
-dashing through the waves in fine style. We arrived at the Balize,
-from whence we dropped down to Ship Island, where we took in water.
-A share of this severe task fell to my lot, for I was here taken out
-of the gig, and placed in the jolly-boat, to make way for a smaller
-and lighter lad in the former. We obtained our water by digging large
-holes in the sand, into which we placed our casks; the salt water,
-by passing through so much sand, would be so thoroughly filtrated,
-that by the time it reached our casks it was fit for use. We then
-emptied it into ten-gallon kegs, called breakers, which we carried
-on our shoulders to the boat. This of itself was hard work, but we
-had certain tormentors on this island, which made it a task of much
-suffering. These were hosts of hungry, gigantic moschetos, which
-assailed our persons, and especially our naked feet, in flying
-squadrons, with a ferocity that indicated an uncontrollable thirst
-for blood. But even these were not our worst persecutors. They
-were attended by armies of large, yellow horseflies, which our men
-called gallinippers. These merciless insect savages were always sure
-to attack the very spot we had rubbed sore, after the bite of a
-moscheto. Their bite felt like the thrust of a small sword; I still
-retain scars on my feet occasioned by these fierce gallinippers.
-
-This island bore marks of the battle of New Orleans; for we found
-various articles bearing the broad arrow and stamped G. R. We also
-remarked several mounds, which had the appearance of being large
-graves. We afterwards learned that this was the place where the
-British brought their dead, after their unsuccessful attack on the
-city of New Orleans.
-
-From Ship Island, we proceeded to New Orleans. This was a laborious
-passage; the current ran down the river with amazing force, bearing
-huge logs on its bosom, which, if suffered to strike either our bows
-or cables, were capable of doing much damage: to avoid them required
-no trifling exertions. Sometimes we endeavored to track her, or draw
-her along with ropes, as canal-boats are drawn by horses. But, as
-this brought us into shallow water, it was abandoned.
-
-The banks of the river displayed large numbers of alligators,
-luxuriating on the numerous logs that were fast in the mud. We made
-many attempts to get near enough to these scaly monsters to pierce
-them with a boat-hook; but they kept too sharp a look-out for us;
-invariably diving into the stream before our boat got near enough
-for us to strike them. But, if we failed in capturing alligators, we
-obtained an abundance of palm-leaf, from the shore, with which we
-furnished ourselves with hats.
-
-An instance of our commander’s tyranny occurred while we were
-ascending the river. He had requested a seaman, named Daily, who was
-somewhat acquainted with the river, to act as pilot. By accident
-or negligence, he suffered the brig to strike the bottom, though
-without the least injury. The captain flew into a passion, ordered
-him to the gangway, and commanded the boatswain’s mate to lay on
-with his rope’s-end. I did not witness this flogging, for the hands
-were not called up to witness punishment, unless administered by the
-cat-o’-nine-tails, but one of my messmates said that he received at
-least one hundred lashes. I saw him several days afterwards, with
-his back looking as if it had been roasted, and he unable to stand
-upright. He wore the same shirt in which he was flogged for some
-time afterwards. It was torn to rags, and showed the state of his
-back beneath. His object in wearing it was to mortify and shame the
-captain for his brutality.
-
-The severity of flogging with the rope’s end is justly described in
-Mr. Dana’s excellent book, called “Two Years before the Mast.” Though
-not _so_ cruel as the cat, it is nevertheless a harsh, degrading
-punishment. Our men used to say that “they would as lief be cut up on
-the bare back with the cat, as have back and shirt cut up together,”
-as was poor Daily’s. In truth, that flogging was both unjust and
-illegal. The articles of war provide, that not more than _twelve_
-lashes shall be given for a crime; but here _one hundred_ were
-inflicted for _no crime_--for an accident, which might have happened
-to the best pilot who ever ascended the Mississippi. But though the
-captain was thus rendered amenable to the law, who would believe a
-poor sailor? Had he complained, it would doubtless have been to his
-own injury; for law, and especially naval law, is always on the side
-of the strong. This was not the only case of illegal flogging; but
-the justification of these excessive whippings, was found in the
-pretended existence of _several_ crimes in the helpless offenders.
-
-On one occasion we were at our quarters, exercising in the various
-evolutions of war; now at our guns, and then going through the forms
-of boarding an enemy; now running aloft, as if in the act of cutting
-down our enemy’s rigging, and then rushing below, as if to board her,
-firing our pistols, stabbing with our boarding-pikes, and cutting
-on all sides with our cutlasses. In the midst of this excitement,
-the movements of one of the men not happening to please the captain,
-he seized a cutlass and struck him a tremendous blow with its flat
-side; heated with passion, he let it glance as he struck, and the
-edge, entering the man’s back, made a deep flesh wound, which was
-very sore a long time. Some of our men swore that if they had been
-the sufferer, they would have shot the captain dead on the spot! Are
-men of such brutal tempers fit to command a man of war? Is it not
-wonderful that mutiny is so rare under such a discipline? Such an
-officer might do to command a crew of pirates, but not of freemen,
-such as Americans feel proud to entrust with the keeping of their
-national honor on the deep.
-
-On reaching New Orleans, our ship was overhauled and repaired. We
-were sent on board the _Louisiana_, an old guard-ship, but had to
-cross the river every morning to assist in working on the brig.
-Several of our men, and myself among them, were quite sick here,
-owing to the free use of river water. The _Louisiana_ had a number
-of men confined on board, for some crime; they wore chains round
-their legs, which were fastened to a large ball: the nature of their
-offence I did not ascertain.
-
-The effects of Captain Porter’s severity were seen here in the loss
-of two of the crew. They belonged to the gig, and ran away while he
-was on shore. He made a strict, but unsuccessful, search after them.
-To deter others from a like attempt, or because he wanted an object
-on which to wreak his vengeance, he gave one poor fellow a cruel
-flogging for what, in sober fact, was no offence at all. The man was
-on shore, with some others, fixing the rigging, and, for some purpose
-or other, had walked a short distance from the rest, without the
-slightest intention to run away. But the captain wanted a victim, and
-this served for an excuse.
-
-Our brig being finished, we returned on board, and were soon back at
-our old station off Ship Island, where we found several other small
-naval craft. While here I saw a man flogged through the fleet, or, as
-this might more properly be called, the squadron. His was the only
-instance of the kind I saw while in the American navy, and, although
-his back was most brutally mangled, yet I do not think he suffered
-equal to those who are flogged through an English fleet. Still, the
-indignity and brutality are the same in _kind_, though differing in
-degree: a MAN should never be made to endure it.
-
-Not far from our station, at a place called St. Lewis’ Bay, our
-captain purchased some land, and actually sent some of our men to
-make a clearing upon it, and to erect a log house. Whether this was
-a legal employment of the strength and skill of his men or not, I
-cannot decide; but it struck me as being a perversion of the national
-resources to his own private benefit. Why should a captain of a ship
-of war be permitted to employ the time and energies of his men for
-private uses, while an officer of the government, who should employ
-its funds for his own advantage, would be charged with embezzlement
-and fraud? The cases are precisely alike, except that one uses the
-public money, the other what costs that money. It is a fraud on the
-country, and an imposition on the men.
-
-A tragic event occurred at Lewis’ Bay on the 4th of July, which
-occasioned a fearful sensation throughout the ship. I was sent
-thither that day in the launch. Feeling fatigued, I remained with
-another in the boat, which was anchored near the shore. After some
-time one of the crew, named Thomas Hill, came back for a pistol,
-for there were several in the boat, and deliberately charged it.
-My companion, an old _Macedonian_, named Cox, asked him what he
-wanted with a pistol. Hill, who was a very desperate fellow, told
-him to mind his own business, or he would shoot him. Cox, knowing
-his character, thought it best to let this insult pass, supposing he
-was only going off to shoot a dog or snake, as the latter creature
-abounded there. Having loaded his pistol, Hill went off, and we
-thought no more of the matter. Presently a man came running down to
-the boat to inform us that two of our men were quarrelling. Just
-at that moment, we heard the report of a pistol: hurrying to the
-spot, described by our informant, we found a shipmate, by the name
-of Smith, bleeding on the ground, with a pistol-shot lodged in his
-breast by Hill. We gathered round him; in his agony he begged us to
-shoot him dead, for his suffering was not to be endured. Supposing he
-was dying, our testimony to his statement that Hill was his murderer,
-was taken on the spot. The victim was then removed to a suitable
-place to be taken care of; the next day he was carried on board the
-brig, and from thence to a sort of hospital on shore, where, after
-lingering a few days, he died. The murderer was seized and placed in
-irons on board the brig. He was afterwards removed to another ship,
-but what was done with him I never heard with certainty; it was
-reported that he was pardoned.
-
-The cause of this fatal affray was that great instigator of crimes,
-RUM. The men were both under its influence; fired with its fumes,
-they lost all discretion, and commenced a quarrel: from words they
-proceeded to blows. In this struggle Smith had the advantage. Finding
-himself worsted, the other ran down to the boat for a pistol. With
-this, he returned and threatened to shoot his adversary. Smith
-demanded a pistol for himself, that, as he said, he might have fair
-play. At that instant his cowardly opponent shot him! Had they both
-been sober, this tragedy would never have been enacted. Who can
-reveal the effects of alcohol?
-
-From this station we sailed to Tampico, where we lay but a short
-time, meeting with nothing worthy of remark, except that we found
-abundance of turtle in the river; during the day we could see their
-heads peeping up from the river in all directions. At night we used
-to send our men ashore to take them. This was done by tracking them
-on the sand, whither they went to deposit their eggs. We used to turn
-them over on to their backs, and drag them down to the boat. When
-alongside they were hoisted on board with a tackle; some of them
-weighing four or five hundred weight. They were then killed, and
-converted into a soup for the whole ship’s company.
-
-The day after we left Tampico on our passage to Vera Cruz, I was
-looking out on the cat-head or starboard bow; seeing a sail, I
-shouted, “Sail ho!” when three other vessels hove in sight. These
-were all patriot privateers, so we were ordered to our quarters; but
-the vessels, discovering our character, kept clear of our guns, and
-we pursued our own course.
-
-About ten o’clock, A. M., we saw two more of these privateers,
-crowded with men, but mounting only one long gun. Mistaking us for
-a Spanish brig, with money on board, they fired most lustily for us
-to heave to. We mounted short carronades, excepting two long nines
-at the bows, so we bore down, all hands being at their quarters, to
-bring our short guns to bear upon them. Meanwhile we kept one of the
-long nines in full blast. I was stationed at this gun; and it being
-my duty to sponge and load, I had to exert every muscle and strain
-every nerve, as, firing only one gun, it was necessary to discharge
-it as often as possible. Before, however, we came near enough to
-injure them, they discovered what we were, fired a leeward gun in
-token of friendship, and hauled off. If they had not, our men very
-_elegantly_ observed, they would have found they had taken the wrong
-pig by the ear.
-
-We soon came in sight of the beautiful revolving light, which throws
-its friendly beams on the port of Vera Cruz, where, as in the former
-places, we lay a short time, and then, after visiting some other
-ports, we returned to our former station at Ship Island. Here,
-however, we remained for only a brief period, before we were under
-weigh for New Orleans, from which place we sailed to Havana. Such is
-the constant change kept up by men of war on a cruise.
-
-On this passage, I was placed in a position which exposed me to the
-punishment of the lash, though by a mere accident I escaped. There
-was a habit indulged in among us, which is common among all sailors
-at sea; I mean that of stealing a nap during our watch at night.
-Seated on the carriage of a gun, or on a shot-locker, with folded
-arms, we indulged in many a minute of sweet sleep, notwithstanding
-it was contrary to the rules of the ship. To prevent this as much
-as possible, the officer of the watch used to give the first man he
-caught napping, a handspike, with which he was compelled to walk
-the deck until he found another sleeper, to whom he was allowed
-to transfer his burden. One night I was caught dozing, and had to
-perform the consequent march with the handspike. After walking about,
-without success, in search of a sleeper, for some time, I thought it
-might be well to try my fortune in the tops. Scarcely had I set foot
-on the top, before the officer below cried, “Fore-top, there!”
-
-“Sir?”
-
-“Aloft, and take in the fore-top-gallant sail!”
-
-This order caused every man to spring to his station. Supposing no
-one would pass before the mast, I stood my handspike upright against
-it. But there happened to be a man, by the name of Knight, dozing
-there; and when he was aroused by the command of the officer, he
-passed before the mast to get on to the starboard side. As sailors
-usually grasp something when aloft, he missed his hold of what he
-intended to catch, and seized my handspike, which of course fell.
-To my consternation, he fell with it. Tumbling out of the fore-top,
-he fortunately struck the foot-rope of the fore-yard, which broke
-the force of his fall. When he reached the deck, he came bouncing
-on a tall, stout Irishman, named Tom Smith, who, not imagining the
-cause of so rough and sudden an assault, roared out, as they both
-fell together on the deck, “Och! indeed you have killed me!” Here,
-however, he was mistaken; he was more frightened than hurt; and
-the innocent cause of his fright was able to resume his duties,
-after two or three days’ respite. Very fortunately for my back, the
-unlucky handspike was not suspected; and my share in this serio-comic
-accident remained a secret within my own breast.
-
-It has often been a subject of surprise to my mind, that men so
-seldom fall from the tops, in the long night-watches they keep there.
-Often have I stood two hours, and, sometimes, when my shipmates have
-forgotten to relieve me, four long, tedious hours, on the royal
-yard, or the top-gallant yard, without a man to converse with. Here,
-overcome with fatigue and want of sleep, I have fallen into a dreamy,
-dozy state, from which I was roused by a lee lurch of the ship.
-Starting up, my hair has stood on end with amazement at the danger I
-had so narrowly escaped. But, notwithstanding this sudden fright, a
-few minutes had scarcely elapsed before I would be nodding again. How
-wonderful that more are not swallowed in the hungry deep!
-
-When the weather was rough, we were indulged with permission to stand
-on the fore-top-sail yard, or on the top-gallant cross-trees; and, if
-the ship rolled heavily, we lashed ourselves to the mast, for greater
-safety. I can assure my readers, there is nothing desirable in this
-part of a sailor’s duty. In whatever the pleasure of a life at sea
-consists, it is not in keeping a look-out from the mast-head at night.
-
-But the most disagreeable of all is, to be compelled to stand on
-these crazy elevations, when half dead with sea-sickness. Some
-suppose that sailors are never sea-sick after the first time they
-go to sea. This is a mistake; it is very much with them as it is
-with landsmen, in respect to being sick in a coach. Those who are
-of bilious temperaments, are always affected, more or less, when
-they ride in a stage or sleigh; while others are never sick on these
-occasions. So with seamen; some are never sea-sick, others are sick
-only when going out of port, while some are so in every gale of wind.
-Mr. Dana mentions some of the crew in his ship, who were sick, after
-being at sea two years, as they came to Boston. I was usually sick
-after laying some time in port, and have often stood at the mast-head
-when so sick that any landsman on shore, in a similar state, would
-think it hard if he could not lie abed. For a sailor, there is no
-allowance made for sea-sickness; he must remain at his post until it
-is time to be relieved.
-
-When we entered Havana, we came to anchor near the Spanish fort, and
-fired a salute, which was courteously returned by the Spaniards. We
-had been here but a short time, before an Irishman, named Dougherty,
-who had formerly deserted from the Spanish garrison, took it into
-his head to run away from our brig. This he accomplished by the
-assistance of some Spaniards, to whom he made himself known. Several
-others also left us, in this port, among whom was our swearing
-sailing-master; and a great deal was said about running away
-throughout the ship. The man who was flogged on suspicion at New
-Orleans, now endeavored to get off in reality. He strayed from the
-boat, but the officer, meeting him, endeavored to force him back. He
-resisted; a struggle ensued; the officer fell to the ground, and the
-man called to the Spaniards to assist him. They left him, however, to
-fight his own battles; and the officer, having succeeded in getting
-the advantage, presented a pistol to his breast, and he surrendered.
-For this offence, he was flogged most fearfully. In the British
-service, he would have been hung! It is certain death with them, to
-strike an officer.
-
-Hearing so much said about running away, and feeling almost as
-unhappy as when in the _Macedonian_, I began to think of it myself.
-Sometimes I thought of trying to get into the Spanish garrison as
-a soldier; at others, of joining some of the numerous slavers that
-lay there, and in which our men said a good chance could be had. Sad
-chances, as they now appear, especially the latter; but I was young
-and ignorant. My feelings and the advice and opinion of my shipmates
-influenced me more than the dictates of an enlightened understanding.
-Resolving to make a trial, if opportunity offered, I one day put
-on an extra shirt and drew on a second pair of pantaloons. When
-thus prepared, the officer of the deck happened to discover the
-two waistbands of my trousers; he questioned me with a suspicious
-curiosity. I told him as specious a tale as I could invent on the
-spot; which was, that I had been mending my trousers, and, before
-they were finished, was called to go ashore in the boat, and not
-having time to put them away, had slipped them on. Fortunately, a
-needle and some thread which I had about me, confirmed my story and
-saved me from difficulty. It was pretty obvious, however, that the
-officer, though silenced, was not _satisfied_; for I was so closely
-watched, after that day, I gave up the idea of escape as utterly
-futile and hopeless.
-
-From Havana we returned to the mouth of the Mississippi, where
-we captured the _Comet_, a patriot schooner, on suspicion that
-the patriotism of her crew had degenerated into something less
-respectable. Harsh as it must have sounded in the ears of her
-officers, we charged them with piracy; took possession of the
-vessel, and brought her hands, as prisoners, on board our brig. Her
-master’s name was Mitchell; his crew were all stout, fierce-looking
-blacks, having all sorts of odd names, such as Monday, Friday, &c.
-She had a rich cargo, and contained large sums of money. It was
-reported that they had attacked an island somewhere in the Gulf
-of Mexico, and murdered its governor. We put them in irons, with
-sentries over them, who were charged to cut off their heads if they
-dared to lift them above the hatchway. I performed this duty a part
-of the time, parading round the hatch with a drawn cutlass; but they
-showed no symptoms of resistance, and were sent in their vessel to
-New Orleans. Their fate I never ascertained.
-
-This adventure cost one of our own crew, an Irishman, by the name of
-Tom Smith, a severe flogging. Smith was quite a moral philosopher
-in his way; though it is to be regretted that his philosophy was
-a little infected with lunacy. Its premises were certainly sound,
-but, unfortunately, its conclusions bore but little relation to
-the parent of whom they boasted. He taught that man was born to do
-good; that his chief good was the promotion of his own interests;
-and that, per consequence, he should help himself to whatever he
-could lay his hands on, without regard to the rights of others. With
-these views, Tom earnestly defended the rightfulness of piracy, and
-could he have managed to get on board a pirate vessel, or even have
-contrived to wrest our own ship from the hands of her officers, and
-hoist the black flag, he would have cheerfully done so. But somehow,
-although he had made a number of disciples among his shipmates, our
-captain paid no manner of respect to his theories; for, when Tom, in
-consistency with his often declared principles, deliberately carried
-off a large sum of money from our capture, to his own quarters, the
-captain, who perceived the theft himself, ordered him to the gangway,
-and administered as many hard lashes, as if Tom had had no philosophy
-at all.
-
-But, although Tom Smith’s philosophy did not save its unlucky
-advocate from the unphilosophic punishment of the whip, it
-nevertheless exerted a baneful influence on the morals of our crew.
-Many of them were doubtless bad enough when they came on board; but
-a more complete school for the practise of iniquity never existed,
-than that on board our brig. Profanity, blasphemy, lying, licentious
-conversation, and even a system of petty stealing, were practised on
-a large scale. Many of the men were ripe for any crime within the
-power of depraved humanity to commit, and I have often thought that
-even the decks of a privateer or a pirate, could not lead one faster
-and deeper into the extremes of wickedness, than did the influence of
-our main deck.
-
-With what a voice do such pictures of sailor immorality, call for
-exertion on the part of an enlightened Christian community, in behalf
-of seamen? Where is the presence of the meek spirit of Christianity
-more needed, than on the decks of our merchant and naval vessels?
-Where would missionaries and Bibles accomplish more than here? There
-is no sphere of Christian usefulness so important, so promising as
-this. Every vessel in the navy should have its chaplain. Not one of
-your proud, fun-loving, graceless wine-bibbers, but a humble, devoted
-man, who would not think it beneath his dignity to mingle with the
-common sailors, as a pastor among the flock of his affections,
-moulding their rough, but susceptible natures into the image of
-virtue, by the force of his pious example, and the influence of
-his effectual prayers. Then, in the merchant service, a species of
-itinerant missionary might be indefinitely useful. He might be sent
-out by a society, pledged for his support; and, by permission of
-the owners, sail in a ship on her outward passage. Arrived at her
-port, he might sail to another place, in a different ship, and then
-return home in a third. In this way, a score of devoted men of the
-right stamp, could exert an unparalleled influence on the character
-of sailors. Vice, irreligion, profanity, and insubordination, would
-presently flee away before the beautiful purity of religion, and
-our ships, instead of being designated as floating hells, would
-become houses of God, arks of holiness, consecrated Bethels! Pray,
-Christian, that this desirable consummation may be speedily attained;
-and be not satisfied with merely praying; add _action_ to your
-prayers. Stir up your church to the claims of seamen! Give your money
-to assist in supporting sailors’ missionaries, Bethels, and the like.
-Make it the settled purpose of your heart, not to rest until you
-behold the sailor elevated to his proper position, which is that of a
-CHRISTIAN MAN!
-
-[Illustration: (Decorative Separator)]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
-
-After a short stay at the Balize, we put to sea once more, for the
-purpose, as it was understood, of touching at Havana, and then
-returning to New York. This was a cheerful voyage; the idea of a
-speedy return to America, spread a feeling of exquisite delight over
-the whole crew, and converted the performance of our duty into a
-pleasure. One effect was, to set those hands, who were gifted with
-the talent, so highly prized in a man of war, of “spinning yarns,”
-busily at work during every spare moment, when a group could be
-gathered to listen. Foremost among these intellectual time-killers
-was Richard Dickinson, a messmate of mine, a good-natured Englishman.
-He called himself the son of Old Dick, by which epithet he was
-usually called. Dick’s powers were now in great demand, and he
-exercised them to our universal satisfaction, but with how great
-regard for truth I cannot determine. It is probable, however, that
-truth entered very little into Dick’s productions. He was a sort of
-off-hand novelist; all he cared for was _effect_, and where truth
-failed him, fiction generously loaned her services. So bewitching
-were Dick’s stories, that I used to long for the hour when we could
-lay in our hammocks and listen. My first salutation, when we lay for
-the last time in the port of Havana, was, “Come, Dick, tell us a
-yarn.”
-
-“What is the use? you will go to sleep,” he used to reply.
-
-“No I won’t, Dick; I can listen to your yarns all night,” was my
-usual answer.
-
-Dick would then begin some yarn, which, if not so interesting as the
-thousand-and-one stories in the Arabian Nights’ entertainments, was
-at least as true to nature, and, in respect to its humor, might be
-compared to some of the sayings of that illustrious personage, Sancho
-Panza, the renowned squire of the immortal Don Quixote; but, in
-spite of my promises, I usually gave notice of my condition after a
-short time, by performing a concord of nasal sounds, vulgarly called
-snoring, which would set Dick to swearing, and often put an end to
-his performances for the night.
-
-I need scarcely say, that these “yarns” were by no means favorable
-in their moral effects on the listener. They generally consisted
-in fictitious adventures on the sea and on the shore, plentifully
-interlarded in their recital with profane oaths and licentious
-allusions. When seamen become elevated, and are properly instructed,
-these filthy stories will be superseded by reading good and useful
-literature, with an abundance of which every ship should be supplied
-by the benevolence of the Christian public.
-
-On the passage to Havana, Dick and myself fell under the displeasure
-of the captain. We were stationed one night in the fore-top, where we
-were comfortably dozing away the time. The captain was on deck. The
-officer of the watch hailed the fore-top. We did not hear him until
-the call was repeated two or three times. For this we were ordered
-below, and told by the captain that we should be flogged the next day
-before the whole crew. With this consolatory information we returned
-to our station, without the least inclination to sleep again for that
-watch. With a sort of philosophic desperation, I laughed and said,
-“Dick, which would you rather do--have your grog stopped awhile, or
-take a flogging?”
-
-Dick was very fond of his grog; so he replied, “Oh, I had rather
-they would stop my wind than my grog, and would sooner be flogged by
-considerable than lose that.” I question, however, if he had been
-left to choose between grog and whip at the gangway, whether he would
-not have altered his tone in favor of his grog. Still, his answer
-shows, how strongly sailors are attached to their beloved rum. I am
-happy to know that this regard is dying away, and that temperance is
-doing something among sailors. May it go on, until cold water is as
-popular in a man of war, as grog was twenty years since. We never
-heard, however, of our offence again. Dick was quite a favorite
-with the officers, and, except a blow in the head, given me by the
-captain, I had never been punished. Perhaps these were the reasons
-why we escaped the gangway.
-
-At Havana we got a large amount of Spanish dollars aboard for some
-merchants in New York. These were smuggled from the shore. Our men
-were sent off in the boats, with their pockets and bosoms well
-stuffed with the precious metal; and in this way we soon got it all
-safely lodged in our hold, except that the captain’s servant, falling
-desperately in love with them, furnished himself with all he could
-carry, and ran away from the ship.
-
-After adding to our freight of dollars a fine supply of oranges,
-lemons, pine-apples, &c., we cheerfully weighed anchor and set sail
-for New York. We reached that port after a short and prosperous
-voyage; meeting with no incident, except that the cold weather caused
-us a little suffering, and enabled the purser to add a few dollars to
-the profits of the voyage, by supplying us with a lot of red flannel
-shirts.
-
-When I was on board the _Siren_, I was contented. The officers were
-kind, the crew were peaceful and well-behaved; but in the _Boxer_,
-some of the officers were severe, and the crew corrupt, and I did
-not enjoy myself at all. Some said that in time of war the men were
-better treated than in time of peace; but though this may be true
-to a limited extent, yet I think the difference in these two brigs
-was owing more to the character of their respective officers than
-anything else. Be this as it may, my experience in the _Boxer_ had
-completely sickened me of man of war life, and I determined, if
-possible, to get free of it at once and forever.
-
-My station, as one of the crew of the jolly-boat, gave me frequent
-opportunities to accomplish my purpose. So, one day, at the
-solicitation of a shipmate, I resolved to make the attempt. Cruel
-treatment was my excuse; yet I have sometimes been ashamed of my
-course in this instance; and would heartily advise all boys in the
-naval service to stay their time out. We were successful in escaping;
-and as we had but little money, I therefore proceeded directly from
-the shore to a pawn shop, and there disposed of our pea-jackets,
-which were new, and for which the purser had charged us ten dollars
-apiece. We obtained the pitiful sum of six dollars for the two. With
-this, we started in a hack, which was to carry us outside of the
-city. We then travelled hard all day, resting at night in a barn,
-where we suffered extremely from the cold. The next day we pursued
-our way towards New Haven. The day after, we were still on the road.
-This was the Sabbath, and we felt strangely at seeing the good people
-of the village, through which we passed, going to meeting. The
-foot-stoves, that the grave matrons bore in their hands, were things
-I had never seen before; so, to the great merriment of my companion,
-I observed that they were excellent contrivances to carry their books
-in to meeting! We reached New Haven on Monday evening, where we put
-up at a sailors’ boarding-house for the night. Here my shipmate left
-me, and I proceeded alone to Hartford, begging my support by the way,
-for my money was by this time all exhausted.
-
-At Hartford I tried to ship on board some merchant vessel. Not
-succeeding, I strove to find some one to take me as an apprentice to
-instruct me in the art of bootmaking, but with no better success.
-These repulses discouraged me. It was Christmas day, and the
-associations connected with the day--the merry-makings of my early
-boyhood--were anything but pleasant to me in my distress. The bell
-was tolling for the funeral of priest Strong, and it seemed as if
-the melancholy of the mourners fully accorded with my feelings, and
-was preferable in my mind to the spirit of rejoicing that prevailed
-among those who were keeping merry Christmas in merry mood. Perhaps,
-if they had invited me to partake of their cheer, I should have
-changed my opinion. As it was, with only five cents in my pocket, I
-wandered lonely and sad through the city. With a feeling of despair
-I stepped into a cellar for something to drink. They charged me five
-cents, and left me at once friendless and penniless. At the bridge,
-the toll-keeper demanded a cent. I looked at him fiercely, and told
-him I had nothing. He let me pass over toll free. Towards night,
-feeling tired and hungry, I endeavored to hire myself. But who would
-employ an utter stranger? I went to a number of houses, imploring a
-lodging for the night. With freezing coldness, I experienced repulse
-after repulse, until my heart chilled with horror, with the fear
-of spending that long, cold night out of doors. At last I called
-on a kind-hearted Presbyterian, who gave me a supper, lodging and
-breakfast. Their morning and evening devotions were peculiarly
-interesting to me; for, excepting while a prisoner at the Cape of
-Good Hope, I had never listened to an extemporaneous prayer.
-
-The next morning I left this truly hospitable family, and pursued my
-inquiries for employment. Some asked if I could chop wood; others, if
-I knew anything about farming; and when I answered “No,” they shook
-their heads, and I trudged on. Sometimes I offered to work for my
-board, but, being a sailor, and having no recommendations, people
-were afraid to take me into their families. Still I pushed on. A man
-overtook me in the town of Coventry, and began a very interesting and
-faithful discourse about religion. I listened respectively; he took
-me home with him, where, although he was a deacon, he gave me some
-cider-brandy: but these were not the days of temperance. After this
-he sent me to Pomeroy’s tavern, where he thought they would hire me.
-This application failing, he advised me to apply at the glass works
-which were a little distance from that place. With this advice, I
-took leave of Deacon Cook, and proceeded towards the glass-houses.
-
-Before reaching them, however, night came. A family, who occupied
-a red house, received me, whose hospitality I returned by singing
-a number of sea songs. Early the next morning, I tried to get work
-at the glass-house, but though I was willing to stay for my board,
-they would not take me. Mr. Turner, the agent, very kindly gave me
-a breakfast, and then I left him, determined to get to Boston if
-possible, and go to sea once more.
-
-My situation was really a trying one: my only clothing was a blue
-jacket and trousers; shoes more than half worn out, and a little
-tarpaulin hat stuck on the back of my head, in genuine sailor
-fashion.[27] Mittens and money were alike far off from my fingers,
-and friends were as scarce as money. People, too, seemed afraid of a
-sailor; and this, in addition to all my other troubles, rendered me
-an object of suspicion. At such times, I assure my young reader, that
-the picture of a kind mother and a good home, are but too faithfully
-presented to the mind, filling it with a thousand vain and useless
-regrets. No young man need desire to be in the outcast prodigal
-condition in which I stood, in the depth of that cold winter.
-
-When I reached the town of Mansfield, I called at the house of a
-Mr. Nathaniel Dunham; the kind manners and friendly language of
-whose lady I shall never forget. She told me that if I was honest,
-Providence would shortly open some way by which I could live.
-Her words fell on my ear like a prophecy, and I left the house,
-confident of some favorable turn in my affairs before long. At
-Mansfield Four Corners, I inquired of Dr. Waldo, who, with several
-others, sat under a piazza, and afterwards of a Mr. Edmund Freeman,
-for employ. They gave me no encouragement. Persevering, I at last met
-with a Mr. Peter Cross, who, seeing my sailor garb, asked what ships
-I had sailed in. Hearing me mention the _Macedonian_, he said, “There
-is a man here whose name is William Hutchinson. He was taken in her.
-Do you know him?”
-
-“Yes,” said I, after a moment’s recollection; “he was our armorer’s
-mate.”
-
-Of course, I lost no time in seeking for my old shipmate. After
-crossing various lots, and getting vexed and perplexed for want of
-proper direction, I reached his comfortable homestead. He did not
-recognise me at first, on account of the great alteration a few years
-had made in my size and appearance; but, when he did recall me to his
-recollection, with the generous frankness of a sailor, he offered
-me all the hospitality and assistance in his power. A good supper
-was speedily spread; and then, seated before his ample fireplace,
-sparkling and crackling with a cheerful blaze, we recounted our
-adventures. He had wandered into Connecticut, and married a very
-respectable woman. They now owned a house and some land, and were
-in tolerably comfortable and thriving circumstances. With such
-discourse, we talked away the better part of the night, when the old
-tar showed me my chamber, archly observing that “my bed would not
-rock much.”
-
-The next morning, he said I should not leave him until I was
-provided for in some way or other. Through his influence, a Mr.
-James, his brother-in-law, employed me to work in his cloth-dressing
-establishment. As I was ignorant of the business, and was not really
-needed, my board was to be my only compensation.
-
-My new situation soon grew delightful to me, and I felt happier than
-I had ever done since I left Bladen. My time passed very pleasantly,
-especially my evenings, when the neighbors came in to hear me spin
-sea yarns and forecastle songs. Some of the young men of the “baser
-sort” judged me to be a fit instrument to act Samson for their
-enjoyment, in the house of God. So they invited me to attend the
-meetings of the Methodist Episcopal church in that place. But they
-greatly misjudged the character of seamen; who, as before remarked,
-usually pay respect to the ordinances and ministers of religion.
-I attended the meeting, but not to make sport. The result of this
-ill-designed invitation on myself will appear hereafter.
-
-The winter months fled, and the spring found me unfurnished with
-means co-extensive with my wants. Determined to remain ashore, if
-possible, I hired myself to a farmer for my board. In the evenings I
-braided straw hats, and thus obtained a scanty supply of clothing.
-A little incident, illustrative of the thoughtless playfulness of
-sailor character, may not be displeasing to my young readers.
-
-Whoever has seen a perfect novice undertake to guide an ox-team,
-may form some idea of the ludicrous adventures through which I
-passed during my agricultural novitiate with these horned animals.
-Perseverance, however, gave me some little control over our team,
-when, as fate would have it, my employer “_swapped_” them for another
-pair. When they came home, after some little hallooing and whipping,
-I succeeded in “yoking” them; then seizing the goad-stick, with as
-much dignity as ever Neptune wielded his trident, I mounted the
-tongue, (which I called the bowsprit,) and with the ladders rigged up
-at both ends I gave the word of command to my team. They, however,
-showed signs of mutiny, and, taking to their heels, bore me off in
-triumph. This was sport indeed; there I stood, my head and shoulders
-passed between the front rigging, laughing as if my sides would
-burst, while rakes, forks and boards were playing leap-frog, at the
-tail of my cart, and my master’s boy was half frightened out of
-his wits. At length the angry voice of my master roused me from my
-sportive mood; he did not relish the rough usage his farming tools
-were receiving, and coming up with my horned steeds, he speedily
-stopped their speed and my sport. I need only add that his rebukes
-made me more careful afterwards.
-
-When the haying season commenced, I left my first employer, and
-obtained the sum of eight dollars per month, and board; the wages,
-however, in accordance with the true Yankee method of making money
-out of everything, were to be payable at the village store. This
-change led me into a situation which proved another link in the
-chain, which ended in my conversion to God. The son of my employer
-died; he was about fourteen years of age; in company with a pious
-member of the Methodist church, I sat up one night with the corpse.
-With the faithfulness of a true Christian, he improved the occasion
-by seriously conversing with me on the great concerns of immortality.
-His discourse, together with the funeral services, had a very
-softening and gracious influence on my feelings, though the only
-present, practical effect was a more punctual attendance on the
-services of the sanctuary.
-
-Towards winter, I went to live with Mr. Joseph Conant, to learn the
-business of filing augers and steelyards. Here my acquaintance was
-considerably enlarged, as several young men were attached to the
-establishment. Among them was one who made a profession of religion.
-As is usual among the young, we were devoted triflers; and he, to my
-astonishment, was as jocose and merry as the rest. Ignorant as I was
-of religion, his conduct appeared strangely inconsistent; I wondered
-he did not converse with me about my soul. One day I took him aside
-and faithfully expressed my views of his conduct. He acknowledged
-his guilt. Afterwards we attended meetings in company, and he was
-faithful in speaking with me about the things that belonged to my
-salvation. He urged upon me the importance of giving myself up to
-God at once, and affectionately invited me to attend class-meeting.
-My mind was seriously inclined, but I could not yet venture upon so
-close an intercourse with the people of God.
-
-One Sabbath evening, my friend, Ela Dunham, who had dealt so
-faithfully with me, when we watched together over the corpse of Orson
-Kidder, asked me, “When do you intend to set out and seek religion?”
-
-I replied, somewhat evasively, “Any time.”
-
-“Well,” said he, “are you willing we should pray for you, and will
-you go forward for prayers to-night?”
-
-To this I replied, that I would think of it. The meeting proved to
-be intensely interesting. My desire to express the inward workings
-of my mind, grew strong. Of the forms and practices of Christians
-in revivals, I was altogether ignorant, having never witnessed a
-conversion in my life; still, it seemed to me highly proper to
-declare my feelings in the presence of Christians, that they might
-give such instructions as were necessary to lead me into the right
-way. With these views, I determined to rise and speak, though the
-evil one whispered, “Not yet! not yet!” in my ears. Just as I stood
-up, some one, not seeing me, began to sing; this, I took to be a
-suitable excuse for further delay, and sat down, heartily wishing
-that no one had seen me. Fortunately, my friend Dunham had witnessed
-my movement. He requested them to stop singing, because a young man
-wished to speak. Thus encouraged, I told them I was then nineteen
-years of age, and it seemed to me too much of life to spend in sin;
-that eternity was a solemn idea, and I desired them to tell me how
-to prepare to enter upon it with joy. They proposed to pray with me.
-We then all kneeled down together. Most fervently did they pray for
-the divine blessing to rest on the stranger youth, bowed in penitence
-before them, and most sincerely did I join my prayers with theirs
-before the throne of God. After prayer, they sung the following
-familiar lines, which I insert both for their intrinsic excellence,
-and for the pleasantness of the associations connected with them in
-my own mind.
-
- “Alas, and did my Saviour bleed!
- And did my Sovereign die!
- Would he devote that sacred head,
- For such a worm as I?
-
- O the Lamb! the loving Lamb!
- The Lamb on Calvary,
- The Lamb that was slain,
- Yet lives again,
- To bleed and die for me.”
-
-Although these words were very sweetly applied to my mind, I did not
-feel any evidence of the favor of God that night. The next day, with
-a strong purpose to live for eternity, I entered on my daily tasks.
-Religion was the theme of my thoughts and discourse; during the day,
-a sweet calm came over me; peace and joy filled my soul. It was the
-pardoning love of God applied to my guilty spirit.
-
-Ah! thought I, this must be religion; but desiring to be right, I
-went to my employer and communicated my feelings to him. His reply
-rather damped my joy. He was a moralist; morality, he said, was
-all-sufficient to secure a man’s well being both in this life and
-in that to come. This, however, did not satisfy my mind. To me it
-seemed certain that genuine repentance, and a change of heart, were
-all-essential to my happiness; and these, if not already mine, I
-determined to possess.
-
-The remarks and experience of the Methodists, at their prayer
-meetings, were greatly blessed to my comfort. Gradually the light
-broke; the day-star shone. Peace, like a river, filled my breast;
-joy, as from an unfailing fountain, bubbled up within me; love
-animated my affections; by day and by night I sang the praises
-of God, and the society of Christ’s dear people seemed precious
-indeed to my soul. I thought this sweet frame would last forever. I
-determined it should, so far as my efforts were necessary for its
-continuance. Alas! I knew not my own heart: a dreary wilderness state
-was before me, and I, like many an unwary soul before me, heedlessly
-stumbled into its gloomy shadows.
-
-By a sudden change in the condition of my employer, I was led to
-seek employment in Ashford. Here, in the shop of Mr. Giles Stebbins,
-I was surrounded by many light-minded, trifling young men. Falling
-into the same snare for which I had reproved a professor before I
-was converted, my peace and calm were lost, every evidence darkened,
-and the wretchedness of a backslider in heart filled my soul.
-This apostacy lasted several months, when, through the love and
-long-suffering of a gracious God, I was once more restored to a state
-of salvation. Since that time, though I have not gained all that is
-desirable, and that is offered in an abundant gospel, yet I have been
-trying to stem the torrent of iniquity, which runs through the earth,
-and striving to make my way to the port of Glory.
-
-The next fall I walked eighteen miles to a camp-meeting in Thompson,
-Conn., the first I had ever attended. Though the scene was novel, I
-soon took a deep interest in the services; especially when informed
-that a sailor was going to preach one evening. This sailor was
-no other than the well-known Rev. E. T. Taylor.[28] His text was
-in Philippians iv. 19: “But my God shall supply all your needs;”
-which he handled in his usual happy and eccentric, powerful manner.
-I had never before seen a religious sailor; to hear one preach,
-therefore, in such forcible and effective style, was to me a source
-of unutterable delight. Nor were the listening masses before the
-stand, who hung with intense eagerness on his lips, less pleased than
-myself. They broke out into loud expressions of praise to God for his
-wonderful mercies. “This,” said the speaker, “is but a drop from a
-bucket! What will it be when we drink from the mighty ocean itself?”
-
-At this meeting I saw sinners yielding to Christ with tears of sacred
-penitence, for the first time in my life. Never in all my life had a
-spectacle more sublimely beautiful met my eye. I do not believe the
-world affords a more grateful sight than that of a sinner weeping and
-repenting before his Creator.
-
-The parting scene of that meeting left an indelible impression on my
-memory. Even now I see that affectionate company marching in regular
-and joyful procession before the stand, each shaking hands, as he
-passed, with the preachers. Still I feel the tears chasing each other
-down my cheeks, as I grasped the hand of the sailor preacher so
-firmly, that it seemed I should never let it go; while he, seeing my
-emotion, observed, “Never mind, brother; we are on board of Zion’s
-ship now.” I had stood tearless alike amidst the wailings of the
-tempest and the roar of the battle, but here, among a few Christians
-at a camp-meeting, my heart was soft as a woman’s, and my tears
-flowed like rain. Does the reader inquire what made the difference? I
-answer, it was the love of God.
-
-When I returned home, one of my first acts was to unite myself with
-the Methodist Episcopal church: an act which has led to the formation
-of many pleasant friendships, and which has proved the source of much
-religious enjoyment to my soul.
-
-My mind often reverts, with a mixture of joy and sorrow, to the
-fate of the three hundred men and boys who sailed with me in the
-_Macedonian_, when I left England for the first time. Of these,
-alas! how many perished in battle! The rest were scattered over the
-four quarters of the globe. Beside myself, I never heard of but one
-of them who embraced religion. This was John Wiskey, one of our
-quartermasters. He settled in New London, and when he met in class,
-for the first time, he said he blessed God he had got out of that
-floating hell, the _Macedonian_. He afterwards removed to Catskill,
-on the North River, where he maintained a good Christian reputation.
-
-My shipmate, who received me so hospitably in Mansfield, became
-unfortunate, lost his property, and died, but not before I had the
-satisfaction of offering a prayer at his bedside.
-
-The little fellow who escaped from the _Macedonian_ with me met
-with a melancholy fate. This I learned one day from the following
-paragraph in a newspaper: “Drowned, out of a pilot boat, off
-Charleston Bar, Mr. James Day, one of the crew of His Britannic
-Majesty’s late frigate _Macedonian_.” Thus have I been signally
-favored--a brand plucked from the fire. For this special favor I hope
-to render my heavenly Father the eternal tribute of a grateful heart.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
-
-During the various scenes, dangers and wanderings of these years
-of my youth, I had not forgotten the home of my boyhood; and, now
-that I was becoming somewhat settled in my prospects, I wrote an
-affectionate letter to my mother. After a delay of several months, I
-received two letters in reply, one from my mother, and the other from
-my sister. That from my mother is inserted in this narrative, for the
-purpose of exhibiting to the young reader, who may fancy that his
-parents feel no very great interest in his welfare, another instance
-of the deep, undying love of a mother’s heart.
-
- BLADEN, December 23, 1818.
-
- My dearly beloved Child:--
-
- I cannot describe the sensations I felt when I received a letter
- from your dear hands. It was the greatest pleasure I have enjoyed
- since you left me. I have never been sorry but once since you
- left, and that has been ever since; but I hope the Almighty has
- ordered it all for the best. I have never forgotten to pray for
- you morning, night, and many times in the day, though I talked
- very little about you to any one, because I did not wish to make
- any one else uncomfortable. But that God, who knows the secrets of
- all hearts, sees how sincerely thankful I am because he has been
- pleased to hear my prayers that I might hear from you again; for
- I was fearful I never should. But now I have great hopes that the
- blessed Lord will protect you, and spare our lives to see each
- other again.
-
- My dear child, you have not stated how you came to be separated
- from the crew when the ship was taken, nor how you have been
- employed since. You must be the best judge whether it will be safe
- for you to venture home. It would be a great pleasure for me to
- see you, but if there is danger of bad consequences, on account
- of your having been in the service against your country, and if
- any bad consequence should follow your coming home, it would make
- me more unhappy than I have ever been yet. If there is no danger,
- I should be very happy to have you come home and learn a trade;
- as, thank God, I have it in my power to do something for you; and
- nothing shall be wanting to make you comfortable, that I can do.
- You say it may be one or two years before you come; but pray come
- the first opportunity, as you will be gladly received by us all. If
- it is a want of money that prevents you from coming, and you cannot
- work your passage, perhaps you can get one by showing the captain
- of some ship my letter, and he may depend on being paid as soon as
- you arrive in England. If neither will do, send me word; and if
- there is any place in London where your passage money can be paid,
- I will pay it there for you. You are right in supposing yourself
- twenty-two years of age on the nineteenth of March (1819). Your
- sister Maria is twenty. She is grown a fine young woman; I am happy
- to say is very steady and thoughtful; though not of a very strong
- constitution. She is at service in London. She has written to you,
- and I hope you will receive her letter with this.
-
- * * * * *
-
- I hope, my dear child, you will not fail to come home. Send me all
- the particulars of your life, at the first opportunity. I am afraid
- you have gone through a great deal of trouble and hardship since
- I saw you. But the merciful Lord has been pleased to bring you
- through the whole, and He is able to carry you through more, if you
- put your trust in Him. It gave me great comfort to hear that you
- are so well disposed, as I am sure you are, from the spirit of your
- letter; it was more pleasure to me than if you had gained all the
- riches in the world. I wish I was as well acquainted with religion
- as yourself; but I will try to make a better use of my time, and
- should it please God to let you come home, I hope you will be the
- means of great good to me.
-
- There are a number of Methodist meetings about us. The people
- who live in our yard are very strict ones. I never disliked the
- Methodists; I think they have a great gift of religion. I sent
- your letter to Lady Churchill, formerly Lady Francis Spencer.
- Both Lord and Lady Churchill were glad to hear from you, and are
- your well-wishers. The Duke and Duchess of Marlborough are both
- dead. Blenheim is much altered for the worse, since his son has
- become Duke. Lord Francis, that was, makes a very good master; and
- when the Duke died, he left Blenheim. His country house is in the
- forest. Your father is his carpenter in the timber yard; he has
- filled this situation six weeks. He comes home every Saturday; and
- next spring they are going to place me and the children in a lodge
- near him. We hope to have the happiness of seeing you there.
-
- * * * * *
-
- It is eight years the twelfth of last July, since you left us.
- * * * Your father, brothers and sisters all join with me in hearty
- prayers to Almighty God, that his blessing may be upon you; and if
- it is his blessed will, we shall see you again; if it is not, we
- must be resigned to what is fitting for us, and pray that we may
- all meet in heaven, where all tears shall be wiped away. That God
- may bless you, my dear child, is the sincere prayer of
-
- Your ever loving mother,
- SUSAN NEWMAN.
-
-Notwithstanding the earnestness of my mother’s spirit, breathed out
-so ardently for my return in this letter, I dared not risk myself on
-British soil. Her expression of sorrow, if bad consequences should
-ensue, had its weight in determining me to remain; but a conversation
-with the celebrated Lorenzo Dow, who had recently returned from his
-English tour, settled the question. He said he had seen four men
-hung, who, like me, had been in the service of some other country,
-after deserting from their own. This was quite sufficient; for, much
-as I longed to visit the homes of my childhood, I had no disposition
-to do it with a gallows suspended over my head. I therefore wrote
-my mother, that, not having a regular discharge from the navy, it
-would be best for me to continue where I was; but I begged them to
-seriously think of emigrating themselves; since my father-in-law,
-being an excellent carpenter, could do well in New England. Alas! it
-was not for him ever to consider of this proposition; for, when my
-letter arrived, they were performing the sad obsequies of death over
-his breathless corpse. A prevailing fever had terminated a life of
-fifty-seven years, after a sickness of two weeks. My mother, now a
-widow the second time, after twelve years of pleasant union with her
-last husband, thought it unfitting, at her time of life, to venture
-across the ocean; and therefore all my plans for collecting my
-relatives on American soil, were blasted in the bud.
-
-Perhaps, after following me through the changes of my life at sea,
-the reader may feel a little interest in knowing how I succeeded
-as landsman. He has seen me escaping the breakers that met me on
-my first approach to the shore; and now, if his patience be not
-entirely exhausted, he may pursue my fortunes a little further.
-
-He left me, when my episode about home led him away from the
-thread of the narrative, busily at work as a filer of steel-yards,
-at Mansfield, Conn. From thence, I returned to Ashford, where I
-continued a year or two. At last, doubting the stability of my
-employer, and fearing lest what he owed me might be lost, I took up
-the whole in the shape of a wagon and a stock of steel-yards; then,
-purchasing a horse, I travelled from place to place to sell them; and
-in this manner got into a business which I have followed more or less
-ever since. After acquiring, by economy and diligence, a few hundred
-dollars, I opened a small store in Mansfield, with the intention of
-leading a still more settled life; though about that time my mind was
-strongly exercised with a desire to devote myself to the religious
-benefit of seamen. My sense of unfitness for so great a work, at last
-prevailed; and I proceeded with my plans of worldly business.
-
-The days of which I write were those on which the bright star of
-temperance had scarcely shone. Ministers, deacons, Christians, all
-used the deadly drinks. Was it surprising, therefore, that I, but
-so short a time before a rum-loving sailor, fell into the common
-current, and became a rum-seller? No, it was not strange! but it was
-a strange, a glorious display of restraining grace, that prevented me
-from being drawn into the snare I was thus thoughtlessly spreading
-for the poor drunkard.
-
-But even in those early days of temperance, I was not without
-my trials of mind in respect to the unholy traffic. Once, when
-at Hartford, making purchases for my store, of which rum formed
-no inconsiderable article, I accidentally heard of a lecture on
-temperance, to be delivered at Dr. Hawes’s[29] church. This was the
-first discourse on the subject I ever heard. The speaker excited
-a deep interest in my mind, as he told of the origin of rum, its
-primary costliness and rank among medicines, of the growth of
-distilleries, the consequent decline in its price, and the attending
-spread of drunkenness. So deadly a plot against the peace of the
-world, he said, could only have been contrived in hell.
-
-This discourse fell like a light on some dark opaque; it illuminated
-my understanding, disturbed my conscience. No sleep visited my eyes
-that night. Duty said, “Send back your team without rum in the
-morning.” Fear of men, public opinion, interest said, “No. Every
-other store-keeper sells it, and so may you.” The latter argument
-prevailed. Conscience was rebuked; the rum went to my store.
-
-Shortly after this struggle, I married a member of the Methodist
-church in Hartford. We removed to Somers, Connecticut, where I
-continued to sell rum, though, as before, with great caution and
-with much inward struggling of mind. At last I could hold out no
-longer, and in spite of the example of ministers, (some of whom often
-drank, though sparingly, at my house,) in spite of the sneers of the
-scornful, and of the fear of loss to my trade, I gave it up! It was
-for the poor, untaught sailor to set the example of sacrifice to the
-store-keepers of Somers. Three others imitated me in a short time.
-Not to me, but to the grace of God, be the glory of my decision and
-resolution. I can assure the modern rum-seller, whose lashed and
-tortured soul still cleaves to the rum barrel and the toddy stick,
-for the sake of the profit, that I have ever regarded that act as
-among the best of my life.
-
-Finding my present residence ill adapted to a successful prosecution
-of business, I closed up my concerns, and removed to Wilbraham,
-Mass., the place of my present abode; a pleasant town, but which is
-rendered more so by the very superior opportunities it affords for
-the education of children, in its most excellent and flourishing
-academy.
-
-Here my life glided pleasantly and quietly along, affording no
-incidents worthy of special record. Happiness presided at my domestic
-board, prosperity accompanied my temporal enterprises, and religion
-reigned as the ruling genius over the whole. My ways were committed
-unto the Lord, and he directed my steps; for which I praise him with
-my whole heart.
-
-In this delightful manner several years fled away; when, my business
-having led me, on one occasion, to New York, I heard that my old
-ship, the _Macedonian_, was in port. Animated with that regard for an
-old ship, which always inspires a genuine seaman, I went on board.
-She was so altered, I scarcely recognised her. Change, with an
-unsparing hand, had remodeled the decks and cabins, so that I felt
-somewhat lost where once every timber was familiar. This was rather
-a disappointment; however, I stood on the spot where I had fought in
-the din of battle; and with many a serious reflection recalled the
-horrors of that dreadful scene. The sailors, on witnessing the care
-with which I examined every thing, and supposing me to be a landsman,
-eyed me rather closely. Seeing their curiosity, I said, “Shipmates, I
-have seen this vessel before to-day: probably before any of you ever
-did.”
-
-The old tars gathered round me, eagerly listening to my tale of
-the battle, and they bore patiently, and with becoming gravity,
-the exhortation to lead a religious life, with which I closed my
-address. They appeared to be very susceptible of religious feeling;
-as, indeed, sailors are generally. Should any doubt this fact, let
-them hear the Rev. Mr. Chase, in New York, or Rev. E. T. Taylor,
-in Boston, in whose usually crowded houses of worship, the face
-of the rough, weather-beaten son of the ocean may be seen bedewed
-with penitential tears; especially at the church of the latter
-gentleman--than whom none know better how to adapt discourse to a
-sailor’s soul.
-
-During the flight of these years a constant correspondence had been
-kept up between me and my mother. She had constantly urged me to
-revisit my native land. To remove the last obstacle, she addressed a
-letter to Lady Churchill, to ascertain if I might safely return. She
-sent her the following note, the original of which is still in my
-possession:
-
- Lower Brook Street, Nov. 7, 1821.
-
- MRS NEWMAN,--
-
- I consulted my brother William upon the subject on which you wished
- for advice, as neither Lord C. nor myself could undertake to
- answer your inquiry; and I am glad to hear from him the following
- explanation in reply: “There is nothing to prevent Mrs. Newman’s
- son from coming home; for when the war was terminated, he was safe,
- even if he had entered into the enemy’s service; but he will of
- course forfeit the pay and any prize money due to him.”
-
- * * * * *
-
- I am, much yours,
- F. CHURCHILL.
-
-This note relieved me of all fear, but now it had become no small
-undertaking for me to go to Europe. To go alone would be very
-expensive; but to take my family, consisting now of a wife and three
-children, was much more so. Hence, I put it off year after year,
-still writing and begging them to visit me. When the late lamented
-Dr. Fisk[30] was in England, he visited my mother and brother, and
-related to them some of the facts in my life, which he had often
-heard me mention. She sent me two silver table spoons, which had
-belonged to my father, by the Doctor’s hands. My mother wrote about
-this visit of that “great, good man” with evident satisfaction.
-
-At last, I received a letter from home, which decided me to undertake
-the often postponed and long delayed voyage to my native land.
-This letter stated that there was a young man in Albany, with whose
-friends they were all well acquainted, and that he was about to
-visit his mother. I found this gentleman, whose name was William
-Warrington, and agreed to join him with my family in his intended
-voyage. This agreement made, we set about making preparations for the
-undertaking. If the reader desires to know the events of that visit,
-he must consult the ensuing chapter.
-
-[Illustration: (Decorative Separator)]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
-
-Weighed down under a pressure of despondency, arising partly from
-temporary illness, and partly from the greatness of the enterprise I
-had undertaken, and whose event was so uncertain, I left Wilbraham
-on Thursday morning, June 3d, 1841. A pleasant passage, by the way
-of Springfield and Hartford, brought us into New York early the next
-morning. By the following Monday, the 7th of June, we were all snugly
-stowed in a state-room of the second cabin[31] on board the splendid
-packet-ship, _George Washington_, bound for Liverpool.
-
-Before we sailed, however, I was fleeced of seven dollars by the
-cook of the ship. As passengers in the _second_ cabin, we had the
-privilege of furnishing ourselves with provisions. For the sum just
-mentioned, the cook had agreed to do all our cooking at the galley,
-insisting, however, on being paid in advance, because, he averred,
-several passengers, on former occasions, had obtained his services
-and failed to pay him; besides, he wanted to leave all the money he
-could with his wife. These arguments were, of course, unanswerable,
-and I paid him the sum demanded. Judge, then, of my surprise, when, a
-few minutes before we hauled off, the captain engaged another cook;
-the first having suddenly made himself among the missing. Should the
-reader ever have occasion to voyage, he may profit by the remembrance
-of this anecdote.
-
-We then hauled off into the stream; towed by a steamboat, we soon
-cleared the harbor of New York. Sandy Hook speedily lay behind us;
-the pilot wished us a pleasant voyage, and away we dashed into the
-wide Atlantic, buoyed up by the confidence of the hope that a few
-weeks would behold us safely landed on the shores of dear old England.
-
-The details of a voyage across the Atlantic have been so often laid
-before the public by travellers, that they have now lost most of that
-interest which they would possess were they less familiar. I shall
-not, therefore, detain the reader with the particulars of my passage,
-except to quote the experience of one day from my journal.
-
-Saturday, June 12th. Went on deck early in the morning; found it
-very warm. We passed two ships on the same course with ourselves. I
-saw a rainbow on our starboard quarter, which reminded me of the old
-saying among sailors, “Rainbow in the morning, sailors take warning.”
-It was then blowing a stiff breeze from the west. All the sails were
-up, studding sails out below and aloft. The wind increased during the
-morning, with rain. We soon had heavy thunder, with sharp lightning;
-the weather growing squally, we took in our studding sails. Passed
-another ship; wind increasing with violent rain.
-
-One o’clock, P. M. Sailors have plenty to do to shorten sail. Furled
-top-gallant sails, reefed mizzen topsail, fore topsail, and main
-topsail. We are running before the wind like a race-horse, at the
-rate of twelve knots an hour.
-
-Two o’clock, P. M. More thunder and lightning, which threatened
-vengeance on our poor ship. The lightning is very sharp; we have no
-conductor up; it plays all around us, and, as it strikes the water,
-it hisses like red-hot iron. Several of the sailors felt a shock
-in descending the rigging, especially the first and second mates.
-We expected it would strike us every moment, but a kind Providence
-protected us. The sea runs very high, and the ship flies about as if
-crazy. We have two men at the helm, who can scarcely keep her right;
-it seems that she will pitch under every moment.
-
-Eight and one-half o’clock, P. M. Sea still rolling heavily; we have
-shipped several heavy seas.
-
-Nine o’clock, P. M. Wind has shifted, and the weather is clearing off.
-
-During the whole of this gale, many of the passengers were much
-alarmed, and some of them spent their time in praying and crying to
-the Lord. How strange that men will leave their eternal interests to
-an hour of danger, and forget them again the moment it passes away!
-
-The first Sabbath of our life at sea, by permission of Captain
-Barrows--who, by the way, was a very gentlemanly, kind commander--I
-held a religious meeting on the quarter or poop-deck. My audience
-contained all the cabin passengers, with most of those in the
-steerage, the captain and his mates, together with most of the crew.
-I told them I was not a parson, but I would talk to them as well as I
-could. After singing and prayer, I spoke from Jonah i. 6; alluding,
-among other things, to the late storm, and exhorting them not to
-trust to storm religion, but to become the followers of God from
-genuine principle. My audience favored me with profound attention.
-Whether they were benefitted or not, the great day must determine.
-It was in this same ship that the eloquent Robert Newton returned to
-England. He favored her crew and passengers, every Sabbath of the
-voyage, with one of his excellent and powerful discourses.
-
-The following Sabbaths, owing to the weather and adverse
-circumstances, I contented myself with distributing tracts and with
-discoursing personally with the passengers and crew.
-
-On the 26th of June, we saw the Irish coast on our weather-beam, and
-on the evening of the 27th, we came to an anchor off Liverpool, after
-a short passage of twenty days. Here, a steamboat came alongside,
-bringing several custom-house officers, who came on board, and
-carrying our cabin passengers ashore. The next morning we hauled
-into the magnificent docks of this celebrated city of commerce,
-where our baggage was landed under the spacious sheds that surround
-the wharves. From thence it was conveyed, in small carts, drawn by
-donkeys, to the custom-house for inspection. This tedious process
-over, the passengers separated, each bound to his respective home;
-for, having passed the ordeal of the custom-house, every man is left
-at full liberty to go whither he pleases. I and my family proceeded
-to a tavern, contrasting, as we went along, the dark, dingy aspect
-of Liverpool, everywhere discolored by the fumes of coal-smoke, with
-the light, cheerful aspect of our American cities; and giving the
-preference to the latter, notwithstanding my English prejudices.
-
-The next morning we all took seats in the railroad cars for Stafford,
-some seventy miles distant from Liverpool. After passing through the
-tunnel, under the city, of more than a mile in length, we emerged
-into a beautiful country, adorned on all sides with antique buildings
-and rural scenery. These passed before us like the scenes in a
-panorama, and, by ten o’clock, A. M., we reached the stopping-place,
-a short distance from Stafford. Here we were literally in danger of
-being torn asunder by the eagerness of two hackmen, who, as we were
-the only passengers left at the _dépôt_, were especially zealous for
-our patronage. A police officer, one of whom is stationed at every
-_dépôt_ on the road, speedily relieved us from their importunity.
-Stepping up, he asked me which man I would employ. Pointing to one of
-them, the other dropped my baggage, and in a few minutes, we were at
-the door of my brother-in-law, Mr. William Tills.
-
-Although I had not seen my sister for thirty years, yet, no sooner
-did she see me, than, throwing her arms around my neck, she
-exclaimed, “Oh, my brother!” I need not add, that our reception was
-cordial, and our stay with them characterized by every trait of
-genuine hospitality.
-
-The town was alive with the bustle of an election; flags and
-streamers were floating over every tavern-sign and public building.
-Men, women and children crowded the streets, flushed with the
-excitement of party rivalry, while the continual pealing of the bells
-added a vivacity and liveliness to the scene, of which an American,
-who has never heard the merry ding-dong of a full peal of bells, can
-form no adequate conception. By five o’clock that afternoon, the
-polls closed, and the ceremony of chairing the successful candidates
-took place. First came a band of music, playing lively airs; next
-followed the members elect, richly dressed, with ribbons on their
-hats, and seated on chairs wreathed with flowers and ribbons, and
-surrounded with banners bearing various devices. These chairs were
-borne on men’s shoulders, who proceeded through the streets, amid
-immense cheering from the crowds who followed, and from the ladies
-and citizens, who appeared waving their handkerchiefs from the
-windows; the members, meanwhile, bowing, with their hats in their
-hands, until they reached the spot where their chaises waited to
-convey them to their respective homes. The sight was one of great
-interest to a stranger, and I advise every American who visits
-England, by all means, to witness an election day if possible.
-
-We remained with my brother-in-law about a week, visiting the
-various places and buildings whose antiquity or public character
-clothed them with especial interest. The town itself contains about
-eleven hundred inhabitants, and is the shire town of the county of
-Staffordshire. Its chief business is the manufacture of shoes. Among
-its ancient buildings, are the remains of a baronial castle, whose
-moss-covered battlements insensibly conduct the meditations of the
-beholder back to the days of feudal grandeur and knightly chivalry.
-St. Mary’s Church is also a venerable Gothic structure, of solid
-masonry, whose walls have withstood the storms and changes of about
-ten centuries. They were about to expend £10,000 in repairing the
-dilapidations of time. I heard one discourse from the curate, and was
-especially delighted with the grandeur and sublimity of the music
-from its magnificent organ, as it pealed along the aisles of the
-time-worn building, with an effect never witnessed in our smaller and
-more modern structures in America.
-
-Here also is the county prison, modelled, in most of its
-arrangements, after the state-prisons of America. It contained five
-hundred prisoners. A lunatic asylum and a hospital, or infirmary, for
-the poor, are found among the products of its benevolence: the former
-contained three hundred unfortunate occupants.
-
-The poor-house is a large commodious building, constructed of brick
-and stone, surrounded with large airy yards and gardens. It has
-also yards or courts within its walls, used as play-grounds for
-the children. The order within was excellent; every room looked
-remarkably neat and clean; the children were comfortably clothed,
-and wore an air of satisfaction and contentment. The whole house
-was under the control of a governor and matron who were subject to
-the inspection of the board of overseers, chosen by the people.
-One excellent rule of the house struck me as being very useful:
-it provided for the admission of poor travellers to a supper and
-lodging; requiring them, if dirty, to undergo a thorough ablution
-and to change their linen. In the morning two or three hours’ work
-was exacted as payment, and they were suffered to depart. The house
-had its teacher and chaplain; and altogether I thought that a great
-improvement had taken place in the poor-laws of the country.
-
-Having been so long away from England, everything peculiarly English
-struck me with almost as much force as it would a native American.
-Hence, my feelings revolted at the sight of the innumerable beggars
-and vagrants, who crowded the streets. Italians, with their organs,
-white mice, or monkeys; poor barefooted children, with their baskets
-of matches; and, worse than either, houseless families imploring a
-crust for their half-naked little ones, with many a tale of sorrow
-and woe, were sights which greeted my eye and pained my heart every
-day. A sad spectacle indeed, and one which robs the lustre of the
-British crown of many a brilliant ray. The true glory of a people is
-their internal prosperity, and not the extension of their territory.
-
-The fifth of July renewed the excitement of the day I arrived. It was
-the time appointed for the _county_ election. Similar scenes to those
-before described took place, accompanied with excessive drunkenness.
-Every tavern, and the number seemed endless, was crowded, mostly with
-the laboring classes, who were spending their hard-earned pence, for
-foaming tankards of English ale, the favorite beverage of John Bull,
-and one of the greatest hindrances to the progress of the temperance
-cause in that country; though it is hoped that the triumphs of
-tee-totalism will ultimately overcome this national love for John
-Barleycorn, as beer is humorously called in the old song.
-
-After spending an extremely pleasant week in Stafford, we bade adieu
-to my affectionate sister and her husband, and, aided by omnipotent
-steam, we soon reached the great manufactory of Britain--Birmingham.
-From thence we took stage for Woodstock, subject, however, to the
-incessant exactions of the host of waiters, guards and coachmen,
-that constantly assail the traveller in England, with a request to be
-“remembered” for every little service rendered. The country through
-which we rode was delightful; all nature wore her greenest, brightest
-garments; the roads were level, and as smooth as the most thorough
-Macadamizing could make them. Soon after seven in the evening, the
-stage drew up at the Marlborough Arms, the very hotel from whence
-I started thirty years since to go to sea. The first object that
-arrested my eye, was the revered form of my mother, waiting on the
-sidewalk, eager to embrace her much-loved, but long-absent son.
-Springing to the ground, I felt myself locked in her fond embrace.
-That was a moment of exquisite enjoyment, both to me and to my
-mother. Though deeply moved, she maintained a calm dignity of manner.
-In a few moments, she was showing the way, with the agility of a
-young woman, leading a new-found grand-child in each hand, to her
-residence, which was close at hand. Very soon we were all seated
-round the well-loaded board, the happiest family party in the world.
-
-Though it afforded me and my family great pleasure to visit scenes
-round Woodstock and Bladen, which had been familiar to me in my
-boyhood, yet, as the description would only prove tedious to the
-reader, it is omitted. A brief account of our visit to Oxford, so
-celebrated for its university and colleges, may not be uninteresting.
-
-Oxford contains nineteen colleges and five halls. Of these, we
-visited only Christ Church and Lincoln colleges. Christ Church is
-the largest college in Oxford. We were forcibly struck with the
-magnificence of the octagonal tower, which is over the principal
-gateway. It has a dome top, and is ornamented in the Gothic style,
-from designs by that renowned architect, Sir Christopher Wren. It
-is also remarkable as containing the celebrated bell, known by
-the familiar name of “Great Tom,” and weighing 17,000 pounds. It
-is 7 feet 1 inch in diameter, 6 feet 9 inches high, 6⅛ inches
-in thickness. I got under this massive piece of metal, and found
-abundant room to move about; by standing on the clapper I could reach
-the top over my head. This is the largest bell in England; though
-Russia contains several of a much larger size. I also gratified
-myself by a survey of the splendid picture galleries and the
-spacious library, the former containing some of the finest specimens
-of painting in the country, and the latter a large and valuable
-collection of books, manuscripts, prints, coins, &c.
-
-I made inquiries of our attendant for the room in which Charles
-Wesley studied while a member of this college; but, although
-quite communicative on other subjects, he manifested a peculiar
-sensitiveness on this; and I declined pressing the question. After
-quitting the college, happening to pass the residence of the Wesleyan
-minister, Mr. Rodgers, I called upon him, and related to him how the
-porter avoided my questions. He smiled, and said that they regarded
-the Wesleys as dissenters, and would therefore do them no honor. Mr.
-Rodgers was extremely obliging; he conducted us over his beautiful
-chapel, and then bore us company to Lincoln college, where he
-pointed out the room in which John Wesley studied when a member of
-this institution. He also showed us the other localities of Oxford,
-made sacred to me by their association with the person of Wesley’s
-grandfather, the preaching of the Wesleys themselves, and the studies
-of Dr. Coke, the great missionary hero of the Methodist church.
-
-He then led us into Broad street, to the consecrated spot where
-Latimer, Ridley and Cranmer sealed their faith by enduring a martyr’s
-death. Three stones mark the spot where their ashes fell; and never
-did I feel a holier feeling than that which thrilled my heart, while
-I and my family stood on those time-worn stones: the spirits of the
-martyrs seemed to hover around us, breathing the same high, religious
-determination into our minds that filled their own bold and daring
-spirits. That moment amply repaid us for all the toil of our journey
-home.
-
-The following Sabbath I attended the chapels of the Wesleyans at
-Woodstock and Bladen, and in the evening had the pleasure of saying a
-word to my old Bladen associates, in the prayer-meeting.
-
-After receiving the utmost kindness, hospitality and evidences of
-friendship from my family and friends, I took leave of them forever.
-Many of the neighbors, with my mother, accompanied me to Woodstock.
-There I wished her adieu, and when the coach whirled away, she
-stood following us with her eyes, the last of the company, until a
-projection of the park wall hid us from each other. Who could forbear
-a tear in such a moment? I could not, and therefore suffered the big
-drops to roll down my cheeks at will. There is a luxury in such grief.
-
-That evening beheld us rolling through Hyde Park into the city of
-London, where I tarried a few days with my brother, by whom I was
-very cordially entertained. Here also I found several cousins, in
-prosperous circumstances whose kindness contributed not a little
-to my enjoyment. Having visited St. Paul’s, the Museum, Madame
-Tussaud’s magnificent collection of wax figures, and other curious
-and remarkable places, I took a trip to Walthamstow, the former
-residence of my aunt Turner. This good lady was dead, and almost
-forgotten by the people; her twenty-two children were all either dead
-or wandering, the neighbors knew not whither. Alas for the mutations
-of time!
-
-A walk of two miles farther on, brought us to Wanstead, my
-birth-place. Here everything seemed natural, though great changes had
-passed over the people since I lived there, a thoughtless child. My
-common school teacher and my Sunday school teacher had gone to their
-spiritual destiny. My aunt was yet alive. My brother asked her if
-she knew me. Peering through her spectacles, and summoning up the
-imagery of the past, she at length called to mind her former protégé,
-and clasped me to her arms, with evident gratification. It occasions
-melancholy feeling to see the ravages of time on the persons and
-places one has not visited for years!
-
-After a hasty visit to that noble home for the worn-out sailor at
-Greenwich, and a glance at the arsenal at Woolwich, I returned to
-London.
-
-We next visited the City Road Chapel, built by the exertions of the
-great Wesley himself. The sexton told us that when that wonderful man
-held the collection plate, one Sabbath, it was thrice filled with
-gold by the enthusiastic generosity of the congregation: a striking
-example of his personal influence over his hearers. After examining
-the chapel, I walked over the parsonage adjoining, and while standing
-in the room where, with his dying lips, the immortal founder of
-Methodism exclaimed, “The best of all is, God is with us,” I felt
-inspired with his great spirit, and mentally resolved, like him to
-laboriously live, that like him I might triumphantly die. From this
-sacred chamber I visited the tombs of Wesley, Clarke, Benson, Watson,
-Cooper, and other illustrious men of the departed army of faithful
-warriors in the cause of Christ; and, as I stood over their ashes, my
-heart said with Peter on the mount of transfiguration, “Master, it is
-good for me to be here!”
-
-Crossing the road into Bunhill fields, I stood before the tombstones
-of the celebrated Dr. Isaac Watts, and the less learned but equally
-renowned John Bunyan. Here the wicket gate, the wanderings of the
-pilgrim, the land of Beulah, and the river of death passed vividly
-before my mind’s eye, until, overcome with a rush of powerful
-feeling, I wept and walked away, a better man than when I entered
-those solemn resting-places of the glorious dead.
-
-The time allotted for my visit having nearly expired, my mind began
-to look towards the country of my adoption, filled with a strong
-desire once more to tread its free soil. Strong as is the love of
-home, it was not strong enough to induce a preference in my mind for
-England. America had become the dearer of the two. Indeed, I saw
-so many unpleasant things amidst the grandeur and pageantry of the
-rich, that I often felt disgusted. Such hosts of street beggars,
-such troops of poverty-stricken children, such a mass of degraded
-laborers, such enormous taxation, made me shrink from bearing any
-part of so great a burden, and desire to link my future destiny
-with the rising fortunes of America. How the laborer of England
-lives, with such low wages, and such high prices for the staple
-commodities of life, is above my comprehension. Meat was from twelve
-to twenty-four cents per pound; tea from one to two dollars; coffee
-from twenty-five to forty cents, and other things in proportion.
-To this add the intemperate habits of the poor, and how they live
-becomes a problem I know not how to solve. Yet, with all this poverty
-and woe, taxation is laid upon the public with merciless severity,
-to furnish means to maintain the splendor and fatten the minions of
-royalty. First, they have to pay the annual interest of eight hundred
-million pounds, then come the enormous salaries of the monarch and
-the satellites of the throne. The queen, for her private purse, has
-£150,000; the queen dowager, £100,000; Prince Albert, £30,000; the
-Lord High Chancellor, £20,000; the Bishops, an average of £20,000
-each. Besides these, follow sinecures and pensions innumerable,
-until the resources of the nation are preyed on by the throne,
-with the unsatisfied appetite of the grave--taking all, and still
-crying, “give, give!” I felt happy, when beholding these things,
-that Providence had, after many trials in early life, cast my lot in
-America.
-
-On the 25th of August, we all sailed from London, in the cabin of
-a fine ship, commanded by Captain Eldridge, bound for Boston. The
-particulars of our stormy and tedious voyage would neither gratify
-nor amuse the reader, and they are therefore omitted. Suffice it to
-say, that the Atlantic passage could scarcely be more unpleasant
-than it was to us; but, by the care of divine Providence, after
-being seventy-five days at sea, exposed to every variety of wind
-and weather, deprived of religious advantages, and surrounded only
-by the ungodly, we safely landed, and found comfortable quarters
-at the United States Hotel, in Boston. From thence we proceeded to
-Worcester, and then to Wilbraham, where we were hailed with joyful
-congratulations by our neighbors, who had begun to mourn us as among
-the lost at sea. Most gratefully did we all unite with the minister,
-the following Sabbath, in a thank-offering to Almighty God, for his
-goodness in preserving us from the dangers of the stormy sea.
-
-Thus, courteous reader, I have conducted thee through the mazes of
-my changeful life. Should the facts detailed in these pages lead
-thee to feel more interest hereafter in the elevation of the sailor,
-my labors will not have been in vain; and should the recital of my
-Christian experience induce thee to embrace the same Saviour, who has
-become my redemption and sacrifice, I shall joyfully hail thee, when
-we meet together in the port of eternity.
-
-To my brothers of the sea, let me add one word. Yours is a life of
-danger, of toil, of suffering. Few men care for your souls; but Jesus
-regards you. He watches you in all your wanderings; he woos you to
-be his! Will you not be persuaded, by a fellow-sailor, to heed his
-voice. O sailor, “TURN, TURN, FOR WHY WILL YE DIE!” Go! rest in His
-bosom, who says to you, “Come unto me all ye that are weary and heavy
-laden, and I will give you rest.”
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] Near this bridge is a spring, called Rosamond’s Well, where Henry
-II. is said to have contrived a labyrinth, by which his guilty fair
-one communicated with the castle.
-
-[2] This form of “step-father” seems not to have been unusual in
-England 1800-50. _Cf._ Sam Weller’s addressing his father’s second
-wife as “mother-in-law.”
-
-[3] Reuben James. See his life by C. T. Brady.
-
-[4] To prevent the recovery of these men by their consul, the
-press-gang usually went ashore on the night previous to our going to
-sea; so that before they were missed they were beyond his protection.
-Sometimes they were cleared on our return to port.
-
-[5] The crew of this vessel mutinied, killed their officers, and ran
-the ship into a Spanish port, where she fell into the hands of the
-Spaniards, then at war with England. Large rewards were offered for
-these mutineers; many were taken, and all who were taken suffered the
-penalty of death (1797).
-
-[6] Narrative of the Life and Sufferings of William B. Lighton (an
-Englishman), a private in the 60th Regiment--the Rifles.--Troy, N.
-Y., 1846. He enlisted at 16, in 1820.
-
-[7] James Holmes, boatswain.
-
-[8] James, in his History of the British Navy, gives this name as
-Thomas James Nankivee.
-
-[9] Dennis Colwell.
-
-[10] The colors of the _Macedonian_ are preserved at the Naval
-Institute, Annapolis, Md. A number of her cannon are placed on the
-green near the Commandant’s quarters at the Brooklyn Navy Yard; and
-when she was broken up, many of her timbers were taken to City Island
-(now part of New York City), and used as the frame of a hotel still
-(1909) standing there.
-
-[11] The official report, from James’ _History of the British Navy_,
-of the _Macedonian’s_ casualties was:
-
- David Hope, First Lieutenant, wounded, leg and head;
-
- John Bulford, Third Lieutenant, wounded;
-
- Henry Roebuck, Master’s Mate, wounded;
-
- George Greenway, Midshipman, wounded;
-
- Francis Baker, “first-class volunteer,” wounded.
-
- Of the crew, 36 killed and 68 wounded, of whom two seamen died of
- wounds, and two boys had each one leg amputated. Nine Marines also
- were wounded.
-
- Aboard the _United States_:
-
- Second Lieutenant John M. Funck, mortally wounded; one seaman
- mortally wounded; five seamen badly wounded.
-
- (Unless the five all died, Captain Carden’s statement in his
- official despatch home, “I saw a lieutenant and six seamen thrown
- overboard,” was unfounded.)
-
-[12] John B. Nicholson.
-
-[13] The word “thus” should undoubtedly be placed before “the,” so
-as to make the line read: “and thus the flag of a frigate,” etc.
-The _Guerrière_ was the first frigate captured, the _Frolic_ (taken
-October 18) being a brig.--(ED.)
-
-[14] The first lieutenant of the _United States_, William H. Allen,
-took the _Macedonian_ to port.
-
-The list of the _United States’_ officers and their subsequent
-records follows:
-
- Captain Stephen Decatur, who was killed by Captain Barron in the
- historic duel, 1820.
-
- Lieutenant John B. Nicholson, who appears afterwards in this
- narrative as commander of the _Siren_, 1815, but whose name does
- not thus appear on the navy records. He was captain of the _United
- States_ in 1832, and died in 1846.
-
- This list has been compiled from various sources, but the Navy
- Department records show an additional midshipman, John J. McCaw,
- who resigned Feb. 23, 1818.
-
- Lieutenant William H. Allen, who became Commander of the _Argus_ in
- 1813, and was mortally wounded in the action with the _Pelican_ in
- the British Channel, August 14, 1813, and is buried at Plymouth,
- England.
-
- Lieutenant John M. Funck, mortally wounded, as before noted.
-
- Purser John B. Timberlake. Mr. Timberlake’s wife, who was known
- in Washington as “Peggy” O’Neil, married after his death John
- H. Eaton, Secretary of War, 1829-1831, and became the cause of
- the celebrated “ladies’ quarrel,” as Calhoun termed it, which
- terminated in the disruption of Jackson’s Cabinet in 1831.
-
- Midshipmen--
-
- Joseph Cassin, Jr., who died a Lieutenant in 1826.
-
- Philip F. Voorhees, who died a Captain in 1862.
-
- John P. Zantzinger, who appears on the Navy List as “dropped”
- in 1855, but who was purser of the _Hornet_ in 1815, when she
- narrowly escaped capture by the British 74 _Cornwallis_. In that
- memorable stern-chase all the guns but one, the cables, boats
- and nearly everything else movable, were thrown overboard to
- lighten the vessel. From the Congressional records we find that in
- 1850--_thirty-five_ years after--Congress passed an act allowing
- Mr. Zantzinger payment for what he had been obliged to sacrifice
- under these circumstances, when even the knives and forks were
- thrown overboard.
-
- Richard Delphy, who was killed in the _Argus_-_Pelican_ encounter,
- August 14, 1813, and is buried at Plymouth, England.
-
- Dugomier Taylor, who died at sea, as a Lieutenant, October 5, 1819.
-
- Richard S. Heath, who became Lieutenant, and was killed June 2,
- 1817, in a duel with Midshipman J. L. Hopkins, at New York.
-
- Edward F. Howell, who was killed in the action between the
- _President_ and the _Endymion_, January 15, 1815.
-
- H. Z. W. Harrington (Henry W., on navy records), resigned April 12,
- 1813.
-
- William Jameson, who died a Commodore April 6, 1873, his record
- surpassing even that of Sloat. He was doubtless the last survivor
- of the famous encounter of sixty-one years before.
-
- Archibald Hamilton, who became a Lieutenant and was killed in the
- action between the _President_ and the _Endymion_, January 15,
- 1815. He was son of Paul Hamilton, then Secretary of the Navy.
-
- Lewis Hinchman (or Henchman). }
-
- Benjamin S. Williams, } of whom no record is found.
-
- John N. Carr, }
-
- John Stansbury, who was killed in Macdonough’s victory on Lake
- Champlain, September 11, 1814.
-
- George C. Read, who died a Rear-Admiral in 1862.
-
- Walter Wooster, drowned June 1, 1813. (The Navy Department gives
- his name as “Winter.”)
-
- John D. Sloat, who died a Rear-Admiral in 1867, having the
- wonderful record of forty-four years’ active service, having
- entered the navy as a midshipman in 1800--served one year
- until discharged by the peace-establishment. He re-entered as
- sailing-master 1812. In 1847 he secured possession of California
- just in time to forestall the British designs on the Pacific Coast,
- and was on the active list until 1855; retired 1861, but promoted
- until 1866--thus being on the navy list for fifty-seven years.
-
- Surgeon Samuel R. Trevett, Jr. (died 1822), when surgeon on the
- sloop-of-war _Peacock_.
-
- Surgeon’s Mate Samuel Vernon, who died February 5, 1814.
-
- Lieutenant of Marines William Anderson, who died a brevet
- Lieutenant-Colonel, in 1830.
-
- Second Lieutenant of Marines James L. Edwards, who resigned in 1813.
-
- The complement of the two vessels, as given by James, was:
-
- _Macedonian_, 262 men and 35 boys.
-
- _United States_, 477 men and 1 boy.
-
-[15] This was the celebrated Dr. Nathan Strong (1748-1816), pastor of
-the First Congregational Church.
-
-[16] This was Captain Grey, the adjutant-general, son of General
-Sir Charles Grey, of the Paoli massacre, September, 1777. Lossing
-(_Field-Book War of 1812_) says a drummer-boy cried, “Perhaps not
-yet,” fired, and mortally wounded him.
-
-[17] Leech is not to be blamed for his belief in the burning of
-witches in New England--in 1909 a New York orator repeated the same
-hoary blunder.--(ED.)
-
-[18] George Parker, formerly first lieutenant of the _Constitution_.
-
-[19] The _Grand Turk_ was a noted privateer, commanded at that time
-by either Captain Breed or Captain Green, and owned by the famous
-Salem merchant, William Gray.
-
-[20] James B. Nicholson, the same who was on the _United States_.
-
-[21] The Washingtonian was a temperance society of the day.
-
-[22] Captain Augustus Bruce (James’ _Hist. British Navy_).
-
-[23] The Barbary sheep entirely resembles the tame kind, excepting in
-the tail, which is very much loaded with fat, is often more than a
-foot broad, and weighs upwards of twenty pounds. Among this kind of
-broad-tailed sheep, there are some whose tails are so long and heavy,
-that the shepherds are obliged to fasten a small board with wheels,
-to support them as they walk along. This tail, which is a substance
-between marrow and fat, is considered a great delicacy.--_See System
-of Natural History. Boston: Carter, Hendee & Co., 1834._
-
-[24] Twenty-four doublegees made a rix dollar.
-
-[25] An instance of maternal imprudence was said to have occurred
-in this port on board another ship. A poor woman went on board and
-inquired for her son, who had run from the British service, and was
-then among the captive crew of an American prize. They told her there
-was no one of that name among the crew. “He is among the Yankees,”
-said she. Hearing this, the prisoners were called up, and the poor,
-affectionate, but ill-judging mother, singled out her son, and
-embracing him, said, “I have brought you a clean shirt!”
-
-The lieutenant, who stood by them, stepped up, remarking to the
-thunder-stricken man, “It’s a clean shirt you want, is it? I will
-give you a clean handkerchief”--meaning that he would be hung. The
-unhappy youth was accordingly ironed, in presence of the astounded
-mother, who now beheld herself the unintentional murderess of her
-son. A court-martial was held, and the brutal prediction of the
-lieutenant verified.
-
-[26] We were captured July 12, 1814; it was now August, 1815.
-
-[27] If the reader wishes to know why seamen wear their hats on the
-back of their heads, let him put his hat on as usual and ascend a
-ladder. He will find himself unable to look up until he places it
-on the _back of his head_ as a sailor does. Sailors wear their hats
-thus, because they could not otherwise ascend the rigging of a ship.
-
-[28] Edward T. Taylor (1793-1871). From 1800 to 1817 he was a sailor.
-In 1819 he became a Methodist clergyman. In 1827 he served as
-chaplain on the _Macedonian_, which took supplies to the famishing
-Irish people. He was a pastor in Boston during the rest of his life,
-was known as “Father Taylor,” and was a most successful worker,
-particularly among seamen.--(ED.)
-
-[29] Rev. Joel Hawes (1789-1867), for forty-six years pastor of the
-First Congregational Church.
-
-[30] Rev. Wilbur Fisk (1792-1839), one of the greatest Methodists
-America has known.
-
-[31] It will be _á propos_ to here quote a letter from Thoreau to his
-sister Sophia, describing Emerson’s quarters on board the packet-ship
-_Washington Irving_, on which he sailed from Boston in 1847: “I went
-to Boston to see Mr. E. off. His stateroom was like a carpeted dark
-closet, about six feet square, with a large key-hole for a window.
-The window was about as big as a saucer, and the glass two inches
-thick--not to mention another skylight overhead in the deck, of the
-size of an oblong doughnut and about as opaque; of course it would be
-in vain to look up if any promenader had his foot upon it. Such will
-be his quarters for two or three weeks,” etc.
-
-Such were _first-class_ accommodations six years after Leech made
-his voyage, with a certainty of being at least twenty days cooped up
-thus, and possibly _seventy-five_, as we shall see actually occurred
-on his return. [ED].
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE
-
- Obvious typographical errors and punctuation errors have been
- corrected after careful comparison with other occurrences within
- the text and consultation of external sources.
-
- Except for those changes noted below, all misspellings in the text,
- and inconsistent or archaic usage, have been retained: for example,
- top-sail, topsail; boot-making, bootmaking; fire-side, fireside;
- phrensied; disparted; yclept; wofully; apostacy; whisky.
-
- Pg 15: ‘special attenton to’ replaced by ‘special attention to’.
- Pg 31: ‘hard and succesfully’ replaced by ‘hard and successfully’.
- Pg 32: ‘whle standing on’ replaced by ‘while standing on’.
- Pg 33: ‘I dd not learn’ replaced by ‘I did not learn’.
- Pg 48: ‘unceremonously thrown’ replaced by ‘unceremoniously thrown’.
- Pg 51: ‘being rapdly’ replaced by ‘being rapidly’.
- Pg 98: ‘We eat together’ replaced by ‘We ate together’.
- Pg 125: ‘and boarding-spikes’ replaced by ‘and boarding-pikes’.
- Pg 133: ‘degredation, if ever’ replaced by ‘degradation, if ever’.
- Pg 140: ‘bed-clothes, makng’ replaced by ‘bed-clothes, making’.
- Pg 147: ‘for our ecsape’ replaced by ‘for our escape’.
- Pg 147: ‘a mssionary, was’ replaced by ‘a missionary, was’.
- Pg 166: ‘is justy described’ replaced by ‘is justly described’.
- Pg 176: ‘were prastised on’ replaced by ‘were practised on’.
- Pg 185: ‘off in trumph’ replaced by ‘off in triumph’.
- Pg 197: ‘successful prosecuton of’ replaced by
- ‘successful prosecution of’.
- Pg 204: ‘drawn by donkies’ replaced by ‘drawn by donkeys’.
- Pg 209: ‘avoided my questons’ replaced by ‘avoided my questions’.
- Pg 213: ‘thence we proceded’ replaced by ‘thence we proceeded’.
- Footnote 5: ‘and run the ship’ replaced by ‘and ran the ship’.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Thirty Years from Home, by Samuel Leech
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME ***
-
-***** This file should be named 63273-0.txt or 63273-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/3/2/7/63273/
-
-Produced by MWS, John Campbell and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/63273-0.zip b/old/63273-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index dd18153..0000000
--- a/old/63273-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/63273-h.zip b/old/63273-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 765b949..0000000
--- a/old/63273-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/63273-h/63273-h.htm b/old/63273-h/63273-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index f4ca5c8..0000000
--- a/old/63273-h/63273-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8502 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- Thirty Years from Home, or A Voice from the Main Deck, by Samuel Leech&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- word-spacing: 0.2em;
- letter-spacing: 0.1em;
- line-height: 1.2em;
- font-weight: normal;
-}
-
-h1 {font-size: 240%;}
-h2 {font-size: 125%; letter-spacing: 0em;}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-.p1 {margin-top: 1em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-
-.negin2 {padding-left: 2em; text-indent: -2em; text-align: justify;}
-.in2 {text-indent: 2em; text-align: justify;}
-.noindent {text-indent: 0em;}
-.nowrap {white-space: nowrap;}
-.pg-brk {page-break-before: always;}
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-.pfs240 {font-size: 240%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs150 {font-size: 150%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs135 {font-size: 135%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs120 {font-size: 120%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs100 {font-size: 100%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs90 {font-size: 90%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs80 {font-size: 80%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs70 {font-size: 70%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-
-.fs40 {font-size: 40%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs70 {font-size: 70%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs80 {font-size: 80%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs85 {font-size: 85%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs100 {font-size: 100%; font-style: normal;}
-
-.fsnormal {font-style: normal;}
-
-
-/* for horizontal lines */
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 30%; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-
-hr.r15 {width: 15%; margin-left: 42.5%; margin-right: 42.5%;
- margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;}
-
-@media handheld {
-hr.chap {width: 0%; display: none;}
-}
-
-
-/* for inserting info from TN changes */
-.corr {
- text-decoration: none;
- border-bottom: thin dotted gray;
-}
-
-@media handheld {
- .corr {
- text-decoration: none;
- border-bottom: none;
- }
-}
-
-
-/* for non-image large letter dropcaps */
-p.drop-capy {text-indent: -.7em;}
-p.drop-capy1 {text-indent: -1.3em;}
-
-p.drop-capy:first-letter, p.drop-capy1:first-letter {
- float: left;
- margin: .1em .22em 0em 0em;
- font-size: 400%;
- line-height:0.7em;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-@media handheld {
- p.drop-capy, p.drop-capy1 {text-indent: 0em;}
-
- p.drop-capy:first-letter, p.drop-capy1:first-letter {
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;}
-}
-
-
-/* for tables */
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;}
-
-table.autotable { border-collapse: collapse; }
-table.autotable td {}
-
-@media handheld {
- table {width: auto; max-width: 100%; margin: 1em auto 1em auto;}
-}
-
-td {padding: .18em .3em 0 .3em;}
-
-.tdl {text-align: left; padding-left: 1.5em; text-indent: -1em;}
-
-/* for spacing */
-.pad2 {padding-left: 2em;}
-.pad3 {padding-left: 3em;}
-
-.padr2 {padding-right: 2em;}
-.padr4 {padding-right: 4em;}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- color: #A9A9A9;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- text-indent: .5em;
-}
-
-
-/* blockquote (/# #/) */
-.blockquot { margin: 1.5em 5% 1.5em 5%; }
-
-
-/* general placement and presentation */
-.center {text-align: center; margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto;}
-
-.right {text-align: right; margin-right: 1em;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;}
-
-.lsp {letter-spacing: 0.05em;}
-
-.ttl {padding-left: 10%; text-indent: -2em; letter-spacing: .1em; word-spacing: .3em; line-height: 1.5em;}
-
-.caption {font-weight: normal; font-size: 70%;
- text-align: center; padding-bottom: 0.50em;}
-
-.antiqua {font-family: Blackletter, Fraktur, Textur, "Olde English Mt", "Olde English", Diploma, England, Gothic, serif;}
-
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- border: none;
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-img.w100 {width: 100%;}
-
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnotes {border: dashed 1px; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 3em;
- padding-bottom: 1em;}
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 90%;}
-.footnote p {text-indent: 0em;}
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;}
-.poetry {display: inline-block; font-size: 80%;}
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; line-height: 1.3em;}
-.poetry .indentq {text-indent: -3.5em;}
-
-/* large inline blocks don't split well on paged devices */
-@media handheld, print { .poetry {display: block; margin-left: 4.5em;} }
-
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-.transnote p {text-indent: 0em;}
-
-
-/* custom cover.jpg */
-.customcover {visibility: hidden; display: none;}
-@media handheld {
- .customcover {visibility: visible; display: block;}
-}
-
-/* Poetry indents */
-.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em;}
-.poetry .indent2 {text-indent: -2em;}
-
-/* Illustration classes */
-.illowp100 {width: 100%;} @media handheld { .illowp100 {width: 100%;} }
-
- </style>
- </head>
-
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Thirty Years from Home, by Samuel Leech
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Thirty Years from Home
- or, a voice from the main deck, being the experience of Samuel Leech
-
-Author: Samuel Leech
-
-Release Date: September 23, 2020 [EBook #63273]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by MWS, John Campbell and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-
-<div class="transnote">
-<p><strong>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE</strong></p>
-
-<p>Footnote anchors are denoted by <span class="fnanchor">[number]</span>,
-and the footnotes have been placed at the end of the book.</p>
-
-<p>The warship USS <i>Syren</i> is referred to as <i>Siren</i> throughout
-the book (except for the title page); this has not been changed.</p>
-
-<p class="customcover">The cover image was created by the transcriber
-and is placed in the public domain.</p>
-
-<p>Some minor changes to the text are noted at the <a href="#TN">end of the book.</a></p>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="pfs120 pg-brk">THE</p>
-
-<p class="p1 pfs240">MAGAZINE OF HISTORY</p>
-
-<p class="p2 pfs120">WITH</p>
-
-<p class="p2 pfs135">NOTES AND QUERIES</p>
-
-<p class="p2 pfs135 antiqua">Extra Number&mdash;No. 9</p>
-
-<p class="p4 pfs70">COMPRISING</p>
-
-<p class="p2 ttl">THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME, OR A VOICE<br />
-FROM THE MAIN DECK: BEING THE<br />
-EXPERIENCE OF SAMUEL LEECH.</p>
-
-<p class="p2 pfs120">WILLIAM ABBATT</p>
-<p class="pfs90">EAST 25th STREET, <span class="pad2">⁂</span> <span class="pad2">⁂</span> <span class="pad2">NEW YORK</span> </p>
-<p class="pfs90">1909</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="ifrontis" style="max-width: 62.5em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i_frontis.jpg" alt="" />
- <div class="caption">THIS REPRESENTATION OF THE U. S. FRIGATE UNITED STATES, STEPHEN DECATUR ESQ<sup>R</sup> COMMANDER,
-CAPTURING HIS BRITANNIC MAJESTY’S FRIGATE MACEDONIAN, JOHN S. CARDEN ESQ^R COMMANDER<br />
-<em>Is respectfully inscribed to Captain Stephen Decatur his Officers and Gallant Crew by their devoted humble Servant</em><br />
-<p class="right">James Webster.</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-
-<h1>
-<span class="fs70">THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME</span><br />
-<span class="fs40 lsp">OR</span><br />
-A VOICE FROM THE<br />
-MAIN DECK</h1>
-
-<p class="p1 pfs100">BEING THE EXPERIENCE OF</p>
-
-<p class="p1 pfs150">SAMUEL LEECH</p>
-
-<p class="p2 noindent fs80">WHO WAS FOR SIX YEARS IN THE BRITISH AND AMERICAN
-NAVIES: WAS CAPTURED IN THE BRITISH FRIGATE <i>MACEDONIAN</i>:
-AFTERWARDS ENTERED THE AMERICAN NAVY,
-AND WAS TAKEN IN THE UNITED STATES BRIG <i>SYREN</i>, BY
-THE BRITISH SHIP <i>MEDWAY</i>
-<span class="nowrap">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; :: &nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; :: &nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; :: &nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; ::</span></p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="p1 pfs80">BOSTON<br />
-PUBLISHED BY TAPPAN &amp; DENNET<br />
-<span class="smcap">114 Washington Street</span><br />
-1843</p>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="p1 pfs80">NEW YORK<br />
-Reprinted<br />
-WILLIAM ABBATT<br />
-1909</p>
-
-<p class="p1 pfs80">(Being Extra No. 9 of <span class="smcap">The Magazine of History</span> with Notes and Queries)</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_3"></a>[Pg 3]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PREFACE">PREFACE</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>I have often been solicited, by my personal friends, to commit
-the incidents of my life to paper. It was thought that they contained
-sufficient interest to command public attention. At any rate, there
-is a novelty in the fact of an unlettered sailor’s appearance before
-the public, detailing the secrets of the naval Main Deck. The
-Quarter Deck has long and often told its own story, and has given
-its own coloring to naval life. Here, however, is a voice from the
-main deck, revealing life in a man of war as it appears to the sailor
-himself. As such, this work has some claim on the attention of the
-public.</p>
-
-<p>I have endeavored to state facts as they were when I was a sailor,
-and in the ships to which I belonged. My object is to give a true
-picture. That, I have done, as far as a remarkably strong memory
-enabled me. I kept no journals, and consequently some slight mistakes
-in names, dates and places, may be found in my book; but I
-have been careful to state nothing as <em>facts</em>, of which I was not certain.</p>
-
-<p>That the naval service has improved since I belonged to it, is, I
-believe, universally admitted. I rejoice at it. Still, it is not yet
-what it should be. If this work should, in any degree, stir up the
-public mind to amend the condition of seamen, I shall feel gratified,
-and fully repaid for the labor of placing these facts on record.</p>
-
-<p>With many prayers that the perusal of these pages may do good,
-I leave the reader to pursue his way along the track of my experience:
-assuring him, that what may afford him pleasure to read, has
-cost me much pain to suffer.</p>
-
-<p class="right smcap">Samuel Leech.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_4"></a>[4]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak fs100" id="RECOMMENDATIONS">RECOMMENDATIONS</h2>
-</div>
-
-
- <div class="fs85">
-<p class="center"><em>From the Hon. Erastus Corning.</em></p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Albany, N. Y.</span>, December 3, 1842.</p>
-
-<p class="noindent smcap">To whom it may concern:</p>
-
-<p class="in2">I have known and have had intercourse with Mr. Samuel Leech, for the last
-twenty years, and have always found him honorable in his dealings, and consider
-him entitled to the confidence of the public as a man of strict integrity.</p>
-
-<p class="right">ERASTUS CORNING.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 in2">The undersigned, being acquainted with Mr. Samuel Leech, the author of the
-following work, do cheerfully vouch for his moral and Christian character; and
-assure the public, that the interesting volume, which he here presents to the world,
-may be relied upon as an honest statement of facts, with which the writer was
-personally conversant; and as having no fellowship whatever with those fictitious
-tales of the sea, which, under the garb and professions of truth, have been proffered
-to the reading community.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="padr2">CHARLES ADAMS,</span><br />
-<em>Principal Wes. Academy.</em></p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="padr2">JOHN BOWERS,</span><br />
-<em>Pastor Cong. Church, Wilbraham, Mass.</em></p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Wilbraham</span>, May 4, 1843.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="padr2">DAVID PATTEN,</span><br />
-<em>Pastor, Providence, R. I.</em></p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="padr2">REUBEN RANSOM,</span><br />
-<em>Presiding Elder, Springfield Dis. N. E. C.</em></p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="padr2">HENRY CHASE,</span><br />
-<em>Preacher to Seamen, N. Y.</em></p>
- </div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_5"></a>[5]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="PREFACE2">PREFACE</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">Narratives of service, a century ago, written by private
-soldiers, are rare, but such by common sailors are
-almost unknown.</p>
-
-<p>Samuel Leech’s narrative “Thirty Years from Home, a voice
-from the Main-Deck” is a unique book, and now scarce. It is a
-valuable contribution to our history, giving a sailor’s experience in
-both British and American navies, and being the sole account by a
-British seaman of the capture of the <i>Macedonian</i> by the <i>United
-States</i>, in 1812.</p>
-
-<p>The revelations he makes of the cruel treatment of their men
-by British naval officers are unfortunately matched by the similar
-account of life on the same frigate <i>United States</i>, then under command
-of “<em>Captain Claret</em>” in 1843-44, given by Herman Melville
-in his remarkable book <cite><span class="fsnormal">“White Jacket, or the World in a Man of
-War.”</span></cite> Though he is writing of an era thirty years later than
-Leech’s, the picture is equally distressing.</p>
-
-<p>Leech also gives almost as bad a character to Captain David
-Porter (father of the late Admiral David D. Porter) as to the
-British tyrants.</p>
-
-<p>It should be recorded in this connection, that flogging was
-abolished in the United States navy in 1851, through the efforts of
-Commodore Robert P. Stockton.</p>
-
-<p>The book has never been reprinted before since its original appearance
-(1843.)</p>
-
-<p class="right smcap">Editor.</p>
-
-<p class="fs80 negin2 pad3">&mdash;The late Rear Admiral S. R. Franklin (<cite>Memories of a Rear Admiral</cite>, 1898), who
-was midshipman on the <i>United States</i> when Herman Melville was of the crew,
-says <em>Captain Claret</em> was Captain James Armstrong, and the <em>Commodore</em> Thomas
-Ap Catesby Jones. He adds: “Melville’s <cite>White Jacket</cite> had more influence in
-abolishing corporal punishment in the Navy than anything else. A copy of it
-was placed on the desk of every member of Congress, and was a most eloquent
-appeal to the humane sentiment of the country.”</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_6"></a>[6]</span><br />
- <span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_7"></a>[7]</span></p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="pfs150">A VOICE FROM THE MAIN DECK</p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">Were it not that the most common of all inquiries, respecting
-every man who comes before the public, is,
-“who is he? whence did he proceed? who were his
-parents?” &amp;c., I would not detain the reader with any account of
-my humble ancestors and their circumstances. But, since men naturally
-expect this information, and would hence consider my narrative
-imperfect without it, I shall take the liberty to introduce them.</p>
-
-<p>My father’s occupation was that of <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">valet de chambre</i> to Lord
-William Fitzroy, son of the Duke of Grafton. My recollections
-concerning him are few and indistinct, as he died while I was yet
-scarcely three years old. One little incident alone reminds me of
-wearing a mourning dress as a memento of sorrow for his death.
-Returning from the parish church in Walthamstow, I observed the
-larger boys amusing themselves by swinging across the rails of the
-fences; endeavoring to join in their amusement, my hands slipped,
-and falling into a muddy ditch, I nearly finished my course, ere it
-was well begun, by a violent death. A benevolent stranger, however,
-rescued me, and once safe, my grief for the sad condition of
-my little black frock was excessive and inconsolable. A trifling
-cause for sorrow, to be sure, yet men and women often grieve for
-causes equally contemptible.</p>
-
-<p>Although my personal remembrances of my father’s death are
-so indistinct, yet the frequent mention made of him by my mother,
-has left the pleasing impression on my mind that he died a Christian.
-“I have thought of my numerous sins, but God has forgiven
-them all. Be not troubled, for the Lord will provide for you and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_8"></a>[8]</span>
-your children. You need not fear to leave me, for I am not alone;
-God is with me, though you are out of the room,” were among his
-dying expressions; when, after fourteen months endurance of the
-pains which accompany a slow consumption, he approached “that
-bourne from which no traveller returns.” I expect to find my honored
-father in heaven.</p>
-
-<p>Wanstead, in Essex, about seven miles from the great metropolis
-of England, was the town, and 1798 the year, of my birth. Were
-it necessary to designate the place more particularly, it might be
-said that the part of Wanstead where I first struggled into being,
-was called Nightingale Place; a most musical name, conferred in
-honor of the nightingales which abounded in the vicinity.</p>
-
-<p>Two years subsequently to my father’s demise, my mother became
-an inmate of the family of Lady Francis Spencer, daughter of
-the Duke of Grafton, and wife of Lord Spencer. As a consequence
-of this event, I was deprived of a mother’s care and consigned
-to the charge of my aunt Turner, whose family amounted to
-the very respectable number of twenty-two sons and two daughters.
-The transfer of a child from the care of its parent to that of another
-person, may appear, at first sight, to be a very unimportant
-incident; but trifling as it seems, it often exerts an influence which
-very materially changes the destiny of the child: it was so in my
-case. Most of my cousins were sailors, and some of them were constantly
-returning home, bringing, with true sailors’ munificence,
-the pleasing and curious productions of distant climes as presents
-to their parents and friends; then, seated round the bright hearth-side,
-they used to tell of wild adventures and hair-breadth escapes,
-spinning out the winter evening’s tale to the infinite delight of
-their willing listeners. Poor fellows! three of them died at sea; two
-more, John and Richard, perished in the ill-fated <i>Blenheim</i>, a seventy-four
-gun ship of the British navy, which went down off the
-Cape of Good Hope, with seven hundred as brave men on board as
-ever trod a plank. Notwithstanding these sad recollections, and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_9"></a>[9]</span>
-though none perceived it, my three years’ residence among these
-“sailors bold” decided the nature of my future calling; it captivated
-my imagination and begat a curiosity, which ultimately led
-me to make my “home upon the bounding deep.”</p>
-
-<p>An orphan is ever exposed to changes. The loss of either parent
-calls for a degree of sympathy and kindness from others, which they
-are rarely willing to expend except on their own. Such is the almost
-universal selfishness of human nature. My experience affords
-a verification of the truthfulness of the remark. For some cause
-or other, it became inconvenient for me to remain with my kind aunt
-Turner, and my next home was with a widowed aunt, at Wanstead,
-where I did not meet with the same kindness of treatment. The
-breaking of a cup, or any of the thousand-and-one offences found in
-the list of juvenile defects, was sure to bring upon me the infliction
-of the rod; and, what was equally painful, my most economical aunt
-exacted the full payment for all these losses from the little pocket
-money I obtained by holding a horse, running errands, or as new-year
-and Christmas presents; thus gratifying her temper and her
-covetousness at once, besides embittering, to some extent, the boyish
-hours of my unfortunate self.</p>
-
-<p>There is no evil in the management of children to be more deprecated
-than that species of treatment which tends to destroy their
-happiness. Correction for obvious faults, in a proper manner, is
-essential to their proper moral training; but a habit of incessantly
-scolding them for every little accident or offence, only serves to excite
-the growth of evil passions and to make them dislike their home;
-things to be avoided as much as Scylla and Charybdis by the careful
-mariner. The influence of such mal-treatment follows the child
-through life, like an evil genius, materially affecting his views of life
-and the temper of his mind. For aught that now occurs to me, but
-for this unkindness, my early predilection for the sea would have
-died within me; while, as it was, I panted to enjoy the freedom
-my fancy painted in its pictures of sailor life. To add to my sor<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_10"></a>[10]</span>rows,
-my mother removed my sister, who had been my cheerful companion
-and true friend, to a lady’s school at Woodstock, in Oxfordshire,
-for the twofold purpose of affording her greater literary advantages,
-and of being able to see her more frequently.</p>
-
-<p>Several incidents occurred during my abode here, which tended
-to increase my growing desire. A smart, active sailor, over six feet
-in height, and well-proportioned, one day presented himself at my
-aunt’s door. He told us he had been to America, where he had
-seen a young man named George Turner, who was her nephew and
-my cousin. He proceeded to tell many fine stories about him, and
-at last inquired if she should not like to see him, and if she should
-know him.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know as I should,” said my aunt, “he has been away so
-long.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, then,” replied he, “I am George Turner!”</p>
-
-<p>This fine, bold seaman, then, was my own cousin, son to my
-aunt Turner; he had been eleven years at sea, and, after visiting
-his parents, took this method of surprising his aunt. Most likely
-he has made this adventure the subject of many a forecastle yarn
-since then. While he remained he was so jolly, so liberal, and so
-full of pleasant stories, that I began to feel quite sure that sailors
-were noble fellows.</p>
-
-<p>We were also favored with a visit from an uncle, then visiting
-Europe from the West Indies. He was one of two brothers, who
-were educated at Greenwich for the navy. One of them had entered
-the British navy, and by dint of merit and hard service rose
-to the possession of a commission in the service, but ultimately perished
-at sea. This one had chosen the merchant service, but afterwards
-settled at Antigua. He took me with him to London, and
-carried me over the West India docks; he being well acquainted
-with many of the captains, they treated me with playful attention,
-inquiring if I did not wish to be a cabin-boy, and the like. When I<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_11"></a>[11]</span>
-returned to Wanstead, it was with a stronger desire than ever to be
-a sailor. My uncle went to Trinidad, and died shortly after.</p>
-
-<p>A very pleasant piece of intelligence greeted me soon after
-these incidents; it was nothing less than my removal from the care
-of my unkind aunt to the roof of my mother. Weary of her widowhood,
-she had again become a wife. My new parent was a widower
-with one son; a carpenter by occupation, in the employ of the Duke
-of Marlborough. Great was my joy when this fact was communicated
-to my young mind. I hailed it as a deliverance from bondage,
-and with beaming eyes and cheerful face hurried to bid adieu
-to my classmates in the day and in the Sunday school&mdash;a sad proof
-of the unfitness of my aunt for her task; since a child properly
-treated, will love its <em>home</em> too well to quit it without a tear; and if
-parents and guardians wish to prevent their children from being
-wanderers and stragglers through the wide world, let me bid them
-exert the utmost effort to make their home pleasant. Throw a
-charm round it, make it enchanted ground, cause it to become, in
-the language of a living poet,</p>
-
-<p class="pfs80">“The fairy ring of bliss”</p>
-
-<p class="noindent">and then your children will love it too well to wander.</p>
-
-<p>But I was now about to leave Wanstead, and, although delighted
-to be rid of the surveillance of a cross old relation, there were
-some things which threw an air of sadness occasionally over my
-mind. There were many pleasant associations connected with the
-place; its beautiful park, with herds of timid deer grazing under its
-tall oaks, upon whose green old heads the sun had shone for centuries;
-the venerable mansion, seated like a queen amid the sylvan
-scene; the old parish church, with its gorgeously painted windows,
-to which I had often walked on the Sabbath with my fellow-scholars
-in the Sabbath school, and beside whose deep-toned organ I had sat
-listening to the learned priest; the annual hunt at Easter, in which
-I had often joined the crew of idle lads that gave chase to the dis<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_12"></a>[12]</span>tracted
-deer; and the pleasant walks, made cheerful by the songs of
-innumerable birds, in Epping forest, were all to be left&mdash;perhaps
-forever. This thought made me somewhat sad, but it was swallowed
-up in the joy I felt when my mother appeared to conduct me
-to Bladen, some sixty miles from London, which was the place of
-her abode since her marriage.</p>
-
-<p>Behold me then, gentle reader, seated with my mother on the
-outside of a stage-coach, with some ten fellow-passengers. The
-stage-coach of England is quite a different vehicle from the carriage
-known by that name in America. True, it is drawn by four
-horses, and it runs on four wheels, but here the likeness ends; instead
-of being built to carry twelve persons inside, it carries but six,
-while outside it has seats for twelve. Three or four passengers ride
-very comfortably behind, in what is called the basket, which is the
-territory of the guard, as the boot before is of the coachman. All
-mail coaches, and all others travelling in the night, carry a guard,
-or an armed man, for the purpose of protecting the coach from the
-attacks of footpads or highway robbers.</p>
-
-<p>The dullness of our journey was somewhat relieved, after a long
-season of silence, by the distress of an unfortunate passenger, who,
-falling asleep, nodded so violently, that his hat, supposing it was receiving
-notice to quit, very unceremoniously took leave of the skull
-it covered, and plunged into the mud. The outcry of the poor passenger,
-who was soon waked by the wind sporting amid his hair,
-and his unavailing requests to stop the stage, put us all into good
-humor with ourselves and with each other.</p>
-
-<p>We had another source of relief in the antics of a wild, hair-brained
-sailor. From spinning yarns, which looked amazingly like
-new inventions, he would take to dancing on the roof of the coach;
-at the foot of a hill he would leap off, and then spring up again with
-the agility of a monkey, to the no small amusement of the passengers.
-The more I saw of this reckless, thoughtless tar, the more<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_13"></a>[13]</span>
-enamored I became with the idea of a sea life; and thus this journey
-to my mother’s new abode was another link in the chain that decided
-my future destiny in the drama of life. How strangely and
-imperceptibly do small events tend to unexpected results. A match
-may fire a city and lay desolate the work of ages; a single leak may
-sink a bark and carry desolation to a hundred firesides&mdash;and trifles
-in the daily scenes of human life, give character to our immortality.
-We cannot, therefore, too carefully watch the influence of small
-events, especially on young minds.</p>
-
-<p>At Woodstock, famed in the annals of England as the scene
-of the loves of King Henry and Rosamond Clifford, we quitted our
-stage companions, and proceeded on foot to Bladen, two miles distant.
-Our road lay through Blenheim or Woodstock park, which
-we entered through the triumphal arch, a spacious portal, erected
-to the memory of John, Duke of Marlborough, by Sarah, his duchess.
-On entering the park, which is nearly twelve miles in circumference,
-one of the most beautiful prospects imaginable disclosed
-itself. Blenheim Palace, which is among the most magnificent piles
-of architecture in England, appeared in front; on the left were to
-be seen a part of the village of Woodstock, and on the right a broad
-and spacious lake, crossed by a superb bridge;<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> a lofty column on
-the rising ground, erected in honor of John, Duke of Marlborough,
-on which is the statue of that noble warrior; a delightful valley,
-hills, plantations, herds of deer feeding, shady groves and ancient
-trees, all conspired to render the scene enchantingly beautiful.</p>
-
-<p>Blenheim Palace, or Castle, was built at the public expense,
-in the reign of Queen Anne, and was given, with its annexed demesnes,
-in concurrence with the voice of parliament, to John, Duke
-of Marlborough, as a testimony of royal favor and national gratitude<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_14"></a>[14]</span>
-for his successes over the French and Bavarians; particularly
-for his victory at Blenheim, on the banks of the Danube, on the 2d
-of August, 1704.</p>
-
-<p>Crossing the park towards Bladen, we were met by my
-father-in-law,<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> who received me with a kindness which prepossessed
-me at once in his favor; he conducted us home, where, to my no
-small gratification, I met my sister.</p>
-
-<p>My father-in-law appeared to be in comfortable circumstances.
-He resided in a very neat house, built of stone, shaded by a noble
-apricot tree, and ornamented with a small but pretty garden. This,
-together with another similar tenement, was his own property. To
-add to my satisfaction, I perceived that he was very kind to my
-mother, and also to myself. She one day expressed a desire to have
-the cold stone floor of the kitchen removed, and boarded instead;
-my father, at considerable expense, gratified her wish; this assured
-me of his regard for her comfort.</p>
-
-<p>With the village itself, I was equally well pleased. Though
-containing few houses, it was delightfully pleasant. Fine farms,
-with large flocks of quiet sheep grazing on their hill-sides; expansive
-fields, surrounded with fragrant hawthorn hedges; and old
-farm-houses, with their thatched roofs, and massive wheat ricks, met
-the pleased eye on all sides; while cultivated gardens and numerous
-wild flowers, especially the modest cowslip and humble violet,
-scented the air and perfumed the breeze. Thus far, perhaps, Bladen
-was equal to Wanstead; but in its moral aspects it was inferior.
-There was far less regard for the Sabbath; less attention to the
-moral culture of the young, than at the latter place. That blessed
-institution, which has vivified and renewed the church, which has
-filled her with the vigorous pulsations of youth&mdash;from which, as<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_15"></a>[15]</span>
-from some prolific nursery, she has obtained the plants, which now
-stand on her mountain-tops like the tall cedars of Lebanon&mdash;the
-modest, unassuming Sabbath school was not there. Consequently,
-the Sabbath was spent in roaming about the fields, in amusements,
-in visiting, in taking excursions to a place called Ramsden, some
-seven miles distant. True, there was a parish church, with two
-clergymen belonging to its altars, but there was service only once
-every Sunday within its ancient walls. During Lent, however,
-both priests and people were more religious; the church was better
-attended; the children were examined as to their knowledge of the
-church catechism! They were even excited to diligence in committing
-it to memory by the inducement of reward. A Bible and two
-prayer books were given to the lads who excelled in answering the
-questions. At the first Lent examination after my coming to Bladen,
-the Bible, the highest prize, was awarded to me, and the second
-year the minister assigned me the task of hearing the others recite&mdash;a
-striking proof of the benefit of Sunday school instruction; it gave
-me both a moral and mental superiority over all my compeers in the
-little village of Bladen. This <ins class="corr" id="tn-15" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'special attenton to'">
-special attention to</ins> religion only
-lasted during the term of Lent; when, with a return to the use of
-meat, the people returned to the neglect of the Sabbath.</p>
-
-<p>The inhabitants of Bladen were very social in their habits.
-They held an annual feast, called Bladen feast, to which they invited
-their friends from other towns; it commenced on Sabbath and
-continued three days. Eating, drinking, talking, fortune-telling,
-gambling, occupied three days of wassail and jollity; after which
-the visitors returned to their respective towns, and the people to
-their occupations. The neighboring villages gave similar feasts in
-their turn. They were occasions of much evil and folly.</p>
-
-<p>My time flew very rapidly and pleasantly away for two or
-three years, until, like most children, I began to sigh for deliverance
-from the restraints of home. I had already left school, and for
-some time, being now about thirteen years of age, had been em<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_16"></a>[16]</span>ployed
-in the pleasure-grounds of Blenheim Palace. This, however,
-was too tame a business for a lad of my spirits. I had heard
-tales of the sea from my cousins; my mother had filled my mind
-with the exploits of my grandfather; my imagination painted a life
-on the great deep in the most glowing colors; my mind grew uneasy;
-every day, my ordinary pursuits became more and more irksome,
-and I was continually talking about going to sea; indeed, I
-had made myself unhappy by being so discontented.</p>
-
-<p>Little do lads and young men know of the difference between
-the comfort of a parent’s roof and the indifference, unkindness, and
-trouble they invariably experience, who go out into the world, until
-they have made the experiment. They paint everything in bright
-colors; they fancy the future to be all sunshine, all sweets, all
-flowers, but are sure to be wofully disappointed, when once away
-from the fireside of their infancy. Let me advise young people, if
-they wish to escape hardships, to be contented, to remain quietly at
-home, abiding the openings of Providence, obeying the wishes of
-their parents, who not only have their best good at heart, but, however
-they may think to the contrary, actually know what is most
-for their advantage.</p>
-
-<p>My passion for a seaman’s life was not a little increased by a
-soldier, who was sergeant to a company in Lord Francis Spencer’s
-regiment of cavalry. Seated by my father’s hearth-side, this old
-soldier, who had once been a sailor, would beguile many an evening
-hour with his endless tale, while I sat listening in enrapt attention.
-My mother, too, heedlessly fanned the flame by her descriptions of
-the noble appearance of the ships she had seen when at Brighton.
-Besides this, a footman at Blenheim House used to sing a song
-called “the poor little sailor boy;” which, although somewhat
-gloomy in its descriptions, only served to heighten the flame of desire
-within me, until I could think of nothing else, day or night, but
-of going to sea.</p>
-
-<p>Finding my desires so strong, my kind-hearted mother men<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_17"></a>[17]</span>tioned
-them to Lady Spencer. Just at that time, her brother, Lord
-William Fitzroy, who was then expecting the command of a frigate,
-and with whom my departed father had lived as valet, happened to
-visit Blenheim, previously to going to sea. Anxious to serve my
-mother, Lady Spencer mentioned me to Lord Fitzroy. He sent
-for me. Trembling in every joint, I was ushered into his presence.
-He inquired if I should like to go to sea. “Yes, my lord, I should,”
-was my ready answer. He dismissed me, after some further questionings;
-but was heard to say, before he left, that he would take
-me under his care, and see to my future advancement.</p>
-
-<p>These dazzling prospects not only well nigh turned my brain,
-but decided my parents to send me to sea. To have their son an
-<em>officer</em> in the navy was an unlooked-for honor; and they now entered
-into my plans and feelings with almost as much ardor as myself.
-Alas! We were all doomed to learn how little confidence can be
-placed in the promises of nobles!</p>
-
-<p>Not long after Lord Fitzroy’s departure, we received a letter
-stating the fact of his appointment to his majesty’s frigate <i>Macedonian</i>,
-which, being out of dock, was rapidly preparing for sea. This
-intelligence was the signal for bustle, excitement, preparation, and
-I know not what. Friends and gossips constantly crowded in to
-administer their gratuitous advice; some predicting, to my infinite
-delight, that certainly so smart a boy would make a great man;
-others wore very grave countenances, and gave certain expressive
-shrugs of the shoulders, while they told of flogging through the
-fleet, or of being “seized up” for merely a look or a word; in short,
-but for a strong conviction in my own breast that this was all said
-for effect, it is doubtful whether they would not have succeeded in
-deterring me from my purpose.</p>
-
-<p>At last, after much ado, the long-expected day arrived when I
-was to bid farewell to home and friends, to venture abroad upon an
-unknown future. It would only vex the reader by its common<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_18"></a>[18]</span>place
-character, or I would reveal all the nice little acts of parental,
-brotherly and neighborly affection which took place. Suffice it to
-say, that my parting was very much the same as that of all other
-boys of twelve, when they leave home for the first time&mdash;a mixture
-of hopes and fears, of tears and smiles, of sunshine and cloud.</p>
-
-<p>Attended by my mother and her infant daughter, on the
-12th day of July, 1810, I turned my back on the quiet hamlet of
-Bladen. Henceforth my lot was to be cast amid noise, dissipation,
-storms and danger. This, however, disturbed my mind but little;
-brushing away a tear, I leaped gaily on to the outside of the coach,
-and in a few minutes, enveloped in a cloud of dust, was on my way
-to London, filled with the one absorbing idea, “I am going to sea!
-I am going to sea!” Should the reader take the trouble to read the
-following chapters, he will learn the mishaps, hardships, pleasures
-and successes that befell me there; and though my narrative may
-not be filled with the witching tales, and romantic descriptions, that
-abound in the works of the novelist, it shall at least commend itself
-to his notice for its truthfulness.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_19"></a>[19]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">Before we sought the decks of the <i>Macedonian</i> we paid a
-short visit to Wanstead, where we met with very pleasant
-reception, very hospitable entertainment, very affectionate
-adieus. Returning to London, we hired a boat and sailed down the
-Thames, on whose bosom reposed the commerce of the world, to
-Gravesend, where we spent the night. The next morning I experienced
-a new gratification, which was nothing less than being arrayed
-in a complete suit of sailor apparel; a tarpaulin hat, round
-blue jacket and wide pantaloons. Never did young knight swell
-with loftier emotion when donning for the first time his iron dress,
-than I did when in sea dress I trod the streets of Gravesend. This
-had always been my highest ambition. The gaudily dressed soldier
-never had charms for me; but a sailor, how nice he looked! Well,
-here I stood, at last, in the often coveted dress; it was the first luxury
-connected with my life at sea. Pity that each successive step
-had not yielded me equal delight. But it was mine to learn that
-anticipation and reality were not born twins; that in fact there are
-scarcely any two existences so essentially different in their characteristics.
-That I should not lack the means of comfort, my good
-mother purchased me a chest of clothing, and, as her last token of
-maternal care, presented me with a Bible, a prayer book, and,
-strangely inconsistent companions, a pack of cards! Thus equipped,
-we once more hired a boat and descended the river two miles below
-Gravesend, where lay the <i>Macedonian</i>, in graceful majesty on the
-sparkling waters.</p>
-
-<p>The first guest we met on board was <em>disappointment</em>. From
-the promises of Lord Fitzroy, we very strangely supposed that he<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_20"></a>[20]</span>
-felt my importance nearly as much as did my mother or father.
-Judge then how we felt, when we learned that no one knew anything
-in particular about my veritable self; yet, as his Lordship was
-absent, they said I might remain on board until his return. This
-was rather a damper on my spirits, but flattering myself that all
-would be right on his return, I soon rallied again, and, aided by the
-presence of my mother, passed a very agreeable day.</p>
-
-<p>Towards night, my mother left me; it scarcely need be said, she
-wept when we parted. What mother would not? She did weep,
-she strained me to her heart, and impressed affection’s purest kiss
-upon my cheek. How like a dream that moment fled! Now, she
-held me in her arms; a moment after, she was seated in the light boat
-and gliding along the turbid Thames, on her homeward way. I
-leaned over the taffrail and gazed on the departing boat, and when
-it disappeared, I turned away and wept.</p>
-
-<p>The morning after my arrival, I was put into a “mess.” The
-crew of a man of war is divided into little communities of about
-eight, called <em>messes</em>. These eat and drink together, and are, as it
-were, so many families. The mess to which I was introduced, was
-composed of your genuine, weather-beaten, old tars. But for one
-of its members, it would have suited me very well; this one, a real
-gruff old “bull-dog,” named Hudson, took into his head to hate me
-at first sight. He treated me with so much abuse and unkindness,
-that my messmates soon advised me to change my mess, a privilege
-which is wisely allowed, and which tends very much to the good fellowship
-of a ship’s crew; for if there are disagreeable men among
-them, they can in this way be got rid of; it is no unfrequent case to
-find a few, who have been spurned from all the messes in the ship,
-obliged to mess by themselves.</p>
-
-<p>This unkindness from the brutal Hudson rather chilled my
-enthusiasm. The crew, too, by some means had an impression that
-my mother had brought me on board to get rid of me, and therefore<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_21"></a>[21]</span>
-bestowed their bitterest curses on her in the most profuse manner
-imaginable. Swearing I had heard before, but never such as I
-heard there. Nor was this all; in performing the work assigned
-me, which consisted in helping the seamen take in provisions, powder,
-shot, etc., I felt the insults and tyranny of the midshipmen.
-These little minions of power ordered and drove me round like a
-dog, nor did I and the other boys dare interpose a word. They
-were <em>officers</em>; their word was our law, and woe betide the presumptuous
-boy that dared refuse implicit obedience.</p>
-
-<p>These things reminded me of what had been said to me of the
-hardships of sea life in a man of war. I began to wish myself back
-in my father’s house at Bladen. This, however, was impossible,
-and to add to my discouragement they told me I was entered on the
-ship’s books for life. Dreary prospect! I felt more than half disposed,
-as I went to my tasks, to use the language of the Irishman,
-as sung by my shipmates. Tempted and beguiled while intoxicated,
-he had enlisted for a soldier, but found the sergeant at the
-<em>recruiting office</em> and the sergeant on the <em>drill-field</em> very different
-personages. He is hence made to say,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="verse indentq">“It was early next morning to drill I was sent,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And its och to my soul! I began to lament;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Cannot you be aisy and let me alone?</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Don’t you see I’ve got arms, legs, and feet of my own?”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>But although somewhat grieved with my first experience of
-sailor life, I secretly struggled against my feelings, and with the
-most philosophic desperation resolved to make the best of my condition.
-We were kept busily at work every day until the ship’s
-stores were all on board, and our frigate was ready for sea. Then
-two hundred more men, draughted from receiving ships, came on
-board, to complete the number of our crew, which, after this addition,
-numbered full three hundred men. The jocularity, pleasantry,
-humor and good feeling that now prevailed on board our<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_22"></a>[22]</span>
-frigate, somewhat softened the unpleasantness of my lot, and cultivated
-a feeling of reconciliation to my circumstances. Various little
-friendships, which sprang up between me and my shipmates,
-threw a gleam of gladness across my path; a habit of attention, respect
-and obedience in a short time secured me universal good will.
-I began to be tolerably satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>Many boys complain of ill usage at sea. I know they are subjected
-to it in many instances; yet, in most cases, they owe it to
-their own boldness. A boy on shipboard, who is habitually saucy,
-will be kicked and cuffed by all with whom he has to do; he will be
-made miserable. The reason is, I imagine, that sailors, being
-treated as inferiors themselves, love to find opportunity to act the
-<em>superior</em> over some one. They do this over the boys, and if they
-find a saucy, insolent one, they show him no mercy. Permit me,
-then, to advise boys who go to sea, to be civil and obliging to all;
-they will be amply repaid for the effort it may cost them to make
-the trial, especially if they gain the reputation, as I did, of being
-among the best boys in the ship.</p>
-
-<p>A vessel of war contains a little community of human beings,
-isolated, for the time being, from the rest of mankind. This community
-is governed by laws peculiar to itself; it is arranged and divided
-in a manner suitable to its circumstances. Hence, when its
-members first come together, each one is assigned his respective station
-and duty. For every task, from getting up the anchor to unbending
-the sails, aloft and below, at the mess-tub or in the hammock,
-each task has its man, and each man his place. A ship contains
-a set of human machinery, in which every man is a wheel, a
-band, or a crank, all moving with wonderful regularity and precision
-to the will of its machinist&mdash;the all-powerful captain.</p>
-
-<p>The men are distributed in all parts of the vessel; those in the
-tops are called fore-top-men, main-top-men, and mizzen-top-men,
-with two captains to each top, one for each watch. These top-men<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_23"></a>[23]</span>
-have to loose, take in, reef and furl the sails aloft, such as the top-gallant
-sails, top-sails, top-gallant royal, and top-sail studding-sails.
-Others are called forecastle men, waisters, and the after-guard;
-these have to loose, tend, and furl the courses, that is, the
-fore-sail, the main-sail and lower studding-sails; they also have to
-set the jib, flying-jib, and spanker; the after-guard have a special
-charge to coil up all ropes in the after part of the ship. Others are
-called <em>scavengers</em>; these, as their not very attractive name imports,
-have to sweep and pick up the dirt that may chance to gather
-through the day, and throw it overboard. Then come the boys, who
-are mostly employed as servants to the officers. Our captain had
-a steward and a boy; these acted as his domestic servants in his large
-and stately cabin, which, to meet the ideas of landsmen, may be
-called his house. The lieutenants, purser, surgeon, and sailing-master,
-had each a boy; they, together with the two lieutenants of
-marines, who were waited upon by two marines, form what is called
-the ward-room officers. The ward-room is a large cabin, (I mean
-large for a ship, of course,) below the captain’s, where they all mess
-together; aft of this cabin is a smaller one, which serves as a species
-of store-room. Besides these accommodations, every ward-room
-officer has his state-room, containing his cot, wash-stand, writing-desk,
-clothes, etc. The gunner, boatswain, and some others, are
-also allowed a boy; and a man and boy are appointed to be the servants
-of a certain number of midshipmen.</p>
-
-<p>Another arrangement is that of forming the ship’s company
-into watches. The captain, first lieutenant, surgeon, purser, boatswain,
-gunner, carpenter, armorer, together with the stewards and
-boys, are excused from belonging to them, but are liable to be called
-out to take in sail; some of the last mentioned are called <em>idlers</em>. All
-others are in watches, called the larboard and starboard watches.</p>
-
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-<p>Stations are also assigned at the guns, to the whole crew.
-When at sea, the drummer beats to quarters every night. This
-beat, by which the men are summoned to quarters, is a regular tune.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_24"></a>[24]</span>
-I have often heard the words sung which belong to it; this is the
-chorus:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="verse indentq">“Hearts of oak are our ships, jolly tars are our men,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">We always are ready, steady, boys, steady,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To fight and to conquer again and again.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="noindent">At the roll of this evening drum, all hands hurry to the guns.
-Eight men and a boy are stationed at each gun, one of whom is captain
-of the gun, another sponges and loads it, the rest take hold of
-the side tackle-falls, to run the gun in and out; while the boy is employed
-in handing the cartridges, for which he is honored with the
-singularly euphonious cognomen of powder-monkey.</p>
-
-<p>Besides these arrangements among the men, there are from
-thirty to forty marines to be disposed of. These do duty as sentries
-at the captain’s cabin, the ward-room, and at the galley during
-the time of cooking. They are also stationed at the large guns at
-night, as far as their numbers run. When a ship is in action, and
-small arms can be brought to bear on the enemy, they are stationed
-on the spar-deck; they are also expected to assist in boarding, in
-conjunction with several seamen from each gun, who are armed
-with pistols and pikes, and called boarders.</p>
-
-<p>The great disparity of numbers between the crew of a merchant
-ship and that of a man of war, occasions a difference in their
-internal arrangements and mode of life, scarcely conceivable by
-those who have not seen both. This is seen throughout, from the
-act of rousing the hands in the morning to that of taking in sail.
-In the merchantman, the watch below is called up by a few strokes
-of the handspike on the forecastle; in the man of war, by the boatswain
-and his mates. The boatswain is a petty officer, of considerable
-importance in his way; he and his mates carry a small silver
-whistle or pipe, suspended from the neck by a small cord. He receives
-word from the officer of the watch to call the hands up. You
-immediately hear a sharp, shrill whistle; this is succeeded by an<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_25"></a>[25]</span>other
-and another from his mates. Then follows his hoarse, rough
-cry of “All hands ahoy!” which is forthwith repeated by his mates.
-Scarcely has this sound died upon the ear, before the cry of “Up all
-hammocks ahoy!” succeeds it, to be repeated in like manner. As
-the first tones of the whistle penetrate between decks, signs of life
-make their appearance. Rough, uncouth forms are seen tumbling
-out of their hammocks on all sides, and before its last sounds have
-died upon the air, the whole company of sleepers are hurriedly preparing
-for the duties of the day. No delay is permitted, for as
-soon as the before-mentioned officers have uttered their imperative
-commands, they run below, each armed with a rope’s end, with
-which they belabor the shoulders of any luckless wight upon whose
-eyes sleep yet hangs heavily, or whose slow-moving limbs show him
-to be but half awake.</p>
-
-<p>With a rapidity which would surprise a landsman, the crew
-dress themselves, lash their hammocks and carry them on deck,
-where they are stowed for the day. There is system even in this
-arrangement; every hammock has its appropriate place. Below,
-the beams are all marked, each hammock is marked with a corresponding
-number, and in the darkest night, a sailor will go unhesitatingly
-to his own hammock. They are also kept exceeding clean.
-Every man is provided with two, so that while he is scrubbing and
-cleaning one, he may have another to use. Nothing but such precautions
-could enable so many men to live in so small a space.</p>
-
-<p>A similar rapidity attends the performance of every duty.
-The word of command is given in the same manner, and its prompt
-obedience enforced by the same unceremonious rope’s-end. To
-skulk is therefore next to impossible; the least tardiness is rebuked
-by the cry of “Hurrah my hearty! bear a hand! heave along! heave
-along!” This system of driving is far from being agreeable; it
-perpetually reminds you of your want of liberty; it makes you feel,
-sometimes, as if the hardest crust, the most ragged garments, with
-the freedom of your own native hills, would be preferable to John<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_26"></a>[26]</span>
-Bull’s “beef and duff,” joined as it is with the rope’s-end of the
-driving boatswain.</p>
-
-<p>We had one poor fellow, an Irishman, named Billy Garvy, who
-felt very uneasy and unhappy. He was the victim of that mortifying
-system of impressment, prevalent in Great Britain in time of
-war. He came on board perfectly unacquainted with the mysteries
-of sea life. One of his first inquiries was, where he should find his
-bed, supposing they slept on shipboard on beds the same as on shore.
-His messmates, with true sailor roguishness, sent him to the boatswain.
-“And where shall I find a bed, sir?” asked he of this
-rugged son of the ocean.</p>
-
-<p>The boatswain looked at him very contemptuously for a moment,
-then, rolling his lump of tobacco into another apartment of
-his ample mouth, replied,</p>
-
-<p>“Have you got a knife?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, stick it into the softest plank in the ship, and take that
-for a bed!”</p>
-
-<p>Poor fellow! what was sport for others was pain to him. He
-had been used to kind treatment at home. After he had received
-his hammock, when turning out in the morning, with the boatswain’s
-mates at his heels, he used to exclaim, “When I was at home, I
-would walk in my father’s garden in the morning, until the maid
-would come and say, ‘William, will you come to your ta, or your
-coffee ta, or your chocolarata?’ But, oh! the case is altered now;
-it’s nothing but bear a hand, lash and carry. Oh, dear!”</p>
-
-<p>I confess that Billy Garvy was not the only one who contrasted
-the present with the past, or who found the balance to be greatly
-in favor of the former. I often looked back to the village of Bladen,
-and thought how preferable would be the bright hearth-side<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_27"></a>[27]</span>
-and pleasant voices of that quiet home, to the profane, rough, uncomfortable
-life we led on shipboard. As these reflections were
-anything but pleasurable, I banished them as quickly as possible,
-with a determination to be as happy as I could in my station of
-servant to the surgeon of His Britannic Majesty’s frigate <i>Macedonian</i>:
-a resolution which I commend to all lads, who, like me, are
-foolish enough to quit the quiet scenes of a native village, for the
-noisy, profane atmosphere of a man of war.</p>
-
-<p>As our fare was novel and so different from shore living, it
-was some time before I could get fully reconciled to it: it was composed
-of hard sea biscuit, fresh beef while in port, but salt pork and
-salt beef at sea, pea soup and burgoo. Burgoo, or, as it was sportively
-called, skillagallee, was oatmeal boiled in water to the consistency
-of hasty pudding. Sometimes we had cocoa instead of burgoo.
-Once a week we had flour and raisins served out, with which
-we made “duff” or pudding. To prepare these articles, each mess
-had its cook, who drew the provisions, made the duff, washed the
-mess kids, etc. He also drew the grog for the mess, which consisted
-of a gill of rum mixed with two gills of water for each man. This
-was served out at noon every day: at four o’clock, P. M., each man
-received half a pint of wine. The boys only drew half this quantity,
-but were allowed pay for the remainder, a regulation which
-could have been profitably applied to the whole supply of grog
-and wine for both boys and men. But those were not days in
-which Temperance triumphed as she does now; though, I believe,
-the British navy has not yet ceased to dispense the “drink that’s
-in the drunkard’s bowl” to her seamen.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after our captain came on board, his servant died somewhat
-suddenly, so that I had an early opportunity of seeing how
-sailors are disposed of in this sad hour. The corpse was laid out on
-the grating, covered with a flag; as we were yet in the river, the
-body was taken on shore and buried, without the beautiful burial-service
-of the church of England being read at his grave&mdash;a cere<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_28"></a>[28]</span>mony
-which is not omitted at the interment of the veriest pauper in
-that country.</p>
-
-<p>I have purposely dwelt on these particulars, that the reader
-may feel himself initiated at once into the secrets of man-of-war
-usages. He has doubtless seen ships of war with their trim rigging
-and frowning ports, and his heart has swelled with pride as he has
-gazed upon these floating cities&mdash;the representatives of his nation’s
-character in foreign countries: to their internal arrangements,
-however, he has been a stranger. I have endeavored to introduce
-him into the interior: a desire to make him feel at home there, is my
-apology for dwelling so long on these descriptions.</p>
-
-<p>After various delays, we were at last ready for sea and under
-sailing orders. The tide and wind were both propitious; then came
-the long-expected cry of the boatswain, “All hands up anchor
-ahoy!” The crew manned the capstan in a trice, and running
-round to the tune of a lively air played by the fifer, the huge anchor
-rapidly left the mud of the Thames, and hung at the bows of our
-taut frigate. Then came the cry of “All hands make sail ahoy!”
-As if by magic, she was immediately covered with canvas; the
-favoring breeze at once filled our sails, and the form that had lain
-for weeks inert and motionless on the waters, now bounded along
-the waves like a thing of life. Rapidly we ran down the Channel,
-and before we had well got under weigh came to an anchor again
-at Spithead, under shelter of the garden of England&mdash;the Isle of
-Wight.</p>
-
-<p>Short as was the period between weighing anchor off Gravesend
-and our arrival at Spithead, it gave opportunity for one of
-those occurrences which are a disgrace to the naval service of any
-nation, and a degradation to our common humanity, which the public
-opinion of the civilized world should frown out of existence: I
-allude to the brutal practice of flogging.</p>
-
-<p>A poor fellow had fallen into the very sailorlike offence of get<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_29"></a>[29]</span>ting
-drunk. For this the captain sentenced him to the punishment
-of four dozen lashes. He was first placed in <em>irons</em> all night: the
-irons used for this purpose were shackles fitting round the ankles,
-through the ends of which was passed an iron bar some ten or twelve
-feet in length: it was thus long because it was no unfrequent case
-for half a dozen men to be ironed at once. A padlock at the end
-of the bar held the prisoner securely. Thus placed in “duress
-vile,” he was guarded by a marine until the captain bade the first
-lieutenant prepare the hands to witness the punishment. Upon
-this the lieutenant transmitted the order to the master at arms.
-He then ordered the grating or hatch full of square holes to be
-rigged: it was placed accordingly between the main and spar decks,
-not far from the mainmast.</p>
-
-<p>While these preparations were going on, the officers were dressing
-themselves in full uniform and arming themselves with their
-dirks: the prisoner’s messmates carried him his best clothes, to
-make him appear in as decent a manner as possible. This is always
-done, in the hope of moving the feelings of the captain favorably
-towards the prisoner.</p>
-
-<p>This done, the hoarse, dreaded cry of “All hands ahoy to
-witness punishment!” from the lips of the boatswain, peals along
-the ship as mournfully as the notes of a funeral knell. At this
-signal the officers muster on the spar deck, the men on the main
-deck. Next came the prisoner; guarded by a marine on one side
-and the master at arms on the other, he was marched up to the
-grating. His back was made bare and his shirt laid loosely upon
-his back; the two quartermasters proceeded to seize him up; that is,
-they tied his hands and feet with spun-yarns, called the seizings,
-to the grating. The boatswain’s mates, whose office it is to flog on
-board a man of war, stood ready with their dreadful weapon of
-punishment, the cat-o’-nine-tails. This instrument of torture was
-composed of nine cords, a quarter of an inch round and about two
-feet long, the ends whipt with fine twine. To these cords was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_30"></a>[30]</span>
-affixed a stock, two feet in length, covered with red baize. The
-reader may be sure that it is a most formidable instrument in the
-hands of a strong, skilful man. Indeed, any man who should whip
-his horse with it would commit an outrage on humanity, which
-the moral feeling of any community would not tolerate; he would
-be prosecuted for cruelty; yet it is used to whip <span class="allsmcap">MEN</span> on board ships
-of war!</p>
-
-<p>The boatswain’s mate is ready, with coat off and whip in hand.
-The captain gives the word. Carefully spreading the cords with
-the fingers of his left hand, the executioner throws the cat over his
-right shoulder; it is brought down upon the now uncovered herculean
-shoulders of the <span class="allsmcap">MAN</span>. His flesh creeps&mdash;it reddens as if
-blushing at the indignity; the sufferer groans; lash follows lash,
-until the first mate, wearied with the cruel employment, gives place
-to a second. Now two dozen of these dreadful lashes have been
-inflicted: the lacerated back looks inhuman; it resembles roasted
-meat burnt nearly black before a scorching fire; yet still the lashes
-fall; the captain continues merciless. Vain are the cries and
-prayers of the wretched man. “I would not forgive the Saviour,”
-was the blasphemous reply of one of these naval demi-gods, or
-rather demi-fiends, to a plea for mercy. The executioners keep on.
-Four dozen strokes have cut up his flesh and robbed him of all
-self-respect; there he hangs, a pitied, self-despised, groaning, bleeding
-wretch; and now the captain cries, forbear! His shirt is thrown
-over his shoulders; the seizings are loosed; he is led away, staining
-his path with red drops of blood, and the hands, “piped down” by
-the boatswain, sullenly return to their duties.</p>
-
-<p>Such was the scene witnessed on board the <i>Macedonian</i>, on the
-passage from London to Spithead; such, substantially, is every
-punishment scene at sea; only carried, sometimes, to a greater
-length of severity. Sad and sorrowful were my feelings on witnessing
-it; thoughts of the friendly warnings of my old acquaintance
-filled my mind, and I inwardly wished myself once more<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_31"></a>[31]</span>
-under the friendly roof of my father, at Bladen. Vain wish! I
-should have believed the warning voice when it was given. Believe
-me, young man, you will often breathe that wish, if ever you
-wander from a father’s house.</p>
-
-<p>Flogging in the navy is more severe than in the army, though
-it is too bad to be tolerated there, or indeed anywhere. Other modes
-of punishment might be successfully substituted, which would deter
-from misconduct, without destroying the self-respect of the man.
-I hope the day will come, when a captain will no more be allowed
-to use the “cat” than he is now to use poison. It should be an
-interdicted weapon.</p>
-
-<p>Though I have spoken severely of the officers of the navy, let
-it not be thought that the whole class of naval officers are lost to
-the finer feelings of humanity. There are many humane, considerate
-men among them, who deserve our highest respect. This
-was the case with the first lieutenant of the <i>Macedonian</i>, Mr. Scott.
-He abhorred flogging. Once, when a poor marine was under sentence,
-he plead <ins class="corr" id="tn-31" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'hard and succesfully'">
-hard and successfully</ins> with the captain for his respite.
-This was a great victory; for the captain had a profound hatred
-of marines. The poor soldier was extremely grateful for his intercession,
-and would do anything for him to show his sense of the
-obligation; indeed, the sailors, in their odd way, showed their preference
-for him by describing him as a man who had a soul to be
-saved, and who ought to go to heaven; while of the captain, they
-whispered that if he did not go to perdition, “the devil would be
-cheated of his due.” These are, in a manner, proverbial expressions
-of like and dislike, on board a British man of war.</p>
-
-<p>One of the effects of this exhibition of cruelty was seen during
-the short time we lay at Spithead. The two boys, who were servants
-to the first and second lieutenants, conceiving a special dislike
-to the idea of being flogged, took it into their heads to run
-away. Being sent on shore, they shaped their course for the country.
-It was well for them that they were not re-taken.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_32"></a>[32]</span></p>
-
-<p>Our frigate had orders to convey between two and three hundred
-troops from Portsmouth to Lisbon, to assist the Portuguese
-against the French. The soldiers were stowed on the main decks,
-with very few conveniences for the voyage; their officers messed
-and berthed in the ward-room. Having taken them on board, we
-again weighed anchor, and were soon careering before the breeze
-on our way to Lisbon.</p>
-
-<p>As usual, we who were landsmen had our share of that merciless,
-nondescript, hateful, stultifying disease, yclept sea-sickness;
-as usual, we wished the foolish wish that we had never come
-to sea; as usual, we got over it, and laughed at ourselves for our
-sea-sick follies. Our good ship paid little attention, however, to
-our feelings; she kept along on her bounding way, and, after a
-week at sea, we were greeted with the pleasant cry of “Land ho!”
-from the mast-head. As it was now near night, we lay off and on
-until morning; at day-break we fired a gun for a pilot. The wind
-being nearly dead ahead, we had to beat about nearly all day.
-Towards night it became fair, and we ascended the Tagus. This
-river is about nine miles wide at its mouth, and is four hundred
-and fifty miles in length; it has a very rapid current, with steep,
-fertile banks. Aided by a fine breeze, we ascended it in splendid
-style, passed a half-moon battery, then shot past Belem Castle
-into the port of Lisbon, about ten miles from its mouth. Here we
-found a spacious harbor, filled with shipping. Besides numerous
-merchantmen, there were two ships of a hundred guns, several
-seventy-fours, frigates and sloops of war, with a large number of
-transports; all designed for the defence of Lisbon against the
-French.</p>
-
-<p>Lisbon has a fine appearance from the harbor. A stranger,
-after a long sea-voyage, <ins class="corr" id="tn-32" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'whle standing on'">
-while standing on</ins> the deck of his vessel,
-and gazing on its battlements and towers, might fancy it to be
-a terrestrial paradise; but, on landing, his admiration would cer<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_33"></a>[33]</span>tainly
-sink below zero, as he plodded his way, beset by saucy beggars
-at almost every step, through its narrow, filthy streets. Such,
-at least, was my impression, as I perambulated the city. Among
-other things, I noticed a great variety of churches and convents,
-which furnished swarms of plump, good-natured friars, under
-whose spiritual domination the good people of Lisbon were content
-to rest. I also counted thirteen large squares. One of them contained
-a huge black horse, standing in its centre, with the figure
-of a man upon his back, both much larger than life. What this
-monument represented, <ins class="corr" id="tn-33" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'I dd not learn'">
-I did not learn</ins>. That square is denominated
-Black Horse Square.</p>
-
-<p>On the day after our arrival, the <i>Macedonian</i> was the scene
-of considerable bustle. The troops, who seemed to forget their
-proximity to a field of carnage, in the delight they felt at escaping
-from the confinement on shipboard, were landed; several boats’
-crews were also sent up the river to assist in the defence of the
-place.</p>
-
-<p>While we lay here, our ship was well supplied with fruits from
-the shore. Large bunches of delicious grapes, abundance of sweet
-oranges, water-melons, chestnuts, and also a bountiful supply of
-gigantic onions, of peculiar flavor, enabled our crew to gratify
-their palates in true English style. Poor fellows! they feasted,
-laughed, and joked, as if the future had nothing to develop but
-fairy scenes of unmixed delight. Little thought, indeed, does
-your true tar take of the morrow.</p>
-
-<p>Amid these feastings, however, there rose something to trouble
-Macbeth, in the shape of an order from the admiral to prepare for
-a cruise. This was peremptory;&mdash;for a cruise, therefore, we prepared.
-Our boats’ crews came on board; the officers stored their
-larder with the means of gustatory gratifications; and we stood out
-to sea again.</p>
-
-<p>The port of Corunna, in Spain, was the next place at which we<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_34"></a>[34]</span>
-anchored. While lying in this spacious and safe harbor, our little
-world was thrown into temporary confusion by the loss of the ward-room
-steward, Mr. Sanders. This man could speak in the Spanish
-tongue; he had accumulated a considerable sum of money by long
-service, prize money, and an economy little known among sailors.
-For some cause or other he had become dissatisfied; so, one day, he
-engaged a Spaniard to run his boat under the stern of our frigate;
-dropping from one of the stern ports into the boat, unperceived by
-the officers, the wily Spaniards covered him with their loose garments
-and sails, and then conveyed him to the shore. This was
-running a great risk; for had he been detected in the act, or taken
-afterwards, he would have felt the cruel strokes of the lash. Fortunately
-for himself, he escaped without detection.</p>
-
-<p>From Corunna, we returned to Lisbon, where, at the cheerful
-cry of “All hands bring the ship to an anchor, ahoy!” we once
-more placed our frigate, taut and trim, under the battlements of
-the city.</p>
-
-<p>As servant to the surgeon, it was one part of my duty to perform
-the task of carrying his clothes to be washed. As great attention
-to cleanliness, in frequently changing their linen, is observed
-among naval officers, a good washerwoman is considered quite a
-desideratum. In attending to this matter for my master, I had
-frequent opportunities to go on shore. This gave me some means
-of observation. On one of my visits to our pretty laundress, I saw
-several Portuguese running along, gesticulating and talking with
-great earnestness. Being ignorant of their language, my washerwoman,
-who spoke good English, told me that a man had been
-stabbed, in consequence of some ground for jealousy, afforded by
-the conduct of the deceased. Hastening to the spot, I saw the
-wounded man, stretched out on a bed, with two gaping wounds in
-his side, the long knife, the instrument of the deed, lying by his side.
-The poor sufferer soon died. What was done to the murderer, I
-could not discover.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_35"></a>[35]</span></p>
-
-<p>Though very passionate, and addicted to the use of the knife,
-for the purpose of taking summary vengeance, the Portuguese are
-nevertheless arrant cowards. Indeed, it is a question by no means
-settled, whether all classes of men, in any country, who fly to cold
-steel or to fire-arms in every petty quarrel, are not cowards at
-heart. We had an evidence of Portuguese cowardice in an affray
-which occurred between some of the citizens of Lisbon and a party
-of our marines. Six of the latter, ignorant of the palace or municipal
-regulations, wandered into the queen’s gardens. Some
-twenty of the Portuguese, on witnessing this bold intrusion on the
-privacy of the queen, rushed upon them with long knives. The
-marines, though so inferior in number, faced about with their bayonets,
-and, after much cursing and chattering, their enemies, considering
-perhaps that the better part of valor is discretion, took to
-their heels, leaving the six marines masters of a bloodless field.
-These recontres were quite common between them and our men; the
-result, though sometimes more serious, was uniformly the same.</p>
-
-<p>As an illustration of the manners of this people, I cannot forbear
-the insertion of another fact. I was one day walking leisurely
-along the streets, quite at my ease, when the gathering of a noisy
-multitude arrested my attention. Looking up, I was shocked at
-seeing a human head, with a pair of hands beneath it, nailed to a
-pole! They had just been taken from the body of a barber, who,
-when in the act of shaving a gentleman, was seized with a sudden
-desire to possess a beautiful watch, which glittered in his pocket; to
-gain this brilliant bauble, the wretched man cut his victim’s throat.
-He was arrested, his hands were cut off, then his head, and both
-were fastened to the pole as I have described them. Upon inquiry,
-I ascertained that this was the ordinary method of punishing murder
-in Portugal; a striking evidence that civilization had not fully
-completed its great work among them. Civilization humanizes
-the feelings of society, throwing a veil of refinement and mercy over
-even the sterner acts of justice; at any rate, it never tolerates such
-barbarism as I saw at Lisbon.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_36"></a>[36]</span></p>
-
-<p>While in port we experienced a change of officers by no means
-agreeable to the crew. Mr. Scott, our first lieutenant, an amiable
-man, decidedly hostile to the practice of flogging, left us; for what
-cause, we could not ascertain. His successor, Mr. Hope, though
-bearing a very pleasant name, was an entirely different person, in
-manners and conduct, from his predecessor. He was harsh, severe,
-and fond of seeing the men flogged. Of course, floggings became
-more frequent than before; for, although a lieutenant cannot flog
-upon his own authority, yet, such is the influence he exerts over a
-captain, that he has the utmost opportunity to gratify a thirst for
-punishment. It may appear strange to the reader that any gentleman&mdash;and
-all officers of the navy consider themselves <em>gentlemen</em>&mdash;should
-possess such a thirst; yet such was the case with Mr. Hope.
-Nor was his a solitary example; many a man, who, on shore, in
-presence of ladies of fashion, appeared too gentle to harm an enemy,
-too kind to injure an insect, was strangely metamorphosed into a
-genuine unprincipled tyrant, upon assuming command in a man of
-war.</p>
-
-<p>We had already witnessed a number of punishments, especially
-at sea: in port, the officers were more condescending, lest their men
-should desert; but at sea, when this was impossible, they flogged
-without mercy. Cases of offence which occurred while in the harbor,
-were looked up; sometimes a half dozen were flogged at once;
-every man trembled lest he should be a victim; the ship’s crew were
-made wretched; a sword seemed impending over every head. Who,
-in such a case, could be happy? Not even a sailor, with all his habitual
-thoughtlessness. Yet it is said we must flog, to maintain discipline
-among sailors. Pshaw! Flogging may be needful to awe
-a slave writhing under a sense of unmerited wrong, but never
-should a lash fall on a freeman’s back, especially if he holds the
-safety and honor of his country in his keeping.</p>
-
-<p>Poor old Bob Hammond! Never was man more reckless than
-this honest-hearted Irishman; never was sailor more courageous<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_37"></a>[37]</span>
-under punishment. For being drunk he received four dozen
-lashes; he bore the infliction with profound silence, uttering neither
-groan nor sigh; neither casting one imploring look at his tormentors.
-On being taken down, he applied himself most lustily to his bottle,
-and before night was drunk again. Rushing to the quarter deck,
-with a madness peculiar to a phrensied drunkard, he ran up against
-the captain with such force that he nearly knocked him down.
-With a boldness that seemed to strike the great man dumb, Bob
-hiccupped and said,</p>
-
-<p>“Halloo, Billy, my boy, is that you? You are young and foolish;
-just fit for the launch. You are like a young lion&mdash;all your
-sorrows are to come.”</p>
-
-<p>The captain was excessively proud; even his officers scarcely
-dared walk the quarter deck on the same side with him. He never
-allowed himself to be addressed but by his title of “my Lord.”
-Should a sailor, through design or forgetfulness, reply to a command,
-“Yes, sir,” the lordly man would look at him with a glance
-full of dignity, and sternly reply, “What, sir?” This, of course,
-would put the offender in mind to correct himself by saying, “Yes,
-my <em>Lord</em>.” Judge then of his surprise, indignation, nay, of his
-lordly horror, when poor old drunken Bob Hammond called him
-“Billy, my boy!” Doubtless it stirred up his nobility within him,
-for, with a voice of thunder, he exclaimed, “Put this man in irons!”
-It was done. The next morning, his back yet sore, poor Bob received
-five dozen more strokes of the hated cat-o’-nine-tails. Most
-heroically was it borne. No sound escaped him; the most profound
-silence was observed by all, broken only by the dead sound of the
-whip, as it fell every few moments on the wounded back. The
-scene was sickening in the extreme. Let me throw a veil over its
-details, simply remarking that it is questionable which of the two
-appears to the best advantage; poor drunken Bob, suffering degrading
-torture with heroic firmness, or my Lord Fitzroy, gloating<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_38"></a>[38]</span>
-on the scene with the appetite of a vulture! Let the reader decide
-for himself.</p>
-
-<p>These statements may at first sight appear incredible. It may
-be asked how a man could endure whippings which would destroy
-an ox or a horse. This is a very natural question, and but for the
-consciousness I feel of being supported in my statements by the
-universal testimony of old men-of-war’s-men, I should hesitate to
-publish them. The <em>worst</em> species of this odious torture, however,
-remains to be described&mdash;flogging through the fleet.</p>
-
-<p>This punishment is never inflicted without due trial and sentence
-by a court-martial, for some aggravated offence. After the
-offender is thus sentenced, and the day arrives appointed by his
-judges for its execution, the unhappy wretch is conducted into the
-ship’s launch&mdash;a large boat&mdash;which has been previously rigged up
-with poles and grating, to which he is seized up; he is attended by
-the ship’s surgeon, whose duty it is to decide when the power of
-nature’s endurance has been taxed to its utmost. A boat from
-every ship in the fleet is also present, each carrying one or two officers
-and two marines fully armed. These boats are connected by
-tow lines to the launch.</p>
-
-<p>These preparations made, the crew of the victim’s ship are ordered
-to man the rigging, while the boatswain commences the tragedy.
-When he has administered one, two or three dozen lashes,
-according to the number of ships in the fleet, the prisoner’s shirt is
-thrown over his gory back; the boatswain returns on board, the
-hands are piped down, the drummer beats a mournful melody,
-called the rogue’s march, and the melancholy procession moves on.
-Arriving at the side of another ship, the brutal scene is repeated,
-until every crew in the fleet has witnessed it, and from one to three
-hundred lashes have lacerated the back of the broken-spirited tar to
-a bleeding pulp. He is then placed under the surgeon’s care, to be
-fitted for duty&mdash;<em>a ruined man</em>&mdash;broken in spirit! all sense of self-respect<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_39"></a>[39]</span>
-gone, forever gone! If he survive, it is only to be like his
-own brave bark, when winds and waves conspire to dash her on the
-pitiless strand, a wretched, hopeless wreck; a living, walking
-shadow of his former self. Shameful blot! most foul and disgraceful
-stain on the humanity of England! How long before this
-worse than barbarism will disappear before the mild influences of
-civilization and Christianity?</p>
-
-<p>No plea of necessity can be successfully urged in behalf of
-whipping men; for, if subordination or faithful adhesion to orders
-is expected to follow such terrible examples, I know, from my acquaintance
-with the sufferers themselves, that the expectation is
-vain. One of two results always follows. The victim either lives
-on, a lone, dark-minded, broken-spirited man, despising himself
-and hating every one, because he thinks every one hates him; or he
-lives with one fearful, unyielding purpose; a purpose on which he
-feeds and nourishes his galled mind, as food affords life and energy
-to his physical constitution&mdash;that purpose is <span class="allsmcap">REVENGE</span>. I have
-heard them swear&mdash;and the wild flashing eye, the darkly frowning
-brow, told how firm was that intent&mdash;that if ever they should be in
-battle, they would shoot their officers. I have seen them rejoice
-over the misfortunes of their persecutors, but more especially at
-their death. That it has frequently led to mutiny, is well verified.
-I have known such severity to result in actual murder. While we
-lay at Lisbon, a sergeant of marines, on board a seventy-four, made
-himself obnoxious by repeated acts of tyranny. Two marines determined
-upon his death. One night, unperceived by any, they
-seized him, hurried him to the gangway, and pitched him overboard.
-The tide was running strong; the man was drowned! But for
-themselves his fate would have remained a secret until the great
-day of judgment; it was discovered by an officer, who accidentally
-overheard them congratulating each other on their achievement.
-He betrayed them. A court-martial sentenced them. They were
-placed on deck with halters on their necks. Two guns were fired,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_40"></a>[40]</span>
-and, when the smoke cleared away, two men were seen dangling
-from the foreyard-arm. Only one day previous, a letter had
-brought a discharge from the service for one of them. Poor fellow!
-it came too late. He was fated to a summary discharge from
-all service, in a manner appalling and repulsive to every finer human
-feeling.</p>
-
-<p>Such are the actual consequences of severity of discipline on
-board men of war. Punishment leads to revenge; revenge to punishment.
-What is intended to cure, only aggravates the disease;
-the evil enlarges under the remedy; <em>voluntary</em> subordination
-ceases; gloom overspreads the crew; fear fills the breasts of the officers;
-the ship becomes a miniature of the house of fiends. While, on
-the other hand, mild regulations, enforced without an appeal to
-brute force, are easily carried into operation. The sailor has a warm
-heart; show him personal kindness, treat him as a man, he will then
-be a man; he will do anything for a <em>kind</em> officer. He will peril his
-life for him; nay, he will cheerfully rush between him and danger.
-This was done at Tripoli, when the brave James<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> offered his own
-arm to receive the fell stroke of a Turkish scimitar, aimed at the life
-of the bold Decatur, on board the frigate <i>Philadelphia</i>. Let naval
-officers, let all ship-masters, once fairly test the effect of kind treatment,
-and I am sure they will never desire to return to severity;
-unless, indeed, they are tyrants at heart, in which case, the sooner
-they lose their commands the better for their country; for no tyrant
-is truly brave or trustworthy. Cowardice and meanness lie curled
-up in the heart of every tyrant. He is too despicable, too unsafe
-to be trusted with the responsibilities of a naval command. Such,
-at least, is the opinion of an old sailor.</p>
-
-<p>One of the greatest enemies to order and happiness in ships of
-war is drunkenness. To be drunk is considered by almost every
-sailor as the <em>acme</em> of sensual bliss; while many fancy that swearing<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_41"></a>[41]</span>
-and drinking are necessary accomplishments in a genuine man-of-war’s-man.
-Hence it almost universally prevails. In our ship the
-men would get drunk, in defiance of every restriction. Were it not
-for the moral and physical ruin which follows its use, one might
-laugh at the various contrivances adopted to elude the vigilance of
-officers in their efforts to procure rum. Some of our men who belonged
-to the boats’ crews provided themselves with bladders; if
-left ashore by their officers a few moments, they would slip into the
-first grocery, fill their bladders, and return with the spoil. Once
-by the ship’s side, the favorable moment was seized to pass the interdicted
-bladders into the port-holes, to some watchful shipmate, by
-whom it was carefully secreted, to be drunk at the first opportunity.
-The liberty to go on shore, which is always granted while in port,
-was sure to be abused for drunken purposes. The Sabbath was
-also a day of sensuality. True, we sometimes had the semblance
-of religious services, when the men were summoned aft to hear the
-captain read the morning service from the church prayer-book;
-but usually it was observed more as a day of revelry than of worship.
-But at Christmas our ship presented a scene such as I had
-never imagined. The men were permitted to have their “full
-swing.” Drunkenness ruled the ship. Nearly every man, with
-most of the officers, was in a state of beastly intoxication at night.
-Here, some were fighting, but were so insensibly drunk, they hardly
-knew whether they struck the guns or their opponents; yonder, a
-party were singing libidinous or bacchanalian songs, while all were
-laughing, cursing, swearing or hallooing; confusion reigned in glorious
-triumph; it was the very chaos of humanity. Had we been
-at sea, a sudden gale of wind must have proved our destruction;
-had we been exposed to a sudden attack from an enemy’s vessel, we
-should have fallen an easy prey to the victor; just as the poor Hessians,
-at Trenton, fell before the well-timed blow of the sage Washington,
-during the war of the revolution.</p>
-
-<p>Of all places, the labors of temperance men are most needed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_42"></a>[42]</span>
-among sailors; and I am glad to know that much has been accomplished
-among them already. From what I <em>know</em> of the sufferings
-and difficulties growing out of intemperance at sea, I most
-heartily desire to see a temperance flag floating at the mast-head
-of every ship in the world. When this is seen, sailors will be a
-happier class than ever they have yet been, from the time when the
-cautious Phenicians crept timidly round the shores of the Mediterranean,
-to the present day of bold and fearless navigation.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="endchap1" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="p4 w100" src="images/endchap.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_43"></a>[43]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">Shortly after the Christmas debauch, mentioned in the
-preceding chapter, news was brought to the admiral that nine
-French frigates were cruising on the Spanish coast: immediately,
-all was excitement, bustle, preparation through the fleet. The
-<i>Hannibal</i> and <i>Northumberland</i>, both seventy-four gun ships, the
-<i>Cæsar</i> of eighty guns, called by the sailors the Old Bull-dog, a gun
-brig, and some others, I forget the names, and the <i>Macedonian</i>,
-were ordered to sail in pursuit of the French. This formidable
-force dropped down the river, every man composing it eagerly desiring
-to meet the enemy. The enterprise however, was unsuccessful;
-after cruising in vain for several days, the admiral signalled
-the fleet to return. Before reaching port we fell in with a Scotch
-ship from Greenock, in a most perilous condition; her masts and
-rudder were gone, while her numerous leaks were fast gaining on
-the labors of the already exhausted crew at the pumps. Finding
-it utterly impossible to save the vessel, we took off the crew; and
-thus our cruise, though defeated in its main design, proved the
-means of rescuing several poor wretches from a watery grave. It
-is a question worthy of consideration, whether this was not a really
-higher result than if we had found and beaten the French, and had
-returned in a crippled state, leaving some hundreds killed and
-wounded. Humanity would answer, yea.</p>
-
-<p>So far as the effects of this cruise concerned our own little
-frigate, they were really quite serious. We were reefing topsails
-one night, at sea, when the sailing-master, Mr. Lewis, in a fit of
-ill-humor, threatened to flog some of the men. The captain overheard
-him. Feeling himself hurt by this assumption of his own<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_44"></a>[44]</span>
-prerogative, he told Mr. Lewis that he was captain in the ship, and
-it was his business to flog the men. Sharp words followed; the
-captain was exasperated; he ordered the sailing-master to be put
-in irons. Here, however, he exceeded his own power, for, though
-he might place the common sailor in irons, he might not do so by
-an officer with impunity. Accordingly, when we reached Lisbon,
-a court-martial sat on the case, which resulted in their both being
-broken or cashiered.</p>
-
-<p>This was a hard blow for Lord Fitzroy, and he obviously felt
-it most keenly. It also cut off my expectations of being elevated
-to the quarter deck; for, although I had never received any direct
-encouragement from his Lordship, yet I had always nourished the
-hope that ultimately he would keep the promise he made to my
-mother, and do something for my advancement. Now, however,
-my hopes were destroyed. I was doomed to the forecastle for life.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Fitzroy was succeeded by Captain Carson. He however,
-was soon removed to make way for Captain Waldegrave, who
-proved to be far more severe than Fitzroy. He and Lieutenant
-Hope were kindred spirits: cruelty seemed to be their delight, for
-at the presence of culprits tied to the gratings, a gleam of savage
-animation stole over their faces. Punishment was now an almost
-every-day scene; even the boys were not permitted to escape. A lad
-was appointed boatswain over them, and they were consigned to
-the care of Mr. Hope, who took especial delight in seeing them
-flogged. What a mean, dastardly spirit for a British officer!
-How utterly contemptible he appears engaged in whipping a few
-helpless sailor boys! Yet thus he did constantly appear, causing
-them to be flogged for every trifling offence. One poor little fellow,
-unable to tolerate the thought of the lash, hid himself in the
-cable tier for several days. He was discovered, only to be most
-shamefully punished.</p>
-
-<p>These severities filled our crew with discouragement. A sailor<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_45"></a>[45]</span>
-dreads the dishonor of the lash. Some, urged by a nice sense of
-honor, have preferred death to its endurance. I have heard of one
-man who actually loaded himself with shot and deliberately walked
-overboard. Among our ship’s company the effects of these severe
-measures showed themselves in frequent desertions, notwithstanding
-the great risk run by such a bold measure; for, if taken, they
-were sure to meet with a fearful retribution. Still, many preferred
-the chance of freedom; some ran off when on shore with the boats,
-others dropped overboard in the night, and either swam on shore or
-were drowned. Many others were kept from running away by the
-strength of their attachment to their old messmates and by the hope
-of better days. Of those who escaped, some were retaken by the
-Portuguese, who delighted to hunt them up for a small sum of
-money. Two of my messmates, named Robert Bell and James
-Stokes, were taken in this manner. I felt greatly affected at losing
-their company, for they were pleasant fellows. I felt a peculiar
-attachment to poor Stokes; he had taught me many things
-which appertain to seamanship, and had cared for my interests with
-the faithfulness of a parent. O how anxiously did I desire they
-might not be detected, because I knew, if they were, that they were
-doomed men. But they were taken by a band of armed Portuguese;
-barefooted, desponding, broken in spirit, they were brought
-on board, only to be put in irons immediately. By a fortunate
-chance they escaped with <em>fifty</em> lashes, instead of being flogged
-through the fleet.</p>
-
-<p>We had another man who escaped, named Richard Suttonwood;
-he was very profane, and was much in the habit of using the
-word “bloody;” hence he was nicknamed “Bloody Dick” by his
-shipmates. Well, Dick ran off. He succeeded in getting on board
-an English brig in the merchant service. But how chop-fallen was
-poor Dick when he found that this brig was laden with powder for
-his own frigate! Resolving to make the best of the matter, he said
-nothing of his relation to our frigate, but as soon as the brig dropped<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_46"></a>[46]</span>
-alongside of the <i>Macedonian</i>, he came on board and surrendered
-himself; by this means he escaped being flogged, as it was usual to
-pardon a runaway who voluntarily returned to his duty. The
-crew were all delighted at his return, as he was quite popular
-among them for his lively disposition and his talents as a comic
-singer, which last gift is highly prized in a man of war. So joyous
-were we all at his escape from punishment, that we insisted
-on his giving a concert, which went off well. Seated on a gun
-surrounded by scores of the men, he sung a variety of favorite
-songs, amid the plaudits and <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">encores</i> of his rough auditors.</p>
-
-<p>By such means as these, sailors contrive to keep up their spirits
-amidst constant causes of depression and misery. One is a good
-singer, another can spin tough forecastle yarns, while a third can
-crack a joke with sufficient point to call out roars of laughter. But
-for these interludes, life in a man of war, with severe officers, would
-be absolutely intolerable; mutiny or desertion would mark the voyages
-of every such ship. Hence, officers in general highly value
-your jolly, merry-making, don’t-care sort of seamen. They know
-the effect of their influence in keeping away discontented thought
-from the minds of a ship’s company. One of these official favorites
-paid our frigate a visit while we lay in Lisbon. We had just finished
-breakfast, when a number of our men were seen running in
-high glee towards the main hatchway. Wondering what was going
-forward, I watched their proceedings with a curious eye. The
-cause of their joy soon appeared in the person of a short, round-faced,
-merry-looking tar, who descended the hatchway amid cries
-of “Hurrah! here’s happy Jack!” As soon as the jovial little man
-had set his foot on the berth deck, he began a specimen of his vocal
-powers. The voice of song was as triumphant on board the <i>Macedonian</i>,
-as it was in days of yore in the halls of Ossian. Every
-voice was hushed, all work was brought to a standstill, while the
-crew gathered round their favorite, in groups, to listen to his unequalled
-performances. Happy Jack succeeded, while his visit<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_47"></a>[47]</span>
-lasted, in communicating his own joyous feelings to our people, and
-they parted from him at night with deep regret.</p>
-
-<p>A casual visitor in a man of war, beholding the song, the dance,
-the revelry of the crew, might judge them to be happy. But I
-know that these things are often resorted to, because they feel miserable,
-just to drive away dull care. They do it on the same principle
-as the slave population in the South, to drown in sensual gratification
-the voice of misery that groans in the inner man&mdash;that lives
-within, speaking of the indignity offered to its high nature by the
-chain that eats beyond the flesh&mdash;discoursing of the rights of man,
-of liberty on the free hills of a happier clime: while amidst the
-gayest negro dance, not a heart among the laughing gang but
-would beat with high emotions and seize the boon with indescribable
-avidity, should it be offered its freedom on the spot.
-So in a man of war, where severe discipline prevails, though
-cheerfulness smiles at times, it is only the forced merriment of
-minds ill at ease; minds that would gladly escape the thraldom of
-the hated service to which they are bound.</p>
-
-<p>Nor is this forced submission to circumstances universal.
-There are individuals who cannot be reached by these pleasantries;
-in spite of everything, their spirits will writhe under the gripe of
-merciless authority. We had a melancholy instance of this species
-of mind on board our frigate. His name was Hill, the ward-room
-steward. This man came on board with a resolute purpose to give
-satisfaction, if possible, to his superiors. He tried his utmost in
-vain. He was still scolded and cursed, until his condition seemed
-unendurable. One morning a boy entered the after ward-room,
-when the first object that met his astonished eye was the body of
-the steward, all ghastly and bleeding. He had cut his throat, and
-lay weltering in his gore. The surgeon was called, who pronounced
-him to be yet alive. The wound was sewed up, the poor sufferer
-carried to the hospital-ship, which was in attendance on the fleet,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_48"></a>[48]</span>
-where he recovered, to be returned to his former ship, though in
-another and worse capacity, that of common sailor.</p>
-
-<p>We had on board a colored man whose name was Nugent, who
-possessed a remarkably fine person, was very intelligent, exceedingly
-polite in his manners, and easy in his address. He soon grew
-weary of the caprices of our officers, and ran away. He was taken,
-however, in rather a curious manner. The officers frequently
-walked the deck with their spy-glasses. As one of them was spending
-a few leisure moments in looking at the surrounding shipping,
-what should appear within the field of his glass, but the person of
-the fugitive Nugent on the deck of an American vessel! Upon
-this, a boat was despatched, which soon returned with the crestfallen
-deserter, who was <ins class="corr" id="tn-48" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'unceremonously thrown'">
-unceremoniously thrown</ins> into irons. By
-some fortunate chance, however, he escaped a flogging.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, my situation was as unpleasant as that of any other
-person on board. I could not witness the discomfort and ill-usage
-of others, without trembling for my own back. I, too, had thoughts
-of running away, as opportunities frequently offered themselves.
-But, being ignorant of the Portuguese language, I wisely concluded
-that my condition among them, if I got clear, would, in respect to
-my present state, bear about the same analogy as the fire does to the
-frying-pan. My little adventures on shore gave me full assurance
-of this fact. I remember going ashore on Good Friday. Like good
-Catholics, the Portuguese had the masts of their vessels crossed,
-with effigies of the traitor Judas hanging very significantly at their
-jib-booms. On shore, they were exhibiting the blasphemous mimicry
-of the solemn scene of the crucifixion. One was bearing the
-cross, another a sponge, a third the vinegar. The streets were
-crowded with images of the saints, to which all reverently bowed.
-Woe betide that sacrilegious wretch who refused this tribute to their
-darling images. He <em>was</em> sure of being knocked down; he was <em>not</em>
-sure of getting home alive. I was fain to yield my knees to save<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_49"></a>[49]</span>
-my skull; so for the time I was as good a Catholic as any of them,
-at least in the matter of bowing and crossing: it was done, however,
-with true Protestant mental reservation, and with a sincere determination
-to prefer my man-of-war’s life to a life in Portugal.</p>
-
-<p>On another occasion, some of our officers took me on shore to
-help them attend to some purchases. After following them a considerable
-distance, they gave me a small commission to execute, with
-directions to return to the ship as soon as it was attended to. This
-was no easy task, however: they had conducted me to a strange
-part of the city, and I knew scarcely a word of Portuguese. There
-I stood, then, surrounded only by foreigners, who neither understood
-my language nor I theirs. All I knew of my destination was,
-that our boat lay near the Fish-market; so, for Fish-market I inquired.
-Speaking in English, I asked the first man I met to direct
-me. He looked at me with the empty stare of an idiot, and passed
-on. To the next, I said, partly in broken Portuguese and partly in
-my own tongue, “John,” (they call everybody John, whose true
-name they do not know,) “do show me the fish-market.” He could
-not understand me; so, shrugging his shoulders, he said, “No entender
-Englis,” and passed on. I asked several others, but invariably
-received a shrug of the shoulder, a shake of the head, and a
-“no entender Englis,” for an answer. I grew desperate, and began
-to feel as if I had lost myself, when, to my unutterable satisfaction,
-I saw an English soldier. I ran up to him and said, “Good
-luck to you; do tell me where the fish-market is, for these stupid
-Portuguese, bad luck to them, can’t understand a word I say; but
-it is all, no entender Englis.” My countryman laughed at seeing
-my English temper ruffled, and placed me in the way of reaching
-the fish-market. I hurried thither, when, to my chagrin, the boats
-were all gone. Here, then, was another difficulty; for, though
-there were plenty of Portuguese boatmen, they could not understand
-which ship I wished to reach. Here, however, my fingers did
-what my tongue refused; our ship had its mainmast out, so, holding<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_50"></a>[50]</span>
-up two fingers and pointing to the mast, they at last comprehended
-me and conveyed me on board. Coming alongside, I gave them
-what I thought was right; but they and I differed in opinion on
-that point; they demanded more, with considerable bluster, but the
-sentry shouted, “Shove off there!” and pointed his musket at them.
-Whether they thought a reasonable fee, and a timely retreat, better
-than a contest which might give them the taste of a musket-ball, I
-cannot determine; at all events, I know that boat never left ship
-faster than theirs, when they beheld the gleam of the sentry’s musket
-flashing in their dark faces.</p>
-
-<p>Just after this adventure, I came very near being flogged, to my
-no small alarm. Happening on shore with two more of the officers’
-servants, named Yates and Skinner, we stayed so late, the
-ship’s boats had all gone off. Finding the boats gone, we strayed
-back into the city; night came on, and our return until morning was
-impossible. We had to wander about the city all night, in constant
-fear of being apprehended by the Portuguese as deserters. To
-prevent this no very desirable result, my comrades made me a midshipman;
-for the satisfactory reason, that if an officer was supposed
-to be in our company, no one would trouble us. The summary
-process by which I was inducted into my new station, was by means
-of a stripe carefully marked on my collar with a piece of chalk, to
-imitate the silver lace on a middy’s coat. Thus exalted, I marched
-my company about Lisbon until dawn, when I again found myself
-the self-same Samuel Leech, servant to the surgeon of H. M. frigate
-<i>Macedonian</i>, that I was the previous evening, with this additional
-fact, however, I was now liable to be flogged. So, in the true
-spirit of a <em>Jeremy Sneak</em>, we went on board, where, with due ceremony,
-we were parted for separate examinations. What tale my
-fellow-wanderers invented, I know not; for my own part, I told
-the truth of the matter, excepting that I suppressed that part of it
-which related to my transformation into an officer. Luckily for us
-all, one of the party was the first lieutenant’s servant; if he flogged<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_51"></a>[51]</span>
-one, he must flog the whole. To save the back of his own boy, he
-let us all escape.</p>
-
-<p>We were now ordered on another cruise. Being in want of
-men, we resorted to the press-gang which was made up of our most
-loyal men, armed to the teeth; by their aid we obtained our full
-numbers. Among them were a few Americans; they were taken
-without respect to their protections, which were often taken from
-them and destroyed. Some were released through the influence of
-the American consul; others, less fortunate, were carried to sea, to
-their no small chagrin.<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a></p>
-
-<p>The duties of the press-gang completed, we once more weighed
-anchor, and were soon careering before the gales of the bay of Biscay.
-Our reception in this proverbially stormy bay was by no
-means a civil one. We met with an extraordinarily severe gale, in
-which we came very near foundering. We had just finished dinner,
-when a tremendous sea broke over us, pouring down the hatchway,
-sweeping the galley of all its half-cooked contents, then being
-prepared for the officers’ dinner, and covering the berth deck with
-a perfect flood. It seemed as if old Neptune really intended that
-wave to sink us to Davy Jones’ locker. As the water rolled from
-side to side within, and the rude waves without beat against her, our
-good ship trembled from stem to stern, and seemed like a human
-being gasping for breath in a struggle with death. The women
-(there were several on board) set up a shriek, a thing they had
-never done before; some of the men turned pale; others cursed and
-tried to say witty things; the officers started; orders ran along the
-ship to man the chain-pumps, and to cut holes through the berth
-deck to let the water into the hold. These orders <ins class="corr" id="tn-51" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'being rapdly'">
-being rapidly</ins> obeyed, the ship was freed from her danger. The confusion of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_52"></a>[52]</span>
-moment was followed by laughing and pleasantries. That gale
-was long spoken of as one of great danger.</p>
-
-<p>It is strange that sailors, who see so much peril, should treat
-religion with such neglect as it is usual for them to do. When
-danger is imminent, they send up a cry for help; when it is past,
-they rarely return a grateful thank-offering. Yet how truly and
-eloquently has the Psalmist shown, in the 107th Psalm, what should
-be the moral effect of the wonders of the deep. What but a deep-rooted
-spiritual perversity prevents such an effect?</p>
-
-<p>The next incident that disturbed the monotony of our sea-life,
-was of a melancholy character. We had been giving chase to two
-West Indiamen the whole of one Sabbath afternoon; at night it
-blew so hard we had to reef top-sails; when a poor fellow, named
-John Thomson, was knocked from the yard. In falling, he struck
-some part of the ship, and the wave which opened to receive him,
-never disclosed his form again. He was a pressed man, an American
-by birth, greatly beloved by his messmates, by whom his death
-was as severely felt as when a member of a family dies on shore.
-His loss created a dull and gloomy atmosphere throughout the ship:
-it was several days before the hands regained their wonted elasticity
-of mind and appearance.</p>
-
-<p>My recollections of this cruise are very feeble and indistinct,
-owing to a severe injury which confined me to my hammock nearly
-the whole period. The accident which ended in a severe illness had
-its origin in the following manner. The duty of cleaning knives,
-plates, dish-covers, &amp;c., for the ward-room, devolved alternately on
-the boys employed in the ward-room. Having finished this task,
-one day, in my regular turn, the ward-room steward, a little hot-headed
-Malay, came to me at dinner-time to inquire for the knives.
-Not recollecting for the moment, I made no reply; when he angrily
-pushed me over a sack of bread. In falling my head came in contact
-with the corner of a locker. Feeling much pain, and the blood<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_53"></a>[53]</span>
-flowing freely, I went to Mr. Marsh, the surgeon’s mate, who
-dressed it, and bade me take care of it. Probably it would have
-healed speedily but for the freak of a sailor a few days after, while
-holy-stoning the decks. By holy-stoning, I mean cleaning them
-with stones, which are used for this purpose in men of war. These
-stones are, some of them, large, with a ring at each end with a rope
-attached, by which it is pulled backwards and forwards on the wet
-decks. These large stones are called holy bibles; the smaller hand
-ones are also called holy-stones, or prayer-books, their shape being
-something like a book. After the decks are well rubbed with these
-stones, they are wiped dry with swabs made of rope-yarns. By
-this means the utmost cleanliness is preserved in the ship. It was
-customary in our ship, during this scrubbing process, for the boys
-to wash themselves in a large tub provided for the purpose on the
-main deck. The men delighted in sousing us with water during
-this operation. After being wounded, as just mentioned, I endeavored
-to avoid their briny libations; but one morning, one of the sailors,
-seeing my anxiety, crept slily up behind me, and emptied a pail
-of water directly over my head. That night I began both to look
-and to feel sick. My messmates said I was sea-sick, and laughed
-at me. Feeling violent pains in my head, ears and neck, I felt relieved
-when it was time to turn in. The next morning, being rather
-behind my usual time in waiting upon the surgeon, he began to scold
-me. I told him I was unwell. He felt my pulse, examined my
-tongue, and excused me. Growing worse, my messmates got down
-my hammock. I entered it very sick; my head and face swelling
-very large, and my eyes so sunken I could scarcely see.</p>
-
-<p>I remained in this sad situation several weeks, carefully attended
-by the surgeon, and watched by the men as tenderly as their
-rough hands could perform the office of nurse. My destiny was
-considered as being sealed, both by the crew and by myself. I was
-much troubled at the thought of dying: it seemed dark and dreary
-to enter the valley of the shadow of death without the presence<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_54"></a>[54]</span>
-of a Saviour. To relieve my feelings, I frequently repeated the
-Lord’s prayer, taught me by my indulgent mother in my earlier and
-brighter years. But my mind was dark and disconsolate; there
-were none among that kind-hearted but profligate crew to point
-my soul to its proper rest.</p>
-
-<p>While lying in this state, my life hanging in a doubtful balance,
-one of the crew, named Black Tom, an African, was taken
-sick. His hammock was hung up in the sick bay, a part of the main
-deck appropriated to hospital purposes. Poor Tom, having a constitution
-already undermined by former excesses, soon fell under
-the attack of disease. He was then sewed up in his hammock, with
-some shot at his feet: at sundown the ship’s bell pealed a melancholy
-note, the ship was “hove to,” all hands mustered on deck, but myself;
-and, amid the most profound silence, the body of the departed
-sailor was laid upon the grating and launched into the great deep,
-the resting-place of many a bold head. A plunge, a sudden opening
-in the water, followed by an equally sudden return of the disparted
-waves, and Black Tom was gone forever from his shipmates!
-In a few moments the yards were braced round, and our frigate was
-cutting her way again through the wide ocean waste. It seemed
-to me that she was soon destined to heave to again, that I might
-also be consigned to an ocean grave. But in this I was happily disappointed.
-By the blessing of a watchful Providence, the aid of a
-sound constitution, assisted by the skill of our surgeon and the kindness
-of my shipmates, I was at last able to leave my hammock.
-Shortly after our return to Lisbon, I was pronounced fit for duty,
-and the surgeon having obtained another boy, I was placed on the
-quarter deck, in the capacity of messenger, or errand boy for the
-captain and his officers.</p>
-
-<p>With my return to active life, came my exposure to hardships,
-and, what I dreaded still more, to punishment. Some of the boys
-were to be punished on the main deck; the rest were ordered forward
-to witness it, as usual. Being so far aft that I could not hear<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_55"></a>[55]</span>
-the summons, as a matter of course, I remained at my post. The
-hawk-eye of the lieutenant missed me, and in a rage he ordered me
-to be sent for to receive a flogging for my absence. Excuse was
-vain; for, such was the fiendish temper of this brutal officer, he only
-wanted the shadow of a reason for dragging the poor helpless boys
-of his charge to the grating. While I stood in trembling expectation
-of being degraded by the hated cat, a summons from the captain
-providentially called off our <em>brave</em> boy-flogger, and I escaped.
-The <em>offence</em> was never mentioned afterwards. The reader can
-easily perceive how such a constant exposure to the lash must embitter
-a seaman’s life.</p>
-
-<p>Already, since the <i>Macedonian</i> had been in commission, had
-she changed captains twice. Why it so happened, it is not in my
-power to explain; but while at Lisbon, after the cruise last mentioned,
-our present captain was superseded by Captain John S. Carden.
-His arrival excited a transitory hope of a brighter lot, as he
-was an older man than the others, and, as we vainly trusted, a kinder
-one. Here, however, we were mistaken; he was like all the rest,
-the same heartless, unfeeling lover of whip discipline. At first the
-men under sentence tried their powers at flattery with the grave old
-man; but he was too experienced a sea-dog to be cajoled by a long-faced
-sailor under sentence: when, therefore, they told him he was
-a kind-hearted <em>fatherly</em> gentleman, he only replied by a most provoking
-laugh, and by saying they were a set of very undutiful sons.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Carden was mercilessly severe in punishing theft. He
-would on no account forgive any man for this crime, but would flog
-the thief almost to death. Of this, we soon had a cruel instance.
-A midshipman named Gale, a most rascally, unprincipled fellow,
-found his pocket handkerchief in possession of one of the crew. He
-charged the man with stealing it. It was in vain that the poor
-wretch asserted that he found it under his hammock. He was reported
-as a thief; a court-martial sat upon him, and returned the
-shamefully disproportionate sentence of three hundred lashes<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_56"></a>[56]</span>
-through the fleet, and one year’s imprisonment! Any of my shipmates
-who are living, will certify to the truth of this statement, brutal
-and improbable as it may appear.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was that sentence a dead letter; the unhappy man endured
-it to the letter. Fifty were laid on alongside of the <i>Macedonian</i>,
-in conformity with a common practice of inflicting the most strokes
-at the first ship, in order that the gory back of the criminal may
-strike the more terror into the crews of the other ships. This poor
-tortured man bore two hundred and twenty, and was pronounced
-by the attending surgeon unfit to receive the rest. Galled, bruised,
-and agonized as he was, he besought him to suffer the infliction of
-the remaining eighty, that he might not be called to pass through
-the degrading scene again; but this prayer was denied! He was
-brought on board, and when his wounds were healed, the captain,
-Shylock-like, determined to have the whole pound of flesh, ordered
-him to receive the remainder.</p>
-
-<p>But for my desire to present the reader with a true exhibition
-of life on board a British man of war, it would be my choice to suppress
-these disgusting details of cruelty and punishment. But this
-is impossible; I must either draw a false picture or describe them.
-I choose the latter, in the hope that giving publicity to these facts
-will exert a favorable influence on the already improving discipline
-of ships of war.</p>
-
-<p>The case of our ship’s drummer will illustrate the hopelessness
-of our situation under such officers as commanded our ship; it will
-show that implicit, uncomplaining submission was our only resource.
-This drummer, being seized up for some petty offence, demanded,
-what no captain can refuse, to be tried by a court-martial; in the
-hope, probably, of escaping altogether. The officers laughed
-among each other, and when, a few days afterwards, the poor, affrighted
-man offered to withdraw the demand and take six dozen
-lashes, they coolly remarked, “The drummer is sick of his bargain.”<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_57"></a>[57]</span>
-He would have been a wiser man had he never made it; for the
-court-martial sentenced him to receive two hundred lashes through
-the fleet:&mdash;a punishment ostensibly for his first offence, but really
-for his insolence (?) in demanding a trial by court-martial. Such
-was the administration of justice (?) on board the <i>Macedonian</i>.</p>
-
-<p>“Why did not your crew rise in resistance to such cruelty?” is a
-question which has often been proposed to me, when relating these
-facts to my American friends. To talk of mutiny on shore is an
-easy matter; but to excite it on shipboard is to rush on to certain
-death. Let it be known that a man has dared to breathe the idea,
-and he is sure to swing at the yard-arm. Some of our men once
-saw six mutineers hanging at the yard-arm at once, in a ship whose
-crew exhibited the incipient beginnings of mutiny. Let mutiny be
-successful, the government will employ its whole force, if needful,
-in hunting down the mutineers; their blood, to the last drop, is the
-terrible retribution it demands for this offence. That demand is
-sure to be met, as was the case with the crew of the <i>Hermione</i><a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> frigate,
-and with the crew of the ill-fated <i>Bounty</i>, whose history is imprinted
-on the memory of the whole civilized world. With such
-tragedies flitting before our eyes, who need ask why we did not resist?</p>
-
-<p>Just before we left Lisbon for another cruise, my position was
-once more changed by my appointment to the post of servant to
-the sailing-master; whose boy, for some offence or other, was
-flogged and turned away. Here, too, the captain procured a fine
-band, composed of Frenchmen, Italians and Germans, taken by the
-Portuguese from a French vessel. These musicians consented to
-serve, on condition of being excused from fighting, and on a pledge
-of exemption from being flogged. They used to play to the captain<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_58"></a>[58]</span>
-during his dinner hour; the party to be amused usually consisting
-of the captain and one or two invited guests from the ward-room;
-except on Sundays, when he chose to honor the ward-room
-with his august presence. The band then played for the ward-room.
-They also played on deck whenever we entered or left a
-port. On the whole, their presence was an advantage to the crew,
-since their spirit-stirring strains served to spread an occasional
-cheerful influence over them. Soon after they came on board, we
-had orders to proceed to sea again on another cruise.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="endchap2" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="p4 w100" src="images/endchap.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_59"></a>[59]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">A few days after we had fairly got out to sea, the thrilling
-cry of “A man overboard!” ran through the ship with electrical
-effect; it was followed by another cry of, “Heave out
-a rope!” then by still another, of “Cut away the life buoy!” Then
-came the order, “Lower a boat!” Notwithstanding the rapidity
-of these commands, and the confusion occasioned by the anticipated
-loss of a man, they were rapidly obeyed. The ship was then hove
-to. But that time, however, the cause of all this excitement was at
-a considerable distance from the ship. It was a poor Swede, named
-Logholm, who, while engaged in lashing the larboard anchor stock,
-lost his hold and fell into the sea. He could not swim; but, somehow,
-he managed to keep afloat until the boat reached him, when he
-began to sink. The man at the bow ran his boat hook down, and
-caught the drowning man by his clothes: his clothes tearing, the man
-lost his hold, and the Swede once more sunk. Again the active
-bowsman ran the hook down, leaning far over the side; fortunately,
-he got hold of his shirt collar: dripping, and apparently lifeless,
-they drew him into the boat. He was soon under the surgeon’s
-care, whose skill restored him to animation and to life. It was a
-narrow escape!</p>
-
-<p>Rising one morning, I heard the men talking about having been
-called to quarters during the night. They said a strange vessel having
-appeared, the drums beat to quarters, the guns were got ready,
-those great lanterns, which are placed on the main deck, called
-battle lanterns, were got out, and the officers began to muster the
-men at each division; when they discovered the supposed vessel of
-war to be nothing more than a large merchant ship. Upon this the
-hands were sent below. All this was news to me; I had slept<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_60"></a>[60]</span>
-through all the noise, confusion and bustle of the night, utterly ignorant
-of the whole matter. It was fortunate for me that the real
-character of the strange ship was discovered before my name was
-called, otherwise the morning would have found me at the gratings
-under punishment. Never was boy happier than myself, when
-made acquainted with my hair-breadth escape from the lash.</p>
-
-<p>We had now reached the island of Madeira, occupied by the
-Portuguese, and producing fine oranges, grapes and wine. It is
-some sixty miles in length, about forty in breadth; the climate is
-hot, but salubrious; its harbor, or rather roadstead, is by no means
-commodious or safe&mdash;so that our stay was short. Here, the Portuguese
-lad who had supplied my place as servant to the surgeon, was
-sent on shore, for attempting a crime unfit to be mentioned in these
-pages, but quite common among the Spaniards and Portuguese.
-My old master made an effort to obtain me again, but did not succeed.</p>
-
-<p>Sailing from Madeira, we next made St. Michael’s. At this
-pace we had an increase to our crew, in the person of a fine, plump
-boy&mdash;born to the wife of one of our men. The captain christened
-the new comer, Michael, naming him after the island. This birth
-was followed by another. Whether the captain did not like the
-idea of such interesting episodes in sea life, or whether any other
-motive inspired him, I cannot tell; but when, shortly after, we returned
-to Lisbon, he ordered all the women home to England, by a
-ship just returning thither. Before this, however, one of our little
-Tritons had died, and found a grave under the billows, leaving its
-disconsolate mother in a state little short of distraction. A man of
-war is no place for a woman.</p>
-
-<p>Short cruises are very popular with man-of-war’s men. On
-many accounts they love being in harbor; on others they prefer being
-at sea. In harbor they have to work all day, but in return for
-this they have the whole night for sleep. At sea, the whole time is<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_61"></a>[61]</span>
-divided into five watches of four hours each, and two shorter ones,
-called dog watches, of two hours each, or from four to six and from
-six to eight, P. M. The design of these dog watches is to alternate
-the time, so that each watch may have a fair proportion of every
-night below.</p>
-
-<p>While at our station this time, our old friend, Bob Hammond,
-met with some little difficulty, which we will here make matter of
-record. He was below, and one of his messmates did something
-that vexed him exceedingly. Now Bob was not a man to bear vexations
-tamely, where he had the power to resist them; so, lifting his
-huge fist, he struck at the offender; missing his real opponent, the
-blow fell upon another who stood near him. Bob was too much of
-a bully to offer any apology; he merely laughed, and remarked that
-he had “killed two birds with one stone.”</p>
-
-<p>Whether the bird, who, in Bob’s figurative language, was killed,
-did not like being called a bird, or whether he conceived a strong dislike
-to being a mark for Bob to shoot at, is not for me to say; but he
-certainly disliked the one or the other, for the next morning he reported
-the matter to the officers, which complaint was considered a
-most unsailor-like act by the whole crew.</p>
-
-<p>Fighting was a punishable offence, so Bob was called up the
-next morning. The captain mentioned what was reported concerning
-him. He acknowledged it was all true, and without any
-signs of contrition said, “I only killed two birds with one stone.”
-The angry captain ordered two dozen lashes to be laid on; it was
-done without extorting a sigh or a groan. He was then loosed from
-the grating, and questioned; but he merely replied, in a gruff tone,
-that “the man who reported him was a blackguard!” For this,
-he was seized up again and another dozen lashes inflicted; he bore
-them with the same dogged and imperturbable air. Finding it impossible
-to extort any acknowledgment from the stubborn tar, the
-captain ordered him below.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_62"></a>[62]</span></p>
-
-<p>About the same time one of our crew, named Jack Sadler, a
-fine, noble-hearted seaman, growing weary of the service, determined
-to desert. Dropping into the water, he began swimming
-towards the shore. It was not very dark, and he was discovered;
-the sentry was ordered to fire at him, which he did, but missed his
-prey. A boat was next lowered, which soon overtook and dragged
-him on board. The officer commanding the boat said, “Well, Mr.
-Sadler, you thought you had got away, did you?” “You are not
-so sure that you have me now,” replied Sadler, as he sprung over
-the side of the boat. Nor would they have captured him, had not
-another ship’s boat arrived to their assistance.</p>
-
-<p>The next day, he was seized up and received three dozen lashes,
-which, considering his offence, was a very light punishment. I suppose
-that his noble bearing, his lion-hearted courage, and his undaunted
-manner, produced a favorable feeling in the captain’s
-mind; especially as he afterwards became his favorite&mdash;a fancy man&mdash;as
-those men are called who win the favor of their superior officer.</p>
-
-<p>One of Sadler’s failings was that too prevalent evil among seamen,
-drunkenness. Soon after the above affair, he got drunk. Being
-seen by the captain, he was ordered to be put in irons. Sadler was
-Bob Hammond’s messmate; this worthy, finding his comrade in
-trouble, made himself drunk, and purposely placed himself in the
-way of the officers, that he might be put in irons also, to keep his
-friend Sadler company. The plan succeeded. Bob had his wish,
-and the two fearless tars were soon ironed together. Nothing
-daunted, they began to sing, and through the whole night they kept
-up such a hallooing, shouting and singing as might have served for
-a whole company of idle roysterers. Being near the ward-room,
-they prevented the officers from sleeping nearly all night.</p>
-
-<p>As usual, after being in irons, they were brought up for punishment
-the next morning. “Well, Mr. Sadler,” said the captain,
-“you were drunk, were you, last night?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_63"></a>[63]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I was, sir,” replied the offender.</p>
-
-<p>Had he been any other man, he would have been ordered to
-strip: as it was, the captain proceeded,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Do you feel sorry for it, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“I do, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you try to keep sober if I forgive you?” continued
-Captain Carden.</p>
-
-<p>“I will try, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then, sir, I forgive you:” and no doubt he was glad to witness
-that contrition in his favorite which made it consistent to forgive
-him. Having dismissed Sadler, he turned to Hammond: assuming
-a sterner look and a harsher voice, he said, in a tone of irony,
-“Well, Mr. Hammond, you got drunk last night, did you, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>Bob shrugged up his shoulders, and removed his enormous quid
-into a convenient position for speaking, and then replied, “I can’t
-say but that I had a horn of malt.”</p>
-
-<p>The captain looked thunder at the stalwart man, as he answered,
-“A horn of malt, you rascal! what do you call a horn of
-malt?”</p>
-
-<p>“When I was in Bengal, Madras, and Batavia,” said he, “I
-used to get some stuff called arrack&mdash;we used to call it a horn of
-malt; but this was some good rum.”</p>
-
-<p>Bob’s manner was so exquisitely ridiculous while delivering this
-harangue, that both officers and men broke out into an involuntary
-laugh. The captain looked confounded, but recovering himself, he
-said to Mr. Hope, the first lieutenant, “Put that rascal in irons; it
-is of no use to flog him.”</p>
-
-<p>One of the peculiarities of Captain Carden was an ardent de<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_64"></a>[64]</span>sire
-to have a crew of picked, first-rate men. The shiftless, slovenly
-seaman was his abhorrence. Had he dared, he would gladly have
-given all such their discharge; as it was, he never attempted their
-recovery, by offering a reward for their detection, if they ran away;
-while he spared no pains to catch an able, active, valuable man like
-Sadler. He even gave these drones opportunity to escape, by
-sending them on shore at Lisbon, to cut stuff to make brooms for
-sweeping the deck. The men sent out on these expeditions were
-nicknamed “broomers.” Now, although Bob Hammond was as
-expert a sailor as any man in the ship, yet his unconquerable audacity
-made the captain fear his influence, and wish to get rid of
-him; hence, a few days after this drunken spree, Bob was called on
-deck to go with the broomers. “You may go, Mr. Hammond,”
-said the captain, eyeing him in a very expressive manner, “with
-these fellows to cut broom.”</p>
-
-<p>Bob understood the hint perfectly, and replied, “Aye, aye, sir,
-and I will cut a long handle to it.” I scarcely need remark that the
-broomers returned without Bob. Whether he remained on shore to
-cut the long handle, or for some other purpose, he never informed
-us: certain it is, however, that the presence of Bob Hammond never
-darkened the decks of the <i>Macedonian</i> again.</p>
-
-<p>About this time the prevailing topic of conversation among our
-men and officers was the probability of a war with America. The
-prevailing feeling through the whole fleet was that of confidence in
-our own success, and of contempt for the inferior naval force of our
-anticipated enemies. Every man, and especially the officers, predicted,
-as his eye glanced proudly on the fine fleet which was anchored
-off Lisbon, a speedy and successful issue to the approaching
-conflict.</p>
-
-<p>We now received orders to sail to Norfolk, Virginia, with despatches.
-The voyage was accomplished without any occurrence of
-note. We found ourselves on the American coast, with no very<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_65"></a>[65]</span>
-pleasant impressions. It was late in the fall, and the transition
-from the mild, soft climate of Spain and Portugal, to the bleak,
-sharp atmosphere of the coast of Virginia, was anything but delightful.</p>
-
-<p>The most disagreeable duty in the ship was that of holy-stoning
-the decks on cold, frosty mornings. Our movements were never
-more elastic than when at this really severe task. As usual, it gave
-occasion to a variety of forecastle yarns about cold stations.
-Among these was one which was attested by many witnesses, and
-there can be no doubt of its truth:</p>
-
-<p>A British frigate was once stationed in a cold climate. The
-first lieutenant was a complete tyrant, delighting in everything that
-caused the crew to suffer. Among other things, he took especial
-care to make the work of holy-stoning as painful as possible, by
-forcing them to continue at it much longer than was necessary. Although
-he had no watch on deck, he would contrive to be up in season
-to annoy the men with his hated presence. One morning, the
-weather being unusually severe, the men sprang to their task with
-unwonted agility, and contrived to finish it before the appearance of
-their persecutor. To their vexation, however, just as they had
-completed their work, he bounced on deck, with a peremptory order
-to wash the decks all over a second time.</p>
-
-<p>The men dropped on their knees with the holy-stones, and
-prayed, as the tyrant went below, that he might never come on deck
-again alive. Whether God heard the cry of the oppressed crew, or
-whether it was the action of the ordinary natural laws, the reader
-must determine for himself; but when the lieutenant again appeared
-on deck, he was brought up “feet foremost,” to be buried. He was
-taken sick that morning: his disease baffled the skill of the surgeon,
-and in a few days he was a corpse. The opinion that he died a
-monument of the divine displeasure against cruel, hard-hearted men
-of power, and of disregard for the miseries and tears of the oppressed
-poor, is at least worthy of serious consideration.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_66"></a>[66]</span></p>
-
-<p>Soon after we had descried land, an American pilot came on
-board to pilot us into Hampton Roads. The sound of our own
-familiar tongue from a stranger, was very agreeable to men who
-had been accustomed to hear the semi-barbarous lingo of the Portuguese,
-and a thrill of home remembrances shot through our hearts,
-as, stepping on deck, the pilot exclaimed, “It is very cold!”</p>
-
-<p>While at anchor in Hampton Roads, we fared well. Boats
-were alongside every day with plenty of beef and pork, which was
-declared, by universal consent, to be infinitely superior to what we
-obtained from Portugal. Our men said that the Yankee pork
-would swell in the pot, which they very sagely accounted for on the
-supposition that the pigs were killed at the full of the moon. But
-I suppose that Virginia corn had more to do in this matter than
-lunar influences; though our men most doggedly maintained the
-contrary and more mystical opinion.</p>
-
-<p>The principal draw-back on the enjoyment of our stay at Norfolk,
-was the denial of liberty to go on shore. The strictest care
-was taken to prevent all communication with the shore, either personally
-or by letter. The reason of this prohibition was a fear lest
-we should desert. Many of our crew were Americans: some of
-these were pressed men; others were much dissatisfied with the severity,
-not to say cruelty, of our discipline; so that a multitude of
-the crew were ready to give “leg bail,” as they termed it, could they
-have planted their feet on American soil. Hence our liberty was
-restrained.</p>
-
-<p>Our officers never enjoyed better cheer than during our stay at
-this port. Besides feasting among themselves on the fine fat beef,
-geese and turkeys, which came alongside in abundance, they exchanged
-visits with Commodore Decatur and his officers, of the frigate
-<i>United States</i>, then lying at Norfolk. These visits were seasons
-of much wassail and feasting. I remember overhearing Commodore
-Decatur and the captain of the <i>Macedonian</i> joking about<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_67"></a>[67]</span>
-taking each other’s ship, in case of a war; and some of the crew said
-that a bet of a beaver hat passed between them on the issue of such
-a conflict. They probably little thought that this joking over a
-wine-cup, would afterwards be cracked in earnest, in a scene of
-blood and carnage.</p>
-
-<p>It was at this port that the difficulty between the British ship
-<i>Leopard</i> and the American frigate <i>Chesapeake</i> took place. Several
-American seamen, having escaped from the former, took refuge
-on board the latter. The captain of the <i>Leopard</i> demanded their
-restoration; the captain of the <i>Chesapeake</i> refused submission to the
-demand. The <i>Leopard</i> fired into the frigate, which, being of inferior
-force, struck to her opponent. As it was a time of peace,
-the <i>Chesapeake</i> was not kept as a prize; the claimed men were taken
-from her, and she was restored. This was among the circumstances
-which led to the war of 1812.</p>
-
-<p>The despatches delivered, and the object of the voyage accomplished,
-we once more put to sea; having first laid in a liberal store
-of our favorite beef, together with a quantity of Virginia beans,
-called Calavances, which were in high favor with our men. To
-those of our crew who were Americans, this was rather an unpleasant
-event. Like the fabled Tantalus, they had the cup at their
-mouths, but it receded before they could taste its contents. They
-had been at the threshold of “home, sweet home,” but had not been
-permitted to step within its doors. Some of them felt this very
-keenly, especially a boy, who belonged to New York, named Jesse
-Lloyd. In truth, it was a hard lot.</p>
-
-<p>A quick winter passage brought us to Lisbon, where the arrival
-of the English mail-bag, and orders to proceed to England with a
-convoy of merchantmen, put us all into a tolerably good humor.</p>
-
-<p>The arrival of the mail-bag is a season of peculiar interest on
-board a man of war. It calls the finer feelings of human nature
-into exercise. It awakens conjugal, fraternal, and filial affection<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_68"></a>[68]</span>
-in almost every breast. The men crowd around, as the letters are
-distributed, and he was pronounced a happy fellow whose name was
-read off by the distributor; while those who had none, to hide their
-disappointment, would jocularly offer to buy those belonging to
-their more fortunate messmates.</p>
-
-<p>During the two years of our absence I had received several letters
-from my mother, which afforded me much satisfaction. To
-these I had faithfully replied. I now experienced the advantage
-of the primary education I had received when a boy. Many of my
-shipmates could neither read nor write, and were, in consequence
-either altogether deprived of the privilege of intercourse with their
-friends, or were dependent on the kindness of others, to read and
-write for them. For these I acted as a sort of scribe. I also solaced
-many weary hours by reading such works as could be obtained
-from the officers; and sometimes I perused the Bible and prayer
-book which my mother so wisely placed in my chest, on the eve of
-my departure. The pack of cards, which so inappropriately accompanied
-them, I had loaned to one of the officers, who took the
-liberty to keep them. This was, perhaps, more fortunate than
-otherwise, since their possession might have led to their use, and
-their use might have excited a propensity to gambling, which would
-have ended in my ruin.</p>
-
-<p>After remaining a very short time at Lisbon, we one morning
-fired a gun to give notice to our convoy to get under weigh. Immediately
-the harbor was alive with noise and activity. The song of
-the sailors weighing anchor, the creaking of pulleys, the flapping of
-the sails, the loud, gruff voices of the officers, and the splashing of
-the waters, created what was to us, now that we were “homeward
-bound,” a sweet harmony of sounds. Amid all this animation, our
-own stately frigate spread her bellying sails to a light but favoring
-breeze; with colors flying, our band playing lively airs, and the captain
-with his speaking trumpet urging the lagging merchant-ships
-to more activity, we passed gaily through the large fleet consigned<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_69"></a>[69]</span>
-to our care. In this gallant style we scudded past the straggling
-ruins of old Lisbon, which still bore marks of the earthquake that
-destroyed it. Very soon the merry fishermen, who abound in the
-Tagus, were far at our stern. Next, we glided past the tall granite
-pinnacles of towering mount Cintra; the high-lands passed from our
-vision like the scenes in a panorama, and in a few hours, instead of
-the companionship of the large flocks of gulls, which abound in this
-river, we were attended by only here and there one of these restless
-wanderers of the deep. We were fairly at sea, and, what was the
-more inspiring, we were enjoying the luxury of fond anticipation.
-Visions of many an old fire-side, of many a humble hearth-stone,
-poor, but precious, flitted across the visions of our crew that night.
-Hardships, severe discipline, were for the time forgotten in the
-dreams of hope. Would that I could say that everything in every
-mind was thus absorbed in pleasure! There were minds that
-writhed under what is never forgotten. Like the scar, that time
-may heal, but not remove, the flogged man forgets not that he has
-been degraded; the whip, when it scarred the flesh, went farther; it
-wounded the spirit; it struck the <em>man</em>; it begat a sense of degradation
-he must carry with him to his grave. We had many such on
-board our frigate; their laugh sounded empty, and sometimes their
-look became suddenly vacant in the midst of hilarity. <span class="smcap">It was the
-whip entering the soul anew.</span> But the most of our crew were,
-for the time, happy. They were homeward bound!</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_70"></a>[70]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">After running a few days before a fair wind, the delightful
-cry of “Land ho!” was heard from the mast-head; a cry
-always pleasant to the inhabitant of a ship, but most especially
-so when the distant hills are those of his native land. Soon
-after the cry of the man aloft, the land became dimly visible from
-the deck, and our eyes glistened, as the bright, emerald fields of old
-England, in all the glory of their summer beauty, lay spread out
-before us. Ascending the British Channel, we soon made the spacious
-harbor of Plymouth, where we came to an anchor. One of
-our convoy, however, by some unskilful management, ran ashore
-at the mouth of the harbor, where she went to pieces.</p>
-
-<p>We found Plymouth to be a naval station of considerable importance,
-well fortified, possessing extensive barracks for the accommodation
-of the military, and having a magnificent dock-yard,
-abundantly supplied with the means of building and refitting the
-wooden walls.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing would have afforded me a higher gratification, than a
-trip to the pleasant fields and quiet hearth-sides of dear old Bladen.
-I longed to pour out my pent-up griefs into the bosom of my
-mother, and to find that sympathy which is sought in vain in the
-cold, unfeeling world. This privilege was, however, denied to all.
-No one could obtain either leave of absence or money, since a man
-of war is never “paid off” until just before she proceeds to sea.
-But, feeling heartily tired of the service, I wrote to my mother, requesting
-her to endeavor to procure my discharge. This, with the
-promptitude of maternal affection, she pledged herself to do at the
-earliest possible opportunity. How undying is a mother’s love!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_71"></a>[71]</span></p>
-
-<p>When a man of war is in port, it is usual to grant the crew occasional
-liberty to go on shore. These indulgences are almost invariably
-abused for purposes of riot, drunkenness and debauchery;
-rarely does it happen, but that these shore sprees end in bringing
-“poor Jack” into difficulty of some sort; for, once on shore, he is
-like an uncaged bird, as gay and quite as thoughtless. He will then
-follow out the dictates of passions and appetites, let them lead him
-whither they may. Still, there are exceptions; there are a few who
-spend their time more rationally. Were the principles of modern
-temperance fully triumphant among sailors, they would all do so.</p>
-
-<p>I resolved not to abuse my liberty as I saw others doing; so
-when, one fine Sabbath morning, I had obtained leave from our
-surly first lieutenant, I chose the company of a brother to a messmate,
-named Rowe, who lived at Plymouth. At the request of my
-messmate, I called to see him. He received me very kindly, and
-took me in company with his children into the fields, where the
-merry notes of the numerous birds, the rich perfume of the blooming
-trees, the tall, green hedges, and the modest primroses, cowslips
-and violets, which adorned the banks on the road-side, filled me with
-inexpressible delight. True, this was not the proper manner of
-spending a Sabbath day, but it was better than it would have been
-to follow the example of my shipmates generally, who were carousing
-in the tap-rooms of the public houses.</p>
-
-<p>At sunset I went on board and walked aft to the lieutenant,
-to report myself. He appeared surprised to see me on board so
-early and so perfectly sober, and jocosely asked me why I did not
-get drunk and be like a sailor. Merely smiling, I retired to my
-berth, thinking it was very queer for an officer to laugh at a boy for
-doing right, and feeling happy within myself because I had escaped
-temptation.</p>
-
-<p>By and by, three other boys, who had been ashore, returned, in
-a state which a sailor would call “three sheets in the wind.” They<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_72"></a>[72]</span>
-blustered, boasted of the high time they had enjoyed, and roundly
-laughed at me for being so unlike a man-of-war’s-man; while they
-felt as big as any man on board. The next morning, however, they
-looked rather chop-fallen, when the captain, who had accidentally
-seen their drunken follies on shore, ordered them to be flogged, and
-forbade their masters to send them ashore while we remained at
-Plymouth. Now, then, it was pretty evident who had the best
-cruise; the joke was on the other side; for while their drunken behavior
-cost them a terrible whipping and a loss of liberty, my temperance
-gained me the <em>real</em> approbation of my officers, and more
-liberty than ever, since after that day I had to go on shore to do errands
-for their masters, as well as for my own. The young sailor
-may learn from this fact the benefit of temperance, and the folly of
-getting drunk, for the sake of being called a fine fellow.</p>
-
-<p>My frequent visits to the shore gave me many opportunities
-to run away; while my dislike of everything about the <i>Macedonian</i>
-inspired me with the disposition to improve them. Against this
-measure my judgment wisely remonstrated, and, happily for my
-well being, succeeded. Such an attempt would inevitably have
-been followed by my recovery, since a handsome bounty was paid
-for the delivery of every runaway. There are always a sufficient
-number to be found who will engage in pursuit for the sake of
-money&mdash;such men as the Canadian landlord, described by Rev.
-Wm. Lighton, in his interesting narrative,<a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> a work with which, no
-doubt, most of my readers are acquainted, since it has enjoyed an
-immense circulation. Endurance, therefore, was the only rational
-purpose I could form.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps the hope of a speedy discharge, through my mother’s<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_73"></a>[73]</span>
-efforts, tended somewhat to this result in my case; besides, my situation
-had become somewhat more tolerable from the fact, that by
-dint of perseverance in a civil and respectful behavior, I had gained
-the good will both of the officers and crew. Yet, with this advantage,
-it was a miserable situation.</p>
-
-<p>There are few worse places than a man of war, for the favorable
-development of the moral character in a boy. Profanity, in its
-most revolting aspect; licentiousness, in its most shameful and
-beastly garb; vice, in the worst of its Proteus-like shapes, abound
-there. While scarcely a moral restraint is thrown round the victim,
-the meshes of temptation are spread about his path in every direction.
-Bad as things are at sea, they are worse in port. There,
-boat-loads of defiled and defiling women are permitted to come
-alongside; the men, looking over the side, select whoever best pleases
-his lustful fancy, and by paying her fare, he is allowed to take and
-keep her on board as his paramour, until the ship is once more ordered
-to sea. Many of these lost, unfortunate creatures are in the
-springtime of life, some of them are not without pretensions to
-beauty. The ports of Plymouth and Portsmouth are crowded with
-these fallen beings. How can a boy be expected to escape pollution,
-surrounded by such works of darkness? Yet, some parents
-send their children to sea because they are ungovernable ashore!
-Better send them to the house of correction.</p>
-
-<p>There is one aspect in which life at sea and life in port materially
-differ. At sea, a sense of danger, an idea of insecurity, is
-ever present to the mind; in harbor, a sense of security lulls the
-sailor into indulgence. He feels perfectly safe. Yet, even in harbor,
-danger sometimes visits the fated ship, stealing upon her like
-the spirit of evil. This remark was fearfully illustrated in the loss
-of the <i>Royal George</i>, which sunk at Spithead, near Portsmouth, on
-the 29th of August, 1782.</p>
-
-<p>This splendid line of battle ship of one hundred and eight<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_74"></a>[74]</span>
-guns, had arrived at Spithead. Needing some repairs, she was
-“<em>heeled down</em>,” or inclined on one side, to allow the workmen to
-work on her sides. Finding more needed to be done to the copper
-sheathing than was expected, the sailors were induced to heel her
-too much. While in this state, she was struck by a slight squall;
-the cannon rolled over to the depressed side; her ports were open,
-she filled with water, and sunk to the bottom!</p>
-
-<p>This dreadful catastrophe occurred about ten o’clock in the
-morning. The brave Admiral Kempenfeldt was writing in his
-cabin; most of the crew, together with some three hundred women,
-were between decks: these nearly all perished. Captain Waghorn,
-her commander, was saved; his son, one of her lieutenants, was lost.
-Those who were on the upper deck were picked up by the boats of
-the fleet, but nearly one thousand souls met with a sudden and untimely
-end. The poet Cowper has celebrated this melancholy event
-in the following beautiful lines:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">Toll for the brave!</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">The brave that are no more!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">All sunk beneath the wave,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Fast by their native shore.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">Eight hundred of the brave,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Whose courage well was tried,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Had made the vessel heel,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And laid her on her side.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">A land breeze shook the shrouds,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And she was overset;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Down went the <i>Royal George</i>,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">With all her crew complete.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">Toll for the brave&mdash;</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Brave Kempenfeldt is gone,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">His last sea fight is fought&mdash;</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">His work of glory done.</div><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_75"></a>[75]</span>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">It was not in the battle;</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">No tempest gave the shock;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">She sprang no fatal leak;</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">She ran upon no rock.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">His sword was in its sheath;</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">His fingers held the pen,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">When Kempenfeldt went down,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">With twice four hundred men.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">Weigh the vessel up,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Once dreaded by our foes!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And mingle with our cup</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">The tear that England owes.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">Her timbers yet are sound,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And she may float again,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Full charged with England’s thunder,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">And plough the distant main.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">But Kempenfeldt is gone,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">His victories are o’er;</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And he, and his eight hundred,</div>
- <div class="verse indent2">Shall plough the wave no more.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>To return to my narrative: Our ship, having been at sea two
-years, needed overhauling. She was therefore taken into one of the
-splendid dry docks in the Plymouth dock-yard, while the crew were
-placed, for the time being, on board an old hulk. A week or two
-sufficed for this task, when we returned to our old quarters. She
-looked like a new ship, having been gaily painted within and without.
-We, too, soon got newly rigged; for orders had reached us
-from the Admiralty office to prepare for sea, and we were paid off.
-Most of the men laid out part of their money in getting new clothing;
-some of it went to buy pictures, looking-glasses, crockery ware,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_76"></a>[76]</span>
-&amp;c., to ornament our berths, so that they bore some resemblance to a
-cabin. The women were ordered ashore, and we were once more
-ready for sea.</p>
-
-<p>The practice of paying seamen at long intervals, is the source
-of many evils. Among these, is the opportunity given to pursers
-to practise extortion on the men&mdash;an opportunity they are not slow
-in improving. The spendthrift habits of most sailors leave them
-with a barely sufficient quantity of clothing, for present purposes,
-when they ship. If the cruise is long, they are, consequently,
-obliged to draw from the purser. This gentleman is ever ready
-to supply them, but at ruinous prices. Poor articles with high
-prices are to be found in his hands; these poor Jack must take of
-necessity, because he cannot get his wages until he is paid off.
-Hence, what with poor articles, high charges and <em>false</em> charges, the
-purser almost always has a claim which makes Jack’s actual receipts
-for two or three years’ service, wofully small. Were he paid at
-stated periods, he could make his own purchases as he needed them.
-The sailor is aware of this evil, but he only shows his apprehension
-of it in his usually good-humored manner. If he sees a poor, ill-cut
-garment, he will laugh, and say it “looks like a purser’s shirt
-on a handspike.” These are small matters, but they go to make up
-the sum total of a seaman’s life, and should therefore be remedied
-as far as possible.</p>
-
-<p>Our preparations all completed, the hoarse voice of the boatswain
-rang through the ship, crying, “All hands up anchor, ahoy!”
-In a trice, the capstan bars were shipped, the fifer was at his station
-playing a lively tune, the boys were on the main deck holding
-on to the “nippers,” ready to pass them to the men, who put them
-round the “messenger” and cable; then, amid the cries of “Walk
-round! heave away, my lads!” accompanied by the shrill music of
-the fife, the anchor rose from its bed, and was soon dangling under
-our bows. The sails were then shaken out, the ship brought before
-the wind, and we were once more on our way to sea. We were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_77"></a>[77]</span>
-directed to cruise off the coast of France this time; where, as we
-were then at war with the French, we were likely to find active
-service.</p>
-
-<p>We first made the French port of Rochelle; from thence, we
-sailed to Brest, which was closely blockaded by a large British
-fleet, consisting of one three-decker, with several seventy-fours, besides
-frigates and small craft. We joined this fleet, and came to
-an anchor in Basque Roads, to assist in the blockade. Our first
-object was to bring a large French fleet, greatly superior to us in
-size and numbers, to an engagement. With all our manœuvring, we
-could not succeed in enticing them from their snug berth in the harbor
-of Brest, where they were safely moored, defended by a heavy
-fort, and by a chain crossing the harbor, to prevent the ingress of
-any force that might be bold enough to attempt to cut them out.
-Sometimes we sent a frigate or two as near their fort as they dared
-to venture, in order to entice them out; at other times, the whole
-fleet would get under weigh and stand out to sea; but without success.
-The Frenchmen were either afraid we had a larger armament
-than was visible to them, or they had not forgotten the splendid
-victories of Nelson at the Nile and Trafalgar. Whatever they
-thought, they kept their ships beyond the reach of our guns.
-Sometimes, however, their frigates would creep outside the forts,
-when we gave them chase, but seldom went beyond the exchange
-of a few harmless shots. This was what our men called “boy’s
-play;” and they were heartily glad when we were ordered to
-return to Plymouth.</p>
-
-<p>After just looking into Plymouth harbor, our orders were
-countermanded, and we returned to the coast of France. Having
-accomplished about one half the distance, the man at the mast-head
-cried out, “Sail ho!”</p>
-
-<p>“Where away?” (what direction?) responded the officer of
-the deck. The man having replied, the officer again asked, “What
-does she look like?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_78"></a>[78]</span></p>
-
-<p>“She looks small; I cannot tell, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>In a few minutes the officer hailed again, by shouting, “Mast-head,
-there! what does she look like?”</p>
-
-<p>“She looks like a small sail-boat, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>This was rather a novel announcement; for what could a small
-sail-boat do out on the wide ocean? But a few minutes convinced
-us that it was even so; for, from the deck, we could see a small boat,
-with only a man and a boy on board. They proved to be two
-French prisoners of war, who had escaped from an English prison,
-and, having stolen a small boat, were endeavoring to make this perilous
-voyage to their native home. Poor fellows! they looked sadly
-disappointed at finding themselves once more in British hands.
-They had already been in prison for some time; they were now
-doomed to go with us, in sight of their own sunny France, and then
-be torn away again, carried to England, and imprisoned until the
-close of the war. No wonder they looked sorrowful, when, after
-having hazarded life for home and liberty, they found both snatched
-from them in a moment, by their unlucky rencontre with our frigate.
-I am sure we should all have been glad to have missed them.
-But this is only one of the consequences of war.</p>
-
-<p>Having joined the blockading fleet again, we led the same sort
-of life as before: now at anchor, then giving chase; now standing in
-shore, and anon standing out to sea; firing, and being fired at, without
-once coming into action.</p>
-
-<p>Determined to accomplish some exploit or other, our captain
-ordered an attempt to be made at cutting out some of the French
-small craft that lay in shore. We were accustomed to send out
-our barges almost every night, in search of whatever prey they
-might capture. But on this occasion the preparations were more
-formidable than usual. The oars were muffled; the boat’s crew increased,
-and every man was armed to the teeth. The cots were got<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_79"></a>[79]</span>
-ready on board, in case any of the adventurers should return
-wounded. Cots are used to sleep in by ward-room officers and captains;
-midshipmen and sailors using hammocks. But a number of
-cots are always kept in a vessel of war, for the benefit of wounded
-men; they differ from a hammock, in being square at the bottom,
-and consequently more easy. The service on which the barge was
-sent being extremely dangerous, the cots were got ready to receive
-the wounded, should there be any; but notwithstanding these expressive
-preparations, the brave fellows went off in as fine spirits
-as if they had been going on shore for a drunken spree. Such is the
-contempt of danger that prevails among sailors.</p>
-
-<p>We had no tidings of this adventure until morning, when I
-was startled by hearing three cheers from the watch on deck; these
-were answered by three more from a party that seemed approaching
-us. I ran on deck just as our men came alongside with their
-bloodless prize&mdash;a lugger, laden with French brandy, wine and
-Castile soap. They had made this capture without difficulty; for
-the crew of the lugger made their escape in a boat, on the first intimation
-of danger. As this was our first prize, we christened her
-the <i>Young Macedonian</i>. She was sent to the admiral; but what
-became of her, I never heard.</p>
-
-<p>Before sending her away, however, the officers, having a peculiar
-itching for some of the brandy, took the liberty of replenishing
-their empty bottles from the hold. This, with true aristocratic
-liberality, they kept to themselves, without offering the smallest
-portion to the crew. Some of them showed, by their conduct afterwards,
-that this brandy possessed considerable strength. We had
-no further opportunity to signalize either ourselves or our frigate
-by our heroism at Brest; for we were soon after ordered back to
-Plymouth, where, for a short time, we lay at our old anchorage
-ground.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_80"></a>[80]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy1">At &nbsp;Plymouth we heard some vague rumors of a declaration
-of war against America. More than this, we could not
-learn, since the utmost care was taken to prevent our being
-fully informed. The reason of this secrecy was, probably, because
-we had several Americans in our crew, most of whom were pressed
-men, as before stated. These men, had they been certain that war
-had broken out, would have given themselves up as prisoners of
-war, and claimed exemption from that unjust service, which compelled
-them to act with the enemies of their country. This was a
-privilege which the magnanimity of our officers ought to have offered
-them. They had already perpetrated a grievous wrong upon
-them in impressing them; it was adding cruelty to injustice, to compel
-their service in a war against their own nation. But the difficulty
-with naval officers is, that they do not treat with a sailor as
-with a <em>man</em>. They know what is fitting between each other as
-officers; but they treat their crews on another principle; they are
-apt to look at them as pieces of living mechanism, born to serve,
-to obey their orders, and administer to their wishes without complaint.
-This is alike a bad morality and a bad philosophy. There
-is often more real manhood in the forecastle than in the ward-room;
-and until the common sailor is treated <em>as a man</em>, until every feeling
-of human nature is conceded to him in naval discipline&mdash;perfect,
-rational subordination will never be attained in ships of war, or in
-merchant vessels. It is needless to tell of the intellectual degradation
-of the mass of seamen. “A man’s a man for a’ that;” and
-it is this very system of discipline, this treating them as automatons,
-which keeps them degraded. When will human nature put more
-confidence in itself?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_81"></a>[81]</span></p>
-
-<p>Leaving Plymouth, we next anchored, for a brief space, at
-Torbay, a small port in the British Channel. We were ordered
-thence to convoy a huge East India merchant vessel, much larger
-than our frigate, and having five hundred troops on board, bound
-to the East Indies, with money to pay the troops stationed there.
-We set sail in a tremendous gale of wind. Both ships stopped two
-days at Madeira to take in wine and a few other articles. After
-leaving this island, we kept her company two days more; and then,
-according to orders, having wished her success, we left her to pursue
-her voyage, while we returned to finish our cruise.</p>
-
-<p>Though without any positive information, we now felt pretty
-certain that our government was at war with America. Among
-other things, our captain appeared more anxious than usual; he was
-on deck almost all the time; the “look-out” aloft was more rigidly
-observed; and every little while the cry of “Mast-head there!” arrested
-our attention.</p>
-
-<p>It is customary in men of war to keep men at the fore and main
-mast-heads, whose duty it is to give notice of every new object that
-may appear. They are stationed on the royal yards, if they are
-up, but if not, on the top-gallant yards: at night a look-out is kept
-on the fore-yard only.</p>
-
-<p>Thus we passed several days; the captain running up and
-down, and constantly hailing the man at the mast-head: early in
-the morning he began his charge “to keep a good look-out,” and
-continued to repeat it until night. Indeed, he seemed almost crazy
-with some pressing anxiety. The men felt there was something
-anticipated, of which they were ignorant; and had the captain heard
-all their remarks upon his conduct, he would not have felt very
-highly flattered. Still, everything went on as usual; the day was
-spent in the ordinary duties of man-of-war life, and the evening
-in telling stories of things most rare and wonderful; for your genuine
-old tar is an adept in spinning yarns, and some of them, in re<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_82"></a>[82]</span>spect
-to variety and length, might safely aspire to a place beside
-the great magician of the north, Sir Walter Scott, or any of those
-prolific heads that now bring forth such abundance of fiction to feed
-a greedy public, who read as eagerly as our men used to listen. To
-this yarn-spinning was added the most humorous singing, sometimes
-dashed with a streak of the pathetic, which I assure my readers
-was most touching; especially one very plaintive melody, with a
-chorus beginning with,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="verse indentq">“Now if our ship should be cast away,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">It would be our lot to see old England no more,”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="noindent">which made rather a melancholy impression on my boyish mind,
-and gave rise to a sort of presentiment that the <i>Macedonian</i> would
-never return home again; a presentiment which had its fulfilment
-in a manner totally unexpected to us all. The presence of a shark
-for several days, with its attendant pilot fish, tended to strengthen
-this prevalent idea.</p>
-
-<p>The Sabbath came, and it brought with it a stiff breeze. We
-usually made a sort of holiday of this sacred day. After breakfast
-it was common to muster the entire crew on the spar deck, dressed
-as the fancy of the captain might dictate; sometimes in blue jackets
-and white trousers, or blue jackets and blue trousers; at other times
-in blue jackets, scarlet vests, and blue or white trousers; with our
-bright anchor buttons glancing in the sun, and our black, glossy
-hats, ornamented with black ribbons, and with the name of our ship
-painted on them. After muster, we frequently had church service
-read by the captain; the rest of the day was devoted to idleness.
-But we were destined to spend the Sabbath, just introduced to the
-reader, in a very different manner.</p>
-
-<p>We had scarcely finished breakfast, before the man at the
-mast-head shouted, “Sail ho!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_83"></a>[83]</span></p>
-
-<p>The captain rushed upon deck, exclaiming, “Mast-head
-there!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“Where away is the sail?”</p>
-
-<p>The precise answer to this question I do not recollect, but the
-captain proceeded to ask, “What does she look like?”</p>
-
-<p>“A square-rigged vessel, sir,” was the reply of the look-out.</p>
-
-<p>After a few minutes, the captain shouted again, “Mast-head
-there!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“What does she look like?”</p>
-
-<p>“A large ship, sir, standing toward us!”</p>
-
-<p>By this time, most of the crew were on deck, eagerly straining
-their eyes to obtain a glimpse of the approaching ship, and murmuring
-their opinions to each other on her probable character.
-Then came the voice of the captain, shouting, “Keep silence, fore
-and aft!” Silence being secured, he hailed the look-out, who, to
-his question of “What does she look like?” replied, “A large frigate,
-bearing down upon us, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>A whisper ran along the crew that the stranger ship was a
-Yankee frigate. The thought was confirmed by the command of
-“All hands clear the ship for action, ahoy!” The drum and fife
-beat to quarters; bulk-heads were knocked away; the guns were
-released from their confinement; the whole dread paraphernalia of
-battle was produced; and after the lapse of a few minutes of hurry
-and confusion, every man and boy was at his post, ready to do his
-best service for his country, except the band, who, claiming exemption
-from the affray, safely stowed themselves away in the cable
-tier. We had only one sick man<a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> on the list, and he, at the cry of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_84"></a>[84]</span>
-battle, hurried from his cot, feeble as he was, to take his post of
-danger. A few of the junior midshipmen were stationed below, on
-the berth deck, with orders, given in our hearing, to shoot any man
-who attempted to run from his quarters.</p>
-
-<p>Our men were all in good spirits; though they did not scruple
-to express the wish that the coming foe was a Frenchman rather
-than a Yankee. We had been told, by the Americans on board,
-that frigates in the American service carried more and heavier
-metal than ours. This, together with our consciousness of superiority
-over the French at sea, led us to a preference for a French antagonist.</p>
-
-<p>The Americans among our number felt quite disconcerted, at
-the necessity which compelled them to fight against their own countrymen.
-One of them, named John Card, as brave a seaman as
-ever trod a plank, ventured to present himself to the captain, as a
-prisoner, frankly declaring his objections to fight. That officer,
-very ungenerously, ordered him to his quarters, threatening to
-shoot him if he made the request again. Poor fellow! He obeyed
-the unjust command, and was killed by a shot from his own countrymen.
-This fact is more disgraceful to the captain of the <i>Macedonian</i>,
-than even the loss of his ship. It was a gross and a palpable
-violation of the rights of man.</p>
-
-<p>As the approaching ship showed American colors, all doubt of
-her character was at an end. “We must fight her,” was the conviction
-of every breast. Every possible arrangement that could insure
-success, was accordingly made. The guns were shotted; the
-matches lighted; for, although our guns were all furnished with
-first-rate locks, they were also provided with matches, attached by
-lanyards, in case the lock should miss fire. A lieutenant then
-passed through the ship, directing the marines and boarders, who
-were furnished with pikes, cutlasses, and pistols, how to proceed if
-it should be necessary to board the enemy. He was followed by<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_85"></a>[85]</span>
-the captain, who extorted the men to fidelity and courage, urging
-upon their consideration the well-known motto of the brave Nelson,
-“England expects every man to do his duty.” In addition to
-all these preparations on deck, some men were stationed in the tops
-with small-arms, whose duty it was to attend to trimming the sails,
-and to use their muskets, provided we came to close action. There
-were others also below, called sail trimmers, to assist in working the
-ship, should it be necessary to shift her position during the battle.</p>
-
-<p>My station was at the fifth gun on the main deck. It was my
-duty to supply my gun with powder, a boy being appointed to each
-gun in the ship on the side we engaged, for this purpose. A woollen
-screen was placed before the entrance to the magazine, with a
-hole in it, through which the cartridges were passed to the boys; we
-received them there, and covering them with our jackets, hurried to
-our respective guns. These precautions are observed to prevent
-the powder taking fire before it reaches the gun.</p>
-
-<p>Thus we all stood, awaiting orders, in motionless suspense.
-At last we fired three guns from the larboard side of the main deck;
-this was followed by the command, “Cease firing; you are throwing
-away your shot!”</p>
-
-<p>Then came the order to “wear ship,” and prepare to attack
-the enemy with our starboard guns. Soon after this I heard a firing
-from some other quarter, which I at first supposed to be a discharge
-from our quarter deck guns; though it proved to be the roar
-of the enemy’s cannon.</p>
-
-<p>A strange noise, such as I had never heard before, next arrested
-my attention; it sounded like the tearing of sails, just over
-our heads. This I soon ascertained to be the wind of the enemy’s
-shot. The firing, after a few minutes’ cessation, recommenced.
-The roaring of cannon could now be heard from all parts of our
-trembling ship, and, mingling as it did with that of our foes, it
-made a most hideous noise. By-and-by I heard the shot strike the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_86"></a>[86]</span>
-sides of our ship; the whole scene grew indescribably confused and
-horrible; it was like some awfully tremendous thunder-storm, whose
-deafening roar is attended by incessant streaks of lightning, carrying
-death in every flash, and strewing the ground with the victims
-of its wrath: only, in our case, the scene was rendered more horrible
-than that, by the presence of torrents of blood which dyed our
-decks.</p>
-
-<p>Though the recital may be painful, yet, as it will reveal the
-horrors of war, and show at what a fearful price a victory is won
-or lost, I will present the reader with things as they met my eye
-during the progress of this dreadful fight. I was busily supplying
-my gun with powder, when I saw blood suddenly fly from the
-arm of a man stationed at our gun. I saw nothing strike him; the
-effect alone was visible; in an instant, the third lieutenant tied his
-handkerchief round the wounded arm, and sent the groaning
-wretch below to the surgeon.</p>
-
-<p>The cries of the wounded now rang through all parts of the
-ship. These were carried to the cockpit as fast as they fell, while
-those more fortunate men, who were killed outright, were immediately
-thrown overboard. As I was stationed but a short distance
-from the main hatchway, I could catch a glance at all who were
-carried below. A glance was all I could indulge in, for the boys
-belonging to the guns next to mine were wounded in the early part
-of the action, and I had to spring with all my might to keep three
-or four guns supplied with cartridges. I saw two of these lads fall
-nearly together. One of them was struck in the leg by a large
-shot; he had to suffer amputation above the wound. The other
-had a grape or canister shot sent through his ankle. A stout Yorkshireman
-lifted him in his arms, and hurried him to the cockpit. He
-had his foot cut off, and was thus made lame for life. Two of the
-boys stationed on the quarter deck were killed. They were both
-Portuguese. A man, who saw one of them killed, afterwards told
-me that his powder caught fire and burnt the flesh almost off his<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_87"></a>[87]</span>
-face. In this pitiable situation, the agonized boy lifted up both
-hands, as if imploring relief, when a passing shot instantly cut him
-in two.</p>
-
-<p>I was an eye-witness to a sight equally revolting. A man
-named Aldrich had one of his hands cut off by a shot, and almost at
-the same moment he received another shot, which tore open his
-bowels in a terrible manner. As he fell, two or three men caught
-him in their arms, and, as he could not live, threw him overboard.</p>
-
-<p>One of the officers in my division also fell in my sight. He
-was a noble-hearted fellow, named Nan Kivell.<a id="FNanchor_8" href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> A grape or canister
-shot struck him near the heart: exclaiming, “Oh! my God!”
-he fell, and was carried below, where he shortly after died.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hope, our first lieutenant, was also slightly wounded by
-a grummet, or small iron ring, probably torn from a hammock clew
-by a shot. He went below, shouting to the men to fight on. Having
-had his wound dressed, he came up again, shouting to us at the
-top of his voice, and bidding us fight with all our might. There
-was not a man in the ship but would have rejoiced had he been in
-the place of our master’s mate, the unfortunate Nan Kivell.</p>
-
-<p>The battle went on. Our men kept cheering with all their might.
-I cheered with them, though I confess I scarcely knew for what.
-Certainly there was nothing very inspiriting in the aspect of things
-where I was stationed. So terrible had been the work of destruction
-round us, it was termed the slaughter-house. Not only had we
-had several boys and men killed or wounded, but several of the guns
-were disabled. The one I belonged to had a piece of the muzzle
-knocked out; and when the ship rolled, it struck a beam of the upper
-deck with such force as to become jammed and fixed in that position.
-A twenty-four pound shot had also passed through the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_88"></a>[88]</span>
-screen of the magazine, immediately over the orifice through which
-we passed our powder. The schoolmaster<a id="FNanchor_9" href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> received a death wound.
-The brave boatswain, who came from the sick bay to the din of battle,
-was fastening a stopper on a back-stay which had been shot
-away, when his head was smashed to pieces by a cannon-ball; another
-man, going to complete the unfinished task, was also struck
-down. Another of our midshipmen also received a severe wound.
-The unfortunate ward-room steward, who, the reader will recollect,
-attempted to cut his throat on a former occasion, was killed. A
-fellow named John, who, for some petty offence, had been sent on
-board as a punishment, was carried past me, wounded. I distinctly
-heard the large blood-drops fall pat, pat, pat, on the deck; his
-wounds were mortal. Even a poor goat, kept by the officers for
-her milk, did not escape the general carnage; her hind legs were
-shot off, and poor Nan was thrown overboard.</p>
-
-<p>Such was the terrible scene, amid which we kept on our shouting
-and firing. Our men fought like tigers. Some of them pulled
-off their jackets, others their jackets and vests; while some, still
-more determined, had taken off their shirts, and, with nothing but
-a handkerchief tied round the waistbands of their trousers, fought
-like heroes. Jack Sadler, whom the reader will recollect, was one
-of these. I also observed a boy, named Cooper, stationed at a gun
-some distance from the magazine. He came to and fro on the full
-run, and appeared to be as “merry as a cricket.” The third lieutenant
-cheered him along, occasionally, by saying, “Well done, my
-boy, you are worth your weight in gold.”</p>
-
-<p>I have often been asked what were my feelings during this
-fight. I felt pretty much as I suppose every one does at such a
-time. That men are without thought when they stand amid the
-dying and the dead, is too absurd an idea to be entertained a moment.
-We all appeared cheerful, but I know that many a serious<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_89"></a>[89]</span>
-thought ran through my mind: still, what could we do but keep up
-a semblance, at least, of animation? To run from our quarters
-would have been certain death from the hands of our own officers;
-to give way to gloom, or to show fear, would do no good, and might
-brand us with the name of cowards, and ensure certain defeat. Our
-only true philosophy, therefore, was to make the best of our situation,
-by fighting bravely and cheerfully. I thought a great deal,
-however, of the other world; every groan, every falling man, told
-me that the next instant I might be before the Judge of all the
-earth. For this, I felt unprepared; but being without any particular
-knowledge of religious truth, I satisfied myself by repeating
-again and again the Lord’s Prayer, and promising that if spared I
-would be more attentive to religious duties than ever before. This
-promise I had no doubt, at the time, of keeping; but I have learned
-since that it is easier to make promises amidst the roar of the battle’s
-thunder, or in the horrors of shipwreck, than to keep them
-when danger is absent, and safety smiles upon our path.</p>
-
-<p>While these thoughts secretly agitated my bosom, the din of
-battle continued. Grape and canister shot were pouring through
-our port-holes like leaden rain, carrying death in their trail. The
-large shot came against the ship’s side like iron hail, shaking her to
-the very keel, or passing through her timbers, and scattering terrific
-splinters, which did a more appalling work than even their own
-death-giving blows. The reader may form an idea of the effect of
-grape and canister, when he is told that grape shot is formed by
-seven or eight balls confined to an iron and tied in a cloth. These
-balls are scattered by the explosion of the powder. Canister shot
-is made by filling a powder canister with balls, each as large as two
-or three musket balls; these also scatter with direful effect when
-discharged. What then with splinters, cannon balls, grape and
-canister poured incessantly upon us, the reader may be assured that
-the work of death went on in a manner which must have been satisfactory
-even to the King of Terrors himself.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_90"></a>[90]</span></p>
-
-<p>Suddenly, the rattling of the iron hail ceased. We were ordered
-to cease firing. A profound silence ensued, broken only by
-the stifled groans of the brave sufferers below. It was soon ascertained
-that the enemy had shot ahead to repair damages, for she
-was not so disabled but she could sail without difficulty; while we
-were so cut up that we lay utterly helpless. Our head braces were
-shot away; the fore and main top-masts were gone; the mizzen mast
-hung over the stern, having carried several men over in its fall: we
-were in the state of a complete wreck.</p>
-
-<p>A council was now held among the officers on the quarter deck.
-Our condition was perilous in the extreme: victory or escape was
-alike hopeless. Our ship was disabled; many of our men were
-killed, and many more wounded. The enemy would without doubt
-bear down upon us in a few moments, and, as she could now choose
-her own position, would without doubt rake us fore and aft. Any
-further resistance was therefore folly. So, in spite of the hot-brained
-lieutenant, Mr. Hope, who advised them not to strike, but
-to sink alongside, it was determined to strike our bunting.<a id="FNanchor_10" href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> This
-was done by the hands of a brave fellow named Watson, whose saddened
-brow told how severely it pained his lion heart to do it. To
-me it was a pleasing sight, for I had seen fighting enough for one
-Sabbath; more than I wished to see again on a week day. His
-Britannic Majesty’s frigate <i>Macedonian</i> was now the prize of the
-American frigate <i>United States</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Before detailing the subsequent occurrences in my history, I
-will present the curious reader with a copy of Captain Carden’s letter<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_91"></a>[91]</span>
-to the government, describing this action. It will serve to show
-how he excused himself for his defeat, as well as throw some light
-on those parts of the contest which were invisible to me at my station.
-My mother presented me with this document, on my return
-to England. She had received it from Lord Churchill, and had
-carefully preserved it for twenty years.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Admiralty Office</span>, Dec. 29, 1812.</p>
-
-<p>Copy of a letter from Captain John Surman Carden,
-late commander of His Majesty’s ship the <i>Macedonian</i>,
-to John Wilson Croker, Esq., dated on board the American
-ship <i>United States</i>, at sea, the 28th October, 1812:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Sir</span>: It is with the deepest regret, I have to acquaint
-you, for the information of my Lords Commissioners of
-the Admiralty, that His Majesty’s late ship <i>Macedonian</i>
-was captured on the 25th instant, by the United
-States ship <i>United States</i>, Commodore Decatur commander.
-The detail is as follows:</p>
-
-<p>A short time after daylight, steering N. W. by W., with
-the wind from the southward, in latitude 29° N., and
-longitude 29° 30′ W., in the execution of their Lordships’
-orders, a sail was seen on the lee beam, which I immediately
-stood for, and made her out to be a large frigate,
-under American colors. At nine o’clock I closed with
-her, and she commenced the action, which we returned;
-but from the enemy keeping two points off the wind, I
-was not enabled to get as close to her as I could have
-wished. After an hour’s action, the enemy backed and
-came to the wind, and I was then enabled to bring her to
-close battle. In this situation I soon found the enemy’s
-force too superior to expect success, unless some very
-fortunate chance occurred in our favor; and with this hope<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_92"></a>[92]</span>
-I continued the battle to two hours and ten minutes;
-when, having the mizzen mast shot away by the board,
-topmasts shot away by the caps, main yard shot in pieces,
-lower masts badly wounded, lower rigging all cut to
-pieces, a small proportion only of the fore-sail left to the
-fore-yard, all the guns on the quarter deck and forecastle
-disabled but two, and filled with wreck, two also on the
-main deck disabled, and several shot between wind and
-water, a very great proportion of the crew killed and
-wounded, and the enemy comparatively in good order,
-who had now shot ahead, and was about to place himself
-in a raking position, without our being enabled to return
-the fire, being a perfect wreck and unmanageable log;
-I deemed it prudent, though a painful extremity, to surrender
-His Majesty’s ship; nor was this dreadful alternative
-resorted to till every hope of success was removed,
-even beyond the reach of chance; nor till, I trust their
-Lordships will be aware, every effort had been made
-against the enemy by myself, and my brave officers and
-men, nor should she have been surrendered whilst a man
-lived on board, had she been manageable. I am sorry to
-say our loss is very severe; I find by this day’s muster,
-thirty-six killed, three of whom lingered a short time
-after the battle; thirty-six severely wounded, many of
-whom cannot recover, and thirty-two slightly wounded,
-who may all do well; total, one hundred and four.</p>
-
-<p>The truly noble and animating conduct of my officers,
-and the steady bravery of my crew, to the last moment
-of the battle, must ever render them dear to their
-country.</p>
-
-<p>My first lieutenant, David Hope, was severely wounded
-in the head, towards the close of the battle, and taken below;
-but was soon again on deck, displaying that greatness<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_93"></a>[93]</span>
-of mind and exertion, which, though it may be
-equalled, can never be excelled. The third lieutenant,
-John Bulford, was also wounded, but not obliged to quit
-his quarters; second lieutenant, Samuel Mottley, and he
-deserves my highest acknowledgments. The cool and
-steady conduct of Mr. Walker, the master, was very great
-during the battle, as also that of Lieutenants Wilson and
-Magill, of the marines.</p>
-
-<p>On being taken on board the enemy’s ship, I ceased to
-wonder at the result of the battle. The <i>United States</i>
-is built with the scantling of a seventy-four gun-ship,
-mounting thirty long twenty-four pounders (English
-ship-guns) on her main deck, and twenty-two forty-two
-pounders, carronades, with two long twenty-four
-pounders, on her quarter deck and forecastle, howitzer
-guns in her tops, and a travelling carronade on her upper
-deck, with a complement of four hundred and seventy-eight
-picked men.</p>
-
-<p>The enemy has suffered much in masts, rigging, and
-hull, above and below water. Her loss in killed and
-wounded I am not aware of; but I know a lieutenant and
-six men have been thrown overboard.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Jno. S. Carden.</span></p>
-
-<p>To <span class="smcap">J. W. Croker</span>, Esq., Admiralty.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Lord Churchill sent the above letter, with a list of the killed
-and wounded annexed, to inform my mother that the name of her
-son was not among the number. The act shows how much he
-could sympathize with a mother’s feelings.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_94"></a>[94]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">I now went below, to see how matters appeared there. The
-first object I met was a man bearing a limb, which had just
-been detached from some suffering wretch. Pursuing my
-way to the ward-room, I necessarily passed through the steerage,
-which was strewed with the wounded: it was a sad spectacle, made
-more appalling by the groans and cries which rent the air. Some
-were groaning, others were swearing most bitterly, a few were
-praying, while those last arrived were begging most piteously to
-have their wounds dressed next. The surgeon and his mate were
-smeared with blood from head to foot: they looked more like butchers
-than doctors. Having so many patients, they had once shifted
-their quarters from the cockpit to the steerage; they now removed
-to the ward-room, and the long table, round which the officers had
-sat over many a merry feast, was soon covered with the bleeding
-forms of maimed and mutilated seamen.<a id="FNanchor_11" href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_95"></a>[95]</span></p>
-
-<p>While looking round the ward-room, I heard a noise above,
-occasioned by the arrival of the boats from the conquering frigate.
-Very soon a lieutenant, I think his name was Nicholson,<a id="FNanchor_12" href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> came into
-the ward-room, and said to the busy surgeon, “How do you do,
-doctor?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have enough to do,” replied he, shaking his head thoughtfully;
-“you have made wretched work for us!” These officers
-were not strangers to each other, for the reader will recollect that
-the commanders and officers of these two frigates, had exchanged
-visits when we were lying at Norfolk, some months before.</p>
-
-<p>I now set to work to render all the aid in my power to the
-sufferers. Our carpenter, named Reed, had his leg cut off. I
-helped to carry him to the after ward-room; but he soon breathed
-out his life there, and then I assisted in throwing his mangled remains
-overboard. We got out the cots as fast as possible; for most
-of them were stretched out on the gory deck. One poor fellow
-who lay with a broken thigh, begged me to give him water. I
-gave him some. He looked unutterable gratitude, drank, and
-died. It was with exceeding difficulty I moved through the steerage,
-it was so covered with mangled men, and so slippery with
-streams of blood. There was a poor boy there crying as if his heart
-would break. He had been servant to the bold boatswain, whose
-head was dashed to pieces. Poor boy! he felt that he had lost a
-friend. I tried to comfort him by reminding him that he ought to
-be thankful for having escaped death himself.</p>
-
-<p>Here, also, I met one of my messmates, who showed the utmost
-joy at seeing me alive, for, he said, he had heard that I was
-killed. He was looking up his messmates, which he said was always
-done by sailors. We found two of our mess wounded. One
-was the Swede, Logholm, who fell overboard, as mentioned in a
-former chapter, and was nearly lost. We held him while the surgeon<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_96"></a>[96]</span>
-cut off his leg above the knee. The task was most painful to
-behold, the surgeon using his knife and saw on human flesh and
-bones, as freely as the butcher at the shambles does on the carcass
-of the beast! Our other messmate suffered still more than the
-Swede; he was sadly mutilated about the legs and thighs with
-splinters. Such scenes of suffering as I saw in that ward-room,
-I hope never to witness again. Could the civilized world behold
-them as they were, and as they often are, infinitely worse than on
-that occasion, it seems to me they would forever put down the barbarous
-practices of war, by universal consent.</p>
-
-<p>Most of our officers and men were taken on board the victor
-ship. I was left, with a few others, to take care of the wounded.
-My master, the sailing-master, was also among the officers, who
-continued in their ship. Most of the men who remained were unfit
-for any service, having broken into the spirit-room and made themselves
-drunk; some of them broke into the purser’s room and helped
-themselves to clothing; while others, by previous agreement, took
-possession of their dead messmates’ property. For my own part
-I was content to help myself to a little of the officers’ provisions,
-which did me more good than could be obtained from rum. What
-was worse than all, however, was the folly of the sailors in giving
-spirit to their wounded messmates, since it only served to aggravate
-their distress.</p>
-
-<p>Among the wounded, was a brave fellow named Wells. After
-the surgeon had amputated and dressed his arm, he walked about
-in fine spirits, as if he had received only a slight injury. Indeed,
-while under the operation, he manifested a similar heroism&mdash;observing
-to the surgeon, “I have lost my arm in the service of my
-country; but I don’t mind it, doctor, it’s the fortune of war.”
-Cheerful and gay as he was, he soon died. His companions gave
-him rum; he was attacked by fever and died. Thus his messmates
-actually killed him with kindness.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_97"></a>[97]</span></p>
-
-<p>We had all sorts of dispositions and temperaments among our
-crew. To me it was a matter of great interest to watch their various
-manifestations. Some who had lost their messmates appeared
-to care nothing about it, while others were grieving with all the tenderness
-of women. Of these, was the survivor of two seamen, who
-had formerly been soldiers in the same regiment; he bemoaned the
-loss of his comrade with expressions of profoundest grief. There
-were, also, two boatswain’s mates, named Adams and Brown, who
-had been messmates for several years in the same ship. Brown
-was killed, or so wounded that he died soon after the battle. It
-was really a touching spectacle to see the rough, hardy features of
-the brave old sailor streaming with tears, as he picked out the dead
-body of his friend from among the wounded, and gently carried it
-to the ship’s side, saying to the inanimate form he bore, “O Bill,
-we have sailed together in a number of ships, we have been in
-many gales and some battles, but this is the worst day I have seen!
-We must now part!” Here he dropped the body into the deep,
-and then, a fresh torrent of tears streaming over his weather-beaten
-face, he added, “I can do no more for you. Farewell! God
-be with you!” Here was an instance of genuine friendship, worth
-more than the heartless professions of thousands, who, in the fancied
-superiority of their elevated position in the social circle, will
-deign nothing but a silly sneer at this record of a sailor’s grief.</p>
-
-<p>The circumstance was rather a singular one, that in both the
-contending frigates the second boatswain’s mate bore the name of
-William Brown, and that they both were killed; yet such was the
-fact.</p>
-
-<p>The great number of the wounded kept our surgeon and his
-mate busily employed at their horrid work until late at night; and
-it was a long time before they had much leisure. I remember passing
-round the ship the day after the battle. Coming to a hammock,
-I found some one in it apparently asleep. I spoke; he made
-no answer. I looked into the hammock; he was dead. My mess<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_98"></a>[98]</span>mates
-coming up, we threw the corpse overboard; that was no time
-for useless ceremony. The man had probably crawled to his hammock
-the day before, and, not being perceived in the general distress,
-bled to death! O War! who can reveal thy miseries!</p>
-
-<p>When the crew of the <i>United States</i> first boarded our frigate,
-to take possession of her as their prize, our men, heated with the
-fury of the battle, exasperated with the sight of their dead and
-wounded shipmates, and rendered furious by the rum they had obtained
-from the spirit-room, felt and exhibited some disposition to
-fight their captors. But after the confusion had subsided, and
-part of our men were snugly stowed away in the American ship,
-and the remainder found themselves kindly used in their own, the
-utmost good feeling began to prevail. We took hold and cleansed
-the ship, using hot vinegar to take out the scent of the blood that
-had dyed the white of our planks with crimson. We also took hold
-and aided in fitting our disabled frigate for her voyage. This being
-accomplished, both ships sailed in company toward the American
-coast.</p>
-
-<p>I soon felt myself perfectly at home with the American seamen;
-so much so, that I chose to mess with them. My shipmates
-also participated in similar feelings in both ships. All idea that
-we had been trying to shoot out each other’s brains so shortly before,
-seemed forgotten. <ins class="corr" id="tn-98" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'We eat together'">
-We ate together</ins>, drank together, joked,
-sung, laughed, told yarns; in short, a perfect union of ideas, feelings,
-and purposes, seemed to exist among all hands.</p>
-
-<p>A corresponding state of unanimity existed, I was told, among
-the officers. Commodore Decatur showed himself to be a gentleman
-as well as a hero in his treatment of the officers of the <i>Macedonian</i>.
-When Captain Carden offered his sword to the commodore,
-remarking, as he did so, “I am an undone man. I am the
-first British naval officer that has struck his flag to an American:”
-the noble commodore either refused to receive the sword, or imme<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_99"></a>[99]</span>diately
-returned it, smiling as he said, “You are mistaken, sir;
-your <i>Guerrière</i> has been taken by us, and the flag of a frigate<a id="FNanchor_13" href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> was
-struck before yours.” This somewhat revived the spirits of the
-old captain; but, no doubt, he still felt his soul stung with shame
-and mortification at the loss of his ship. Participating as he did
-in the haughty spirit of the British aristocracy, it was natural for
-him to feel galled and wounded to the quick, in the position of a
-conquered man.</p>
-
-<p>We were now making the best of our way to America. Notwithstanding
-the patched-up condition of the <i>Macedonian</i>,<a id="FNanchor_14" href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> she was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_100"></a>[100]</span>
-far superior, in a sailing capacity, to her conqueror. The <i>United
-States</i> had always been a dull sailer, and had been christened by
-the name of the Old Wagon. Whenever a boat came alongside of
-our frigate, and the boatswain’s mate was ordered to “pipe away”
-the boat’s crew, he used to sound his shrill call on the whistle, and
-bawl out, “Away, Wagoners, away,” instead of “away, <i>United
-States</i> men, away.” This piece of pleasantry used to be rebuked
-by the officers, but in a manner that showed they enjoyed the joke.
-They usually replied, “Boatswain’s mate, you rascal, pipe away
-<i>United States</i> men, not Wagoners. We have no wagoners on
-board of a ship.” Still, in spite of rebuke, the joke went on, until
-it grew stale by repetition. One thing was made certain however
-by the sailing qualities of the <i>Macedonian</i>; which was, that if we
-had been disposed to escape from our foe before the action, we
-could have done so with all imaginable ease. This, however, would
-have justly exposed us to disgrace, while our capture did not.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_101"></a>[101]</span>
-There was every reason why the <i>United States</i> should beat us.
-She was larger in size, heavier in metal, more numerous in men,
-and stronger built than the <i>Macedonian</i>. Another fact in her
-favor was, that our captain at first mistook her for the <i>Essex</i>, which
-carried short carronades, hence he engaged her at long shot at first;
-for, as we had the weather gage, we could take what position we
-pleased. But this manœuvre only wasted our shot, and gave her
-the advantage, as she actually carried larger metal than we did.
-When we came to close action, the shot from the <i>United States</i>
-went through and through our ship, while ours struck her sides,
-and fell harmlessly into the water. This is to be accounted for
-both by the superiority of the metal and of the ship. Her guns
-were heavier and her sides thicker than ours. Some have said that
-her sides were stuffed with cork. Of this, however, I am not certain.
-Her superiority, both in number of men and guns, may
-easily be seen by the following statistics. We carried forty-nine
-guns; long eighteen-pounders on the main deck, and thirty-two
-pound carronades on the quarter deck and forecastle. Our whole
-number of hands, including officers, men and boys, was three hundred.
-The <i>United States</i> carried four hundred and fifty men and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_102"></a>[102]</span>
-fifty-four guns: long twenty-four pounders on the main deck, and
-forty-two pound carronades on the quarter deck and forecastle.
-So that in actual force she was immensely our superior.</p>
-
-<p>To these should be added the consideration that the men in the
-two ships fought under the influence of different motives. Many
-of our hands were in the service against their will; some of them
-were Americans, wrongfully impressed, and inwardly hoping for
-defeat: while nearly every man in our ship sympathized with the
-great principle for which the American nation so nobly contended
-in the war of 1812. What that was, I suppose all my readers understand.
-The British, at war with France, had denied the Americans
-the right to trade thither. She had impressed American seamen,
-and forcibly compelled their service in her navy; she had violated
-the American flag by insolently searching their vessels for
-her runaway seamen. Free trade and sailors’ rights, therefore,
-were the objects contended for by the Americans. With these objects
-our <em>men</em> could but sympathize, whatever our officers might do.</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand, the crew of our opponent had all shipped<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_103"></a>[103]</span>
-<em>voluntarily</em> for the term of two years only; (most of our men were
-shipped for life.) They understood what they fought for; they
-were better used in the service. What wonder, then, that victory
-adorned the brows of the American commander? To have been
-defeated under such circumstances would have been a source of
-lasting infamy to any naval officer in the world. In the matter of
-fighting, I think there is but little difference in either nation. Place
-them in action under equal circumstances and motives, and who
-could predict which would be victor? Unite them together, they
-would subject the whole world. So close are the alliances of
-blood, however, between England and America, that it is to be
-earnestly desired, they may never meet in mortal strife again. If
-either will fight, which is to be deprecated as a crime and a folly,
-let it choose an enemy less connected by the sacred ties of consanguinity.</p>
-
-<p>Our voyage was one of considerable excitement. The seas
-swarmed with British cruisers, and it was extremely doubtful
-whether the <i>United States</i> would elude their grasp, and reach the
-protection of an American port with her prize. I hoped most sincerely
-to avoid them, as did most of my old shipmates; in this we
-agreed with our captors, who wisely desired to dispose of one conquest
-before they attempted another. Our former officers, of
-course, were anxious for the sight of a British flag. But we saw
-none, and, after a prosperous voyage from the scene of conflict,
-we heard the welcome cry of “Land ho!” The <i>United States</i> entered
-the port of New London; but, owing to a sudden shift of the
-wind, the <i>Macedonian</i> had to lay off and on for several hours. Had
-an English cruiser found us in this situation, we should have been
-easily recovered; and, as it was extremely probable we should fall
-in with one, I felt quite uneasy, until, after several hours, we made
-out to run into the pretty harbor of Newport. We fired a salute
-as we came to an anchor, which was promptly returned by the people
-on shore.</p>
-
-<p>With a few exceptions, our wounded men were in a fair way<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_104"></a>[104]</span>
-to recover by the time we reached Newport. The last of them,
-who died of their wounds on board, was buried just before we got
-in. His name was Thomas Whittaker; he had been badly wounded
-by splinters. While he lived, he endured excessive torture. At
-last his sufferings rendered him crazy, in which sad state he died.
-He was sewed up in his hammock, by his messmates, and carried on
-a grating to the larboard bow port. There Mr. Archer, a midshipman
-of the <i>Macedonian</i>, read the beautiful burial service of the
-church of England. When he came to that most touching passage,
-“we commit the body of our brother to the deep,” the grating was
-elevated, and, amid the most profound silence, the body fell heavily
-into the waters. As it dropped into the deep, a sigh escaped from
-many a friendly bosom, and an air of passing melancholy shrouded
-many a face with sadness. Old recollections were busy there, calling
-up the losses of the battle; but it was only momentary. The
-men brushed away their tears, muttered “It’s no use to fret,” and
-things once more wore their wonted aspect.</p>
-
-<p>At Newport our wounded were carried on shore. Our former
-officers also left us here. When my master, Mr. Walker, took his
-leave of me, he appeared deeply affected. Imprinting a kiss on
-my cheek, the tears started from his eyes, and he bade me adieu.
-I have not seen him since.</p>
-
-<p>While we lay here, a few days, several of our men contrived to
-run away. I should have done so too, but for the vigilance of the
-prize officers, who were ordered to keep us, that we might be exchanged
-for those Americans who had fallen into British hands.</p>
-
-<p>After staying a short time in this port, we got under weigh and
-ran into New London. Here we fired a gun as a signal; it was
-answered by the <i>United States</i>, and both ships were presently sailing
-in company to New York. We found the Sound plentifully
-dotted with sloops, carrying passengers, for this was before the
-days of modern steamboating. After we reached Hurl-gate, ves<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_105"></a>[105]</span>sels
-here gave us plenty of employment. Most of them honored us
-with three cheers, as they passed. Of course, the prize crew could
-do no less than cheer again, so that we passed our time amidst continued
-cheering. While here, we were favored with abundant
-visitors, curious to see the captive frigate. Finding these visitors
-extremely inquisitive, and being tolerably good-natured myself, I
-found a profitable business in conducting them about the ship, describing
-the action, and pointing out the places where particular
-individuals fell. For these services, I gained some money and
-more good will. The people who had been to see us, used to tell
-on shore how they had been on board of us, and how the English
-boy had conducted them over the ship, and told them the particulars
-of the fight. It soon became quite common for those who came
-to inquire “if I was the English boy that was taken in her.” This
-civility on my part was not without a motive; it was productive of
-profit, and I wanted money to aid me whenever I got clear, which
-I was fully determined to do, the first opportunity.</p>
-
-<p>To this step I was encouraged by our pilot, who brought us
-from New London, Mr. Tinker. He promised to take me as his
-apprentice, if I ran away. Also a gentleman who visited us told
-me to call at his house in Pearl street, and he would give me a dinner.
-Many others advised me to get away if possible. But I was
-so closely watched that my mind was haunted with fear, lest, after
-all, I should be sent back to England in the Cartel, which was expected
-every day for the release of the prisoners. To fail in the
-attempt, exposed me to the danger of being reported to the officer
-who might come for us, and thus I was liable to be flogged whenever
-I arrived in a British port. Great caution was therefore necessary
-in making the effort; since it was better not to try at all, than
-to fail of success.</p>
-
-<p>Christmas was now drawing near. The day before Christmas
-day, the Americans contrived to get well supplied with wine from
-a barrel they found below. As they had no funds, I bought my<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_106"></a>[106]</span>
-messmates some apples and a turkey, so that on the morrow they
-were quite taken up with feasting. We also had a great many
-visitors that day; many of them were ladies, and the officers got a
-chair out, which Captain Carden had rigged up, to lift ladies on
-board. It was made from an old hogshead, in the following manner.
-One head was knocked out and the barrel scooped out in
-front; a seat was then inserted, with a flag thrown over the whole;
-so that when it was lowered into a boat alongside, the lady had but
-to step in and throw the flag round her feet; in a trice, the chair
-was whipt upon deck by the halyards, when the lady could step out
-with perfect ease. This contrivance afforded a great deal of
-amusement, and kept the officers busily occupied in waiting upon
-their lady visitors. Now then, thought I, is my time for escape, or
-not at all. I had already made a friend of the American boatswain,
-Mr. Dawson, who promised to carry my clothes to New
-York, if I got clear. So, looking over the ship’s side, I saw a small
-colored boy in a boat. “Can you tell me,” said I, hailing him,
-“where I can get some geese and turkeys on shore for our officers?”</p>
-
-<p>“I guess you can at some of the houses,” responded the lad.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, then,” I continued, “will you set me ashore? I want
-to get some for our officers.”</p>
-
-<p>To this he replied, “Yes, if you will go and ask my master,
-who is on board your ship.”</p>
-
-<p>This was a damper on my young hopes, since it was not likely
-that his master would give permission. I went below, somewhat
-disconcerted. There I met a boy named James Day, two years
-younger than myself. I told him I was going to run away, and
-urged him to go with me. He declined at first, saying, “I have no
-money to pay my expenses.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I have money,” returned I, “and as long as I have a
-shilling, you shall have half of it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_107"></a>[107]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Besides,” continued he, “I am afraid we cannot get away
-without being caught, and so get a thorough flogging.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind that,” said I; “I have contrived that business.
-The boat’s waiting to set us ashore. Come along, Jim; don’t be
-frightened; ‘Nothing venture, nothing have,’ you know. Come,
-come, here’s the boat alongside.” At length he consented; we returned
-to the ship’s side, and told the boy his master was willing,
-provided he would make haste. We jumped into the boat, and
-were soon hurrying towards the shore, full of the hope of freedom.</p>
-
-<p>Never did my heart misgive me as it did when we were on our
-way to the shore; the voice of the boy’s master came echoing along
-the waves. “Where are you going with that boat?” he shouted.
-Recovering myself, I persuaded the boy he was only bidding him
-to make haste. So the lad replied, “I am going to get some geese,
-sir!” and pulled on. A few minutes more, and, to my unspeakable
-delight, I stood on American soil. Giving the boy a half dollar,
-we pushed on for New York, some ten miles distant.</p>
-
-<p>For this act of running away, I have never blamed myself; for
-the means by which it was effected, I have frequently done so. As
-the reader has seen, it was done at the expense of truth. I told several
-deliberate lies to the deceived boy in the boat. This is inexcusable,
-and the only palliation that can be offered is, my want of
-religious instruction. I was not then a Christian. Still, the act
-of lying was an offence before God, and no man should purchase
-his liberty at the price of a lie. He who saves his life at the cost
-of offending God, pays dearly for the purchase. I am thankful
-I have since learned this lesson, at the foot of the cross of Jesus
-Christ.</p>
-
-<p>Not having our “land legs” on, we soon became excessively
-fatigued. When within two or three miles of the city, we concluded
-to stop all night at a tavern on the road.</p>
-
-<p>The inmates looked somewhat surprised to see two sailor lads<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_108"></a>[108]</span>
-inquiring for lodgings; so I at once told them we were runaways
-from the captured frigate. This made them our friends! The evening
-passed quite pleasantly; we relating the particulars of the battle,
-and singing sea songs, and they listening with the utmost good
-humor.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed strange to us to find ourselves in a bed, after sleeping
-two years and a half in a hammock; nevertheless, we slept
-soundly, and to our inexpressible pleasure arose in the morning at
-our leisure, without being driven by the swearing boatswain at our
-heels. After breakfast, our generous host having refused to receive
-any payment for his hospitality, we set out for the city of New
-York.</p>
-
-<p>Here I very fortunately alighted on one of the crew of the
-<i>Macedonian</i>, named Fitzgibbons, who informed me that most of
-our men had been landed at New London, and confined as prisoners
-in an old barn; but that, not being over closely guarded, most
-of them had run away. He also introduced me to a sailors’ boarding-house,
-kept by a widow named Elms, near the old Fly Market
-in Front street.</p>
-
-<p>After spending a week in roving about the city, I heard a tremendous
-roaring of cannon in the harbor; it proceeded from the
-two frigates&mdash;which had dropped down from Hurl-gate and hauled
-up off the navy yard. What was more to my satisfaction, however,
-was the news that the Cartel had arrived and carried off the
-British crew, or, rather, the fragment that remained of them. Had
-I delayed my escape three days longer, instead of spending the rest
-of my days in America and in the American service, I should have
-been chained to the obnoxious discipline of the British navy. The
-reader may be assured that the narrowness of my escape very
-greatly enhanced the value I set upon my freedom.</p>
-
-<p>I now ventured on board the <i>Macedonian</i> again to obtain my
-clothes. As I stepped on board, my mind misgave me, as Lieuten<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_109"></a>[109]</span>ant
-Nicholson eyed me somewhat sternly; but I was reassured,
-when, kindly speaking, he informed me that the Cartel was gone,
-and I was safe. The sailors, also, congratulated me on my success
-in getting clear.</p>
-
-<p>The officers and crew were about to have a public dinner, and
-to visit the theatre in commemoration of their achievement. The
-sailors invited me to join them. To this I agreed. But overhauling
-my clothes, and contriving how I should appear as well as any
-shipmates, who were all going to have new suits for the occasion,
-the bright anchor buttons, which shone on my best suit, presented
-an insuperable objection. For how could I appear among them
-with the badge of the British service on my coat? This dilemma
-was removed, however, by the skill of my landlady, the widow, who
-very carefully covered the buttons with blue cloth.</p>
-
-<p>There was great excitement in New York, when the brave tars
-of the victorious <i>United States</i>, walked in triumphant procession
-through the streets, in the presence of countless citizens. First,
-came Captain Carden’s band, which had now shipped with Decatur;
-they were followed by the commodore and his officers, and
-these by the crew. At the City Hotel, all hands partook of a
-sumptuous dinner. This was followed by rather more than a usual
-amount of drinking, laughing, and talking; for as liquor was furnished
-in great abundance, the men could not resist the temptation
-to get drunk. As they left the room to go to the theatre, the poor
-plates on the sideboard proclaimed that “Jack was full three sheets
-in the wind.” Almost every one, as he passed, gave them a crack,
-crying out as they fell, “Save the pieces;” thus illustrating the old
-proverb, “When rum is in, wit is out.”</p>
-
-<p>The visit to the theatre passed off very much like the dinner,
-to wit, there was an abundance of shouting and cheering all the
-evening. After the close of the play, all hands scattered to see
-their friends, with orders to be on board next day. It was a week
-before they all returned.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_110"></a>[110]</span></p>
-
-<p>I was much struck with the appearance of Decatur that evening,
-as he sat in full uniform, his pleasant face flushed with the excitement
-of the occasion. He formed a striking contrast to the
-appearance he made when he visited our ship on the passage to New
-York. Then, he wore an old straw hat and a plain suit of clothes,
-which made him look more like a farmer than a naval commander.</p>
-
-<p>Never had men more friends than the crew of the <i>United
-States</i> at this period. Every boarding-house was open to them;
-every merchant would trust them; every one was willing to lend
-them money. What was it that gained them such public favor?
-“O their victory, of course,” replies the reader. Stop; I will reveal
-the secret. They had some prize money coming to them in a
-few weeks! That was the key that unlocked coffers; the warmth
-that melted the heart; the spirit that clothed the face with smiles.
-But for that&mdash;<span class="allsmcap">THE PRIZE MONEY</span>&mdash;poor Jack’s credit and favor
-would, as usual, have been below <em>par</em>.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, this profusion, this universal popularity, almost
-turned the brains of some of those old tars; and at every opportunity
-they would steal ashore for a spree. This brought them
-into trouble; it brought some of them to the gangway to be flogged.
-These floggings, however, were not very severe; they were rather
-a species of farce, enacted to preserve alive the forms of discipline.
-To avoid even these forms, the men were accustomed, after staying
-on a spree for several days, to visit the commodore’s lady, with some
-piteous tale, begging her to intercede for them with their captain.
-This she did with almost constant success. The lucky tar would
-then go on board, telling his messmates that she was the sailor’s
-friend, and using the usual saying in such cases, “Good luck to her&mdash;she
-has a soul to be saved.”</p>
-
-<p>By this time, the late crew of the <i>Macedonian</i>, or those of them
-who had not gone home with the Cartel, were pretty well scattered
-over the country. One of the marines, named Luke Oil, went to
-Springfield, Mass., where he was employed as a file-cutter by Col<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_111"></a>[111]</span>onel
-Lee, of the U. S. armory, at the rate of $75 per month. This
-prosperity, and an unfortunate marriage, led him into unsteady
-habits. He enlisted into the U. S. army; but growing sick of that,
-Colonel Lee procured his discharge. He afterwards enlisted
-again, which is the last I ever heard of Luke Oil. Two more of
-our marines, named Shipley and Taylor, also went to Springfield,
-and were employed by a Mr. Ames.</p>
-
-<p>Several of the others enlisted to serve in the fort at New London.
-One of these, whose name was Hawkins, was very highly
-esteemed for his excellence as a soldier, and was soon made sergeant.
-But being an inveterate drunkard, he lost his office, and
-was degraded to the ranks.</p>
-
-<p>I have a characteristic anecdote to record of Sadler, the messmate
-of Bob Hammond. He enlisted in the American army, and
-was quartered at Hartford. He was so delighted with everything
-American, that he had grown to be an enthusiast in his encomiums
-on the government, as was exhibited one day in a somewhat peculiar
-way. The company to which he belonged was marched to
-church, one Sabbath, to hear (I think it was) priest Strong.<a id="FNanchor_15" href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> The
-text was, “Fear God and honor the king.” This was too much for
-the newly-made American; and he put the congregation into a
-broad grin, by exclaiming aloud, “Don’t let us hear about the
-King, but about Congress.” The good people of Hartford would
-have pardoned this violation of Puritan propriety, if they had seen
-that brave fellow flogged, as I had, in the king’s service.</p>
-
-<p>Our fifer, Charles Robinson, also enlisted in the same regiment.
-Perhaps some of the inhabitants of Hartford still remember
-the soldier who amused them, during his stay, by playing on the
-bugle in the morning, from the top of the court-house. Robinson
-was perfect master of several instruments, especially the fife and
-the bugle.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_112"></a>[112]</span></p>
-
-<p>One of our boys, named William Madden, but better known
-in the <i>Macedonian</i> by the nick-name of “Billy O’Rook,” from his
-practice of singing a song about that hero, enlisted in the army, and
-afterwards performed a signal service for his adopted country, at
-Sacket’s Harbor. The Americans were in full retreat before the
-British troops, whose general,<a id="FNanchor_16" href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> mounted on a superb charger, was
-at their head, shouting, “Huzza, my boys, the day is ours!” when
-young Madden rendered desperate by the certainty of being shot,
-if taken by his countrymen, deliberately aimed his rifle at the general.
-The shot struck him, he fell, and the British retreated. This
-brave lad lost his life in a subsequent action. I make this statement
-on the authority of Captain Badger, of Williamstown, Mass.,
-confirmed by the testimony of several other persons.</p>
-
-<p>The reader has probably not forgotten the name of “Bloody
-Dick.” He shipped on board the <i>Hornet</i>, sloop of war, and with
-that vessel very narrowly escaped falling into the hands of the
-English. I met him afterwards in New York. He told me how
-he trembled during the chase, knowing that if captured he should
-be hung for entering the American service; the British having
-given express orders for a strict look-out after our crew, that they
-might make examples of them.</p>
-
-<p>Besides the men just mentioned, others of our crew shipped
-and wandered in every direction; some in men of war, some in merchant
-vessels; some, fearful of the risk of being retaken, settled
-ashore. In short, it is impossible to trace them, so variously did
-they diverge from each other. I have been particular in mentioning
-the history of a few, to gratify the parties, should they be living,
-and ever see my book; to confirm the reader in the truthfulness<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_113"></a>[113]</span>
-of my account, and to show some of the changes that followed in
-consequence of the victory of the <i>United States</i> over the <i>Macedonian</i>.
-It would be an interesting task, were it possible, to trace out
-all the results of that victory. Having detained the reader thus
-long in following the fate of my shipmates, I will resume the record
-of my own in the following chapter.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="endchap3" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="p4 w100" src="images/endchap.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_114"></a>[114]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">Nearly two weeks had passed since I left the <i>Macedonian</i>.
-I and my companion were living upon the sums I
-had saved from the presents I received for my civilities to
-her numerous visitors. One day, as I was sauntering round the
-wharves, with my <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">protégé</span>, I met a number of men-of-war’s men.
-Stepping up to them, I perceived some of the old <i>Macedonians</i>.
-Of course, I hailed them. They were glad to see me. They had
-shipped on board the <i>John Adams</i>, guard ship, to which they were
-returning, having been enjoying a few days’ liberty. Nothing
-would satisfy them, but for us to accompany them, and ship too.
-The midshipman who was with them, joined his entreaties to theirs,
-and we at last consented.</p>
-
-<p>To avoid being detected by the British, it was usual for our
-men to assume new names, and to hail from some American port,
-on shipping in an American vessel. My shipmates advised me to
-do the same. To this I had some objections, because I knew that
-changing my name would not make me a Yankee, while it might
-bring me into as awkward a position as it did an Irishman, who was
-found by an English cruiser on board an American vessel. After
-he had declared himself an American, the officer asked him, “What
-part of America did you come from?”</p>
-
-<p>“I used to belong to Philamadelph, but now I belong to Philama
-York,” replied Paddy, concealing his brogue as much as possible.
-“Well,” continued the officer, “can you say pease?”</p>
-
-<p>“Pase, sir,” said Pat in true Irish style. The officer laughed
-and replied, “Mr. Pase, you will please to get into the boat.” The
-poor Irishman was unsuccessful in playing the Yankee.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_115"></a>[115]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mentioning these fears, the midshipman said, “Call yourself
-William Harper, and hail from Philadelphia;” then turning to my
-companion, he added, “and call yourself James Wilson.”</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said I, “suppose the officer should ask any questions
-about Philadelphia, what should I do?”</p>
-
-<p>“O say you belong to Pine street.”</p>
-
-<p>“But what if he asks me in what part of the city Pine street
-is situated, and what streets join it?” I answered, determined
-not to take a step in the dark if I could avoid it.</p>
-
-<p>The midshipman assured me that no such questions would be
-put; and, partly confiding and partly doubting, I resolved to make
-the experiment. Going on board, we were paraded before the officers.
-Addressing me, one of them said, “Well, my boy, what is
-your name?”</p>
-
-<p>Mustering all the confidence I could command, I boldly answered,
-“William Harper, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“What part of America do you belong to, my boy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Philadelphia, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>Here one of the officers smiled and remarked, “Ah, a townsman.”
-I trembled at hearing this, inwardly hoping that they
-would ask me no more questions. To my increased alarm, however,
-he continued by asking, “What street in Philadelphia?”</p>
-
-<p>“Pine street, sir,” said I, with the air of a man who feels himself
-drawn toward a crisis he cannot escape.</p>
-
-<p>“What street joins Pine street, my lad?” asked my tormentor,
-with a knowing laugh.</p>
-
-<p>This was a poser; for further than this my instructions had not
-proceeded. However, I rallied the little confidence which remained,
-and said, “I don’t remember, sir.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_116"></a>[116]</span></p>
-
-<p>The officer who had claimed me as a townsman, mentioned the
-next street, and my examiner went on by asking me what street
-joined the one mentioned by the officer.</p>
-
-<p>My colors, which had fallen to half-mast before, were now
-fairly struck. I had to surrender at discretion; but thinking to
-get off with the honors of war, I answered, “Gentlemen, it is so
-long since I was in Philadelphia, I have forgotten all about it.”</p>
-
-<p>This point blank shot might have saved me, when, as if Providence
-had determined to make my attempt at lying a total failure,
-one of them detected a glittering anchor button, which had contrived
-to get rid of the covering placed over it by the fingers of the
-widow. Pointing it out to the others, he said, “Where did you get
-that English button? Did you pick it up in Philadelphia?”</p>
-
-<p>This was a shot which raked me fore and aft. I hauled down
-my colors and stood silent. The officers laughed heartily as one of
-them said, “Go below, my lad; you will make a pretty good Yankee.”</p>
-
-<p>Through all this procedure the reader will perceive how perfect
-was the disregard of truth among all parties, from my humble
-self to the officers, who were evidently rather pleased than otherwise
-at my attempt to pass for an American. Such an absence of
-moral rectitude is deplorable; it exhibits the unfitness of the parties
-for a mansion in His kingdom who is a God of truth: it lays the
-foundation for a mutual distrust and suspicion among men, and it
-leaves the offender to meet a fearful weight of responsibility in the
-day that shall try every man’s work. I am thankful that the influences
-of Christianity have fallen upon me since that time, in such
-abundance as to renew the spirit of my mind, and to fill me with
-abhorrence towards a violation of truth.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning I and my companion, who had escaped
-the ordeal that had proved too much for me, were summoned to go<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_117"></a>[117]</span>
-ashore to the rendezvous, that we might sign the ship’s articles;
-or, in sailor phrase, get shipped. The officer of the watch shouted,
-“Boatswain’s mate!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sir,” answered a deep, gruff voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Pipe away the cutter,” said the officer.</p>
-
-<p>“Aye, aye, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pass the word for James Wilson and William Harper.”</p>
-
-<p>“Aye, aye, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>Then followed a loud, shrill whistle, accompanied with the cry
-of, “Away, there, cutters, away!” We were also summoned to
-appear, and told to take our seats in the cutter, which by this time
-lay alongside, manned by her crew of six men, who sat each with
-his oar elevated in the air, waiting the word of command. We
-were soon seated, the lieutenant passed the words, “Let fall, and
-give way;” the oars fell into the water with admirable precision,
-and away we flew towards the shore.</p>
-
-<p>On our way to the rendezvous, I told my companion I should
-not ship in the <i>John Adams</i>, because so many of the <i>Macedonians</i>
-were already there, and it was impossible for us to pass for Americans.
-After some debate, we agreed together not to sign the articles.
-On entering the house where the stars and stripes were flying
-over the door, in token of its being the naval rendezvous, being
-anxious to have my friend Wilson pass the ordeal first, I affected
-to stumble, and then continued apparently engaged in fixing my
-shoe-string. “Well, my boy, what is your name? Just sign it
-here, will you?” said the officer.</p>
-
-<p>I took no notice, but remained very busy with my shoes. My
-shipmate replied in a low, bashful voice, “I don’t like to ship, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, then go below,” said the officer. At this juncture,
-feeling encouraged by his remark, I looked up; when, to my dis<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_118"></a>[118]</span>comfiture,
-the officer, fixing his eyes on my retreating companion,
-observed, “That fellow will certainly be hung;” meaning that he
-would get caught by the English. Then, addressing me, he said,
-“Now, my lad, just sign your name.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sir,” said I, “I had better not ship alone. The other boy
-is only frightened; let me talk to him a little, and I can persuade
-him to ship with me.”</p>
-
-<p>The shipping officer was too old a bird to be snared with such
-chaff as this. So, speaking rather sharply, he said, “Let him go,
-sir, and ship yourself; then he’ll come back and join you; and”&mdash;he
-smiled as he spoke&mdash;“I will let you come ashore to persuade him,
-in a day or two.”</p>
-
-<p>Still I pretended not to be convinced, and, after considerable
-debate, he let me off. Once more clear, I joined my young shipmate,
-and we proceeded together to our boarding-house, congratulating
-ourselves on our fortunate escape, as it appeared to us.</p>
-
-<p>Two weeks of idleness had nearly exhausted the little stock of
-funds I had picked up on board my old ship, and it was becoming
-necessary for me to find some means or other of supporting myself;
-for although the prim widow, with whom I boarded, was quite
-obliging while her bills were paid, it was altogether probable that
-she would become a little crusty if they should be neglected. At
-this crisis I fortunately met with an Englishman, who had visited
-our frigate at Hurl-gate. His name was Smith; he was a deserter
-from the British army; but was now settled in New York, as a
-boot-maker, in the employment of the firm of Benton &amp; Co., Broadway.
-He offered to take me and initiate me into the art, science
-and secrets of boot-making. Seeing no better opportunity before
-me, I accepted his kind offer, and at once entered on my novitiate.</p>
-
-<p>Behold me then, kind reader, transformed from the character
-of a runaway British sailor, into that of a quiet scholar, at the feet<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_119"></a>[119]</span>
-of St. Crispin, where in the matter of awls, wax-ends, lapstones and
-pegs, I soon became quite proficient.</p>
-
-<p>It is altogether probable that the rest of my life would have
-glided away in this still and quiet manner, but for a report that
-reached me, one Sabbath, as I was wasting its precious hours in
-wandering about among the shipping. This was, that there was a
-tall, stout seaman on board the <i>United States</i>, named George Turner.
-From the name and description, I had no doubt that this was
-my cousin, who (the reader has not forgotten I presume) presented
-himself so unceremoniously to my aunt at Wanstead.</p>
-
-<p>This intelligence determined me to pay that frigate a visit.
-Going on board, I found her crew living in a complete Elysium of
-sensual enjoyment. They had recently received their prize money.
-Salt beef and pork were now rejected with disdain: Jack’s messkids
-smoked with more savory viands, such as soft tack (bread) and butter,
-fried eggs, sausages, &amp;c.; the whole well soaked with copious
-streams of rum and brandy.</p>
-
-<p>Those of the crew who had been in the <i>Macedonian</i>, hailed me
-with a hearty welcome; those for whom I had bought the turkey
-and apples at Christmas repaid me fourfold, so that when I went
-ashore that night my purse was as heavy as on the afternoon when
-I quitted my ship. My cousin did not recognise me at first; but
-by referring him to his visit to my old abode, he at last felt satisfied
-that I was his cousin. He then charged me not to mention our relationship,
-because he wished to pass for an American. Having
-given me this charge, he surveyed me from head to foot, and then
-said, “What are you doing in New York?”</p>
-
-<p>“I am learning to make boots and shoes.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am sorry you are bound to a shoemaker,” said he; “I don’t
-like that business.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_120"></a>[120]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I am not <em>bound</em> to Mr. Smith, but can leave him when I
-please.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, then,” he remarked thoughtfully, “I don’t want you
-to go to sea again. Go to Salem, in the state of Massachusetts.
-I have a wife and children there, and shall be at home in a few
-weeks.”</p>
-
-<p>This was a kind offer, and I at once agreed to take his advice.
-I had already grown somewhat weary with the confinement of my
-new mode of life, though, on the whole, considering my education,
-and the character of the influence exerted upon me in the <i>Macedonian</i>,
-I was a steady lad. Mr. Smith had left me pretty much to
-my own inclinations during the two months of my residence with
-him; yet my utmost misconduct had been the drinking of a little
-spirit, and the violation of the Sabbath by roaming about the docks
-and wharves. My Sabbath evenings I had usually spent in a more
-profitable manner, it being my habit to spend them at the Methodist
-chapel in Duane street.</p>
-
-<p>On returning to the house of my kind employer, I lost no time
-in communicating to him my change of purpose. He objected, and
-justly too, to be left just as the pains he had taken to instruct me
-were about to be requited by my usefulness. However, as I offered
-him five dollars, he consented to my departure.</p>
-
-<p>At that time there were no steamboats ploughing the waters of
-the Sound, so I engaged a steerage passage to Providence, for five
-dollars, on board a packet sloop, and, with a light heart and elastic
-step, carried my clothes-bag on board. Here, however, I met with
-a trifling loss. While ashore waiting for a fair wind, a negro, who
-had engaged a passage in the sloop, robbed my bag of several articles
-of wearing apparel, and took French leave. In consideration
-of this mishap, the captain exacted only three dollars passage-money.
-From Providence a stage, chartered exclusively by a party<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_121"></a>[121]</span>
-of sailors, conveyed me to Boston; from whence I soon reached the
-house of my cousin in Salem.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Turner received me with great kindness; indeed, she pretended
-not to be surprised at my visit, assigning as a reason the very
-satisfactory fact that she had seen me with my bag on my shoulder
-in the <em>grounds of a teacup</em>! She was a believer in fortune-telling
-and dreams, having, for aught I know, received her convictions as
-an heirloom from her witch-burning<a id="FNanchor_17" href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> ancestors. At any rate she
-was strongly confirmed in her favorite theory by my timely arrival;
-verifying, as it did, to the very particular of the bag on the shoulder,
-the truth-telling tea-grounds.</p>
-
-<p>She gave me another proof, after I had been there a few weeks,
-of the truthfulness and verity of dreams, by calling me up one
-morning, with an injunction to make haste to the post-office, for she
-had dreamed of catching fish. Sure enough, if she caught no fish
-in her dreams, she caught a very fine one in the letter I brought to
-her, for it contained a one hundred dollar bill from her husband,
-with information that his ship was blockaded in the port of New
-London by Commodore Hardy.</p>
-
-<p>Accident or curiosity, I forget which, led me to attend the religious
-services of the Baptists in Salem. They were enjoying a
-season of religious refreshing: several were baptized. The hymn
-beginning with the line&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="pfs80">“Oh, how happy are they who their Saviour obey,”</p>
-
-<p class="noindent">was sung as the converts came out of the water, and made a strong
-impression on my mind. Had some devoted Christian made himself
-acquainted with my feelings, and given me suitable advice, there
-is no doubt but that I should have been led to embrace the Lord
-Jesus Christ. How many divine impressions are destroyed,
-through lack of faithfulness in Christians!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_122"></a>[122]</span></p>
-
-<p>Perhaps the great reason why these serious impressions were so
-transient, was because the company I kept was so unfavorable to
-their growth. Most of my time was spent about the shipping:
-among these were many privateers, the profanity of whose crews
-was such that it had passed into a proverb. It was usual to say to
-a gross swearer, “You swear like a privateer’s-man.” Religion
-could not flourish in an atmosphere tainted by their vices.</p>
-
-<p>Among my favorite pursuits was that of fishing. Sometimes
-I went with mixed parties of males and females; at others, with a
-few sailor companions. One of these excursions came very near
-costing rather more than it was worth. We had been out all night;
-towards morning we thought we would get a little sleep, and for
-this purpose laid ourselves down under the top-gallant forecastle.
-Luckily for us, we had an old sailor, named Lewis Deal, on board.
-He had been quartermaster on board the <i>United States</i>. Knowing
-that the coast was strictly guarded by British cruisers, he kept
-awake. Just at dawn the <em>bang</em> of a single gun led him to call us,
-saying, “There, I told you to look out for Johnny Bull.”</p>
-
-<p>Looking about us, we saw an English gun brig in chase after
-a Boston sloop. This was a sight that inspired us with a very sudden
-and wonderful agility, since we had a decided repugnance to a
-free passage in the aforesaid brig to Halifax; especially as in my
-case it might have the rather unpleasant termination of an airing
-at the yard-arm; which, for very strong reasons I chose to avoid if
-possible.</p>
-
-<p>By dint of strong arms and quick movements, we succeeded in
-hauling in our anchor and getting under weigh, without attracting
-the Englishman’s attention. Expecting a shot at our heels every
-moment, we sat breathlessly measuring our distance from the brig.
-Fortunately, we escaped notice, and reached Salem in safety.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after this adventure, the good citizens of Salem were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_123"></a>[123]</span>
-thrown into a high state of excitement by the noise of a heavy cannonading.
-A general rush took place from all quarters towards
-the Neck. I followed with the rest. We found it to be occasioned
-by the engagement between the <i>Chesapeake</i> and <i>Shannon</i>,
-in compliance with a challenge, sent by the latter, which was accepted
-by Captain Lawrence, of the former. The result is well
-known. After a short action, the <i>Chesapeake</i> struck to the <i>Shannon</i>,
-and was carried away by the victors, in triumph, to Halifax.
-One reason for the defeat of the American frigate, may perhaps be
-found in the fact that her crew were newly shipped; some of them
-were volunteer landsmen, while none of them had what sailors call
-their sea-legs on. No ship is fit for action until she has been at sea
-at least a month. In this action the captain, first lieutenant, and
-several men, were killed. Mr. George Crowninshield sent a vessel
-to Halifax for the bodies of those gallant officers; they were interred
-in Salem with naval honors.</p>
-
-<p>My cousin, having now reached home, was desirous to have me
-devote myself to some business. He proposed that of a sailmaker;
-but by this time I had quite a desire to go to sea again.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Constitution</i>, the <i>Frolic</i> sloop of war, and the gun brig
-<i>Siren</i>, were all shipping hands in Boston. My feelings inclined me
-towards old <i>Ironsides</i>; but my cousin, having sailed with Captain
-Parker,<a id="FNanchor_18" href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> of the <i>Siren</i>, recommended that officer so strongly, that I
-was induced to join his ship, in company with the quartermaster and
-several of the former hands of the <i>United States</i>. My cousin also
-overruled my design of shipping in a false name; so that, in defiance
-of my fears, I suffered myself to be entered as Samuel Leech,
-on the books of the U. S. brig <i>Siren</i>, of sixteen guns. The payment
-of three months’ advance, with the sum I brought with me
-from New York, enabled me honorably to discharge my board bills<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_124"></a>[124]</span>
-at my cousin’s, and to purchase a little clothing necessary to fit me
-for sea. I was then in the seventeenth year of my life.</p>
-
-<p>Once more in a man of war, my seriousness all vanished like
-mist before the sun. Alas, it was poor soil to nourish the seed of
-life! barren of everything that related to purity, religion, and immortality.</p>
-
-<p>My first impressions of the American service were very favorable.
-The treatment in the <i>Siren</i> was more lenient and favorable
-than in the <i>Macedonian</i>. The captain and officers were kind, while
-there was a total exemption from that petty tyranny exercised by
-the upstart midshipmen in the British service. As a necessary effect,
-our crew were as comfortable and as happy as men ever are
-in a man of war.</p>
-
-<p>While we lay in Boston harbor, Thanksgiving-day arrived.
-Some of our Salem men inquired if I was not going home to keep
-Thanksgiving, for they all supposed I belonged to Salem. What
-they meant by Thanksgiving, was a mystery to me, but, dissembling
-my ignorance, I obtained leave, determined to learn what it
-meant. The result of my visit was the idea that Thanksgiving was
-one in which the people crammed themselves with turkeys, geese,
-pumpkin-pies, &amp;c.; for, certainly, that was the chief business of the
-day, so far as I could perceive. With too many people, I believe
-that this is the leading idea associated with the day even now.</p>
-
-<p>Our brig had before this taken in her guns, consisting of two
-long nine-pounders, twelve twenty-four pound carronades, and two
-forty-two pounders. Our crew was composed of some one hundred
-and twenty-five smart, active men. We were all supplied
-with stout leather caps, something like those used by firemen.
-These were crossed by two strips of iron, covered with bearskin,
-and were designed to defend the head, in boarding an enemy’s ship,
-from the stroke of the cutlass. Strips of bearskin were likewise
-used to fasten them on, serving the purpose of false whiskers, and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_125"></a>[125]</span>
-causing us to look as fierce as hungry wolves. We were also frequently
-exercised in the various evolutions of a sea-fight; first using
-our cannon, then seizing our cutlasses <ins class="corr" id="tn-125" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'and boarding-spikes'">
-and boarding-pikes</ins>, and cutting
-to the right and left, as if in the act of boarding an enemy’s
-ship. Thus we spent our time from early in the fall until after
-Christmas, when we received orders to hold ourselves in readiness
-for sea.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="endchap4" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="p4 w100" src="images/endchap.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_126"></a>[126]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy1">As we lay waiting for our final orders, a report reached us
-that a large English brig of war, called the <i>Nimrod</i>, lay in
-a cove somewhere near Boston bay. Upon this information,
-our officers planned a night expedition for the purpose of effecting
-her capture. Our intended mode of attack was to run close
-alongside, pour a broadside upon her, and then, without further
-ceremony, board her, cutlass in hand. So we took in our powder,
-ground up our cutlasses, and towards night got under weigh. A
-change in the wind, however, defeated our designs, and we put into
-Salem harbor, with no other result than the freezing of a man’s fingers,
-which happened while we were furling our sails. Thus ended
-our first warlike expedition in the <i>Siren</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after this affair, we received orders to start on a cruise
-to the coast of Africa, and, in company with the <i>Grand Turk</i>,<a id="FNanchor_19" href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a> a
-privateer, set sail from Salem. Passing the fort, we received the
-usual hail from the sentry, of “Brig ahoy! where are you bound
-to?”</p>
-
-<p>To this salutation the first lieutenant jocosely answered,
-“There, and back again, on a man of war’s cruise.” Such a reply
-would not have satisfied a British soldier; but we shot past the fort
-unmolested. After two days we parted company with the <i>Grand
-Turk</i>, and by the aid of a fair wind soon found ourselves in the Gulf
-Stream; where, instead of fearing frozen fingers, we could go bare-footed
-and feel quite comfortable.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_127"></a>[127]</span></p>
-
-<p>We now kept a sharp look-out at the mast-head, but met with
-nothing until we reached the Canary Islands, near which we saw a
-boat-load of Portuguese, who, coming alongside, talked in their
-native tongue with great noise and earnestness, but were no more
-intelligible to us than so many blackbirds.</p>
-
-<p>While off the African coast, our captain died. His wasted
-body was placed in a coffin, with shot to sink it. After the service
-had been read, the plank on which the coffin rested was elevated,
-and it slipped into the great deep. The yards were braced round,
-and we were under weigh again, when, to our surprise and grief, we
-saw the coffin floating on the waves. The reason was, the carpenter
-had bored holes in the top and bottom; he should have made them
-only in the top.</p>
-
-<p>After the funeral, the crew were called aft, and the first lieutenant,
-Mr. Nicholson,<a id="FNanchor_20" href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a> told us that it should be left to our decision
-whether he should assume the command and continue the
-cruise, or return home. We gave him three hearty cheers, in token
-of our wish to continue the cruise. He was a noble-minded man,
-very kind and civil to his crew; and the opposite, in every respect, to
-the haughty, lordly captain with whom I first sailed in the <i>Macedonian</i>.
-Seeing me one day with rather a poor hat on, he called me
-aft and presented me with one of his own, but little worn. “Good
-luck to him,” said I, in sailor phrase, as I returned to my messmates;
-“he has a soul to be saved.” We also lost two of our crew,
-who fell victims to the heat of the climate.</p>
-
-<p>One morning the cry of “Sail ho!” directed our attention to a
-strange sail, which had hove to, with her courses hauled up. At
-first, we took her for a British man-of-war brig. The hands were
-summoned to quarters, and the ship got ready for action. A nearer
-approach, however, convinced us that the supposed enemy, was no
-other than our old friend, the <i>Grand Turk</i>. She did not appear to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_128"></a>[128]</span>
-know us; for no sooner did she see that our craft was a brig of war,
-than, supposing us to belong to Johnny Bull, she crowded all her
-canvas, and made the best of her way off. Knowing what she
-was, we permitted her to escape without further alarm.</p>
-
-<p>The first land we made was Cape Mount. The natives came
-off to a considerable distance in their canoes, clothed in nothing but
-a piece of cloth fastened round the waist, and extending downward
-to the feet. As we approached the shore, we saw several fires burning;
-this, we were told, in the broken English spoken by our sable
-visitors, was the signal for trade. We bought a quantity of
-oranges, limes, cocoanuts, tamarinds, plantains, yams and bananas.
-We likewise took in a quantity of cassava, a species of ground root,
-of which we made tolerable pudding and bread; also a few hogs
-and some water.</p>
-
-<p>We lay here several days looking out for any English vessels
-that might come thither for purposes of trade.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, we began to experience the inconvenience of a hot
-climate. Our men were all covered with blotches or boils, probably
-occasioned by so sudden a transition from extreme cold to extreme
-heat. What was worse than this, was the want of a plentiful supply
-of water. In the absence of this, we were placed on an allowance
-of two quarts per diem, to each man. This occasioned us much
-suffering; for, after mixing our Indian for puddings, our cassava
-for bread, and our whisky for grog, we had but little left to assuage
-our burning thirst. Some, in their distress, drank large quantities
-of sea water, which only increased their thirst and made them sick;
-others sought relief in chewing lead, tea-leaves, or anything which
-would create moisture. Never did we feel more delighted than
-when our boat’s crew announced the discovery of a pool of fine clear
-water. We received it with greater satisfaction than ever prodigal
-did tidings of the death of some rich old relative, to whose well-laden
-purse he was undisputed heir. We could have joined in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_129"></a>[129]</span>
-most enthusiastic cold-water song ever sung by either hermit or
-Washingtonian.<a id="FNanchor_21" href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a></p>
-
-<p>While cruising along the coast, we one night perceived a large
-ship lying at anchor near the shore. We could not decide whether
-she was a large merchantman or a man of war; so we approached
-her with the utmost caution. Our doubts were soon removed, for
-she suddenly loosed all her sails and made chase after us. By the
-help of their glasses, our officers ascertained her to be an English
-frigate. Of course, it was folly to engage her; so we made all the
-sail we could carry, beat to quarters, lighted our matches, and lay
-down at our guns, expecting to be prisoners of war before morning.
-During the night we hung out false lights, and altered our
-course; this baffled our pursuer; in the morning she was no more to
-be seen.</p>
-
-<p>The next sail we made was not so formidable. She was an
-English vessel at anchor in the Senegal river. We approached her
-and hailed. Her officer returned an insolent reply, which so exasperated
-our captain that he passed the word to fire into her, but recalled
-it almost immediately. The countermand was too late; for
-in a moment, everything being ready for action, we poured a whole
-broadside into our unfortunate foe. The current carried us away
-from the stranger. We attempted to beat up again, but our guns
-had roused the garrison in a fort which commanded the river; they
-began to blaze away at us in so expressive a manner, that we found
-it prudent to get a little beyond the reach of their shot, and patiently
-wait for daylight.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning we saw our enemy hauled close in shore, under
-the protection of the fort, and filled with soldiers. At first,
-it was resolved to man the boats and cut her out; but this, after
-weighing the subject maturely, was pronounced to be too hazardous
-an experiment, and, notwithstanding our men begged to make the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_130"></a>[130]</span>
-attempt, it was wisely abandoned. How many were killed by our
-hasty broadside, we never learned, but doubtless several poor fellows
-were hurried to a watery and unexpected grave, affording another
-illustration of the <em>beauty</em> of war. This affair our men
-humorously styled “the battle of Senegal.”</p>
-
-<p>After visiting Cape Three Points, we shaped our course for
-St. Thomas. On our way, we lost a prize through a display of
-Yankee cunning in her commander. We had hoisted English colors;
-the officer in command of the stranger was pretty well versed
-in the secrets of false colors, and in return he ran up the American
-flag. The bait took: supposing her to be American, we showed the
-stars and stripes. This was all the merchantman desired. It told
-him what we were, and he made all possible sail for St. Thomas.
-We followed, crowding every stitch of canvas our brig could carry;
-we also got out our sweeps and swept her along, but in vain. The
-merchantman was the better sailer, and succeeded in reaching St.
-Thomas, which, being a neutral port, secured her safety. Her name
-was the <i>Jane</i>, of Liverpool. The next morning, another Liverpool
-merchantman got into the harbor, unseen by our look-out until she
-was under the protection of the laws of neutrality.</p>
-
-<p>Our next business was to watch the mouth of the harbor, in the
-hope of catching them as they left port. But they were too cautious
-to run into danger, especially as they were expecting a convoy
-for their protection, which might make us glad to trust more to
-our canvas than to our cannon.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after this occurrence, we made another sail standing
-in towards St. Thomas. Hoisting English colors, our officers also
-donning the British uniform, we soon came near enough to hail her;
-for, not doubting that we were a British brig, the merchantman
-made no effort to escape us. Our captain hailed her, “Ship ahoy!”</p>
-
-<p>“Halloa!”</p>
-
-<p>“What ship is that?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_131"></a>[131]</span></p>
-
-<p>“The ship <i>Barton</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where do you belong?”</p>
-
-<p>“To Liverpool.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is your cargo?”</p>
-
-<p>“Red-wood, palm oil and ivory.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where are you bound to?”</p>
-
-<p>“To St. Thomas.”</p>
-
-<p>Just at that moment our English flag was hauled down, and, to
-the inexpressible annoyance of the officers of the <i>Barton</i>, the stars
-and stripes supplied its place.</p>
-
-<p>“Haul down your colors!” continued Captain Nicholson.</p>
-
-<p>The old captain, who, up to this moment, had been enjoying a
-comfortable nap in his very comfortable cabin, now came upon deck
-in his shirt sleeves, rubbing his eyes, and looking so exquisitely
-ridiculous, it was scarcely possible to avoid laughing. So surprised
-was he at the unexpected termination of his dreams, he could not
-command skill enough to strike his colors; which was accordingly
-done by the mate. As they had two or three guns aboard, and as
-some of the men looked as if they would like to fight, our captain
-told us, if they fired to not “leave enough of her to boil a tin pot
-with.” After this expressive and <em>classical</em> threat, we lowered our
-boats and took possession of this our first prize.</p>
-
-<p>After taking out as much of her cargo as we desired, just at
-night we set her on fire. It was an imposing sight, to behold the
-antics of the flames, leaping from rope to rope, and from spar to
-spar, until she looked like a fiery cloud resting on the dark surface
-of the water. Presently, her spars began to fall, her masts went by
-the board, her loaded guns went off, the hull was burned to the
-water’s edge, and what, a few hours before, was a fine, trim ship,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_132"></a>[132]</span>
-looking like a winged creature of the deep, lay a shapeless, charred
-mass, whose blackened outline, shadowed in the clear, still waves,
-looked like the grim spirit of war lurking for its prey.</p>
-
-<p>This wanton destruction of property was in accordance with
-our instructions, “to <em>sink</em>, <em>burn</em> and <em>destroy</em>” whatever we took
-from the enemy. Such is the war-spirit! <span class="smcap">Sink</span>, <span class="allsmcap">BURN</span> and <span class="allsmcap">DESTROY</span>!
-how it sounds! Yet such are the instructions given by
-Christian (?) nations to their agents in time of war. What Christian
-will not pray for the destruction of such a spirit?</p>
-
-<p>The crew of the <i>Barton</i> we carried into St. Thomas, and placed
-them on board the <i>Jane</i>, excepting a Portuguese and two colored
-men, who shipped among our crew. We also took with us a fine
-black spaniel dog, whom the men called by the name of Paddy.
-This done, we proceeded to watch for fresh victims, on which to
-wreak the vengeance of the war-spirit.</p>
-
-<p>The next sail we met, was an English brig, called the <i>Adventure</i>;
-which had a whole menagerie of monkeys on board. We captured
-and burned her, just as we did the <i>Barton</i>. Her crew were
-also disposed of in the same manner. One of them, an African
-prince, who had acquired a tolerable education in England, and who
-was remarkably polite and sensible, shipped in the <i>Siren</i>. His
-name was Samuel Quaqua.</p>
-
-<p>We now remained at St. Thomas several days, carrying on a
-petty trade with the natives. Our men bought all kinds of fruit,
-gold dust and birds. For these things, we gave them articles of
-clothing, tobacco, knives, &amp;c. For an old vest, I obtained a large
-basket of oranges; for a hand of tobacco, five large cocoanuts: a
-profitable exchange on my side; since, although I drew my tobacco
-of the purser, I fortunately never acquired the habit of using it; a
-loss I never regretted. My cocoanuts were far more gratifying and
-valuable when we got to sea, parched with thirst, and suffering for
-water, than all the tobacco in the ship.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_133"></a>[133]</span></p>
-
-<p>While in this port, I had to throw myself on the protection of
-the officers, to avoid the disposition to abuse which existed in one of
-the petty officers. Several of these gentlemen, who messed together,
-had a large boy to wait on them. He was unacquainted
-with naval usages, and somewhat awkward withal. This led them
-to oppress him: they frequently knocked him round, and even ventured
-to flog him with a rope’s-end. The poor lad used to cry, and
-fret about it, leading quite a miserable life. By some means, it
-happened that I was ordered to take his place; and I determined to
-resist their habit of punishing their servant; so, one day, when the
-gunner came below for his share of the whisky, and found it was
-gone, his messmates having drank the whole, and asked me for his
-whisky, I boldly answered “I know nothing about it.”</p>
-
-<p>At this, he broke out into a furious passion, declaring that if I
-did not find his whisky he would have my heart’s blood.</p>
-
-<p>To this <em>dignified</em> and <em>manly</em> threat I made no reply, but proceeded
-forthwith to the first lieutenant, and laid the facts before
-him. The gunner was sent for, reprimanded, and threatened with
-<ins class="corr" id="tn-133" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'degredation, if ever'">
-degradation, if ever</ins> he either struck or offered to strike me again.
-Of course, I had no further trouble with these would-be tyrants.</p>
-
-<p>The only other difficulty I ever had on board the <i>Siren</i>, was
-with a young midshipman, who was on his first voyage&mdash;who was,
-in sailor’s language, “a real green-horn.” He ordered me, one
-day, to wash his clothes. I refused, saying it was not my duty.
-Putting on the air of a pompous man, he told me it was my duty to
-obey an officer, and I should do it. I persisted in resisting this
-sprig of American aristocracy, and as I heard no more of it, I suppose
-he learned that he was in the wrong.</p>
-
-<p>The effect of my conduct on the gunner was seen a short time
-afterwards, in the following little incident, which will also show the
-reader the nature of the pranks practised in men of war, by the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_134"></a>[134]</span>
-hands. The gunner was a very selfish man, and somehow, when
-we were on short allowance of water, he contrived to keep a keg
-filled, which he kept in a small state-room; and a man might choke
-before he would part with a drop. One night, when my throat was
-parched with thirst, I met the boatswain’s mate, and said, “If I
-were minded to play the rogue, I could hook some water.”</p>
-
-<p>The mate, who was as dry as myself, looked mightily gratified
-at this piece of news, and asked, “Where?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have a key that will fit the lock of the room where the gunner
-keeps his water keg.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said he, “give me the key. I will be the rogue, while
-you keep watch for the old gunner.”</p>
-
-<p>After drinking all we desired, we locked the door and returned
-to our posts, wondering how the gunner would feel when he found
-that some one had been practising the arithmetical rule, called reduction,
-on his water keg.</p>
-
-<p>The next day the offended gunner threw out sundry hints to
-his messmates about his loss, indirectly charging them with the robbery.
-This drew down their wrath upon him, and he was compelled
-to be content with swallowing his choler, and getting a new lock for
-his state-room. In all his rage he never uttered a word to me: he
-had not forgotten my appeal to his superiors.</p>
-
-<p>From St. Thomas we proceeded to Angola, where we staid
-long enough to clean, paint and refit our brig, from stem to stern.
-This was the last port we intended to touch at on the coast of Africa.
-Our next anchorage was to be in Boston harbor&mdash;at least so we
-purposed; but Providence and the British ordered it otherwise.</p>
-
-<p>To accomplish our object, we had to run the gauntlet through
-the host of English cruisers that hovered about, like birds of prey,
-along both sides of the Atlantic coast. This enterprise appeared<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_135"></a>[135]</span>
-so impossible to my mind, while we lay at Angola, and the fear of
-being retaken and hung operated so strongly on my imagination,
-that, more than once, I determined to run away and find a refuge
-among the Africans; but my better judgment prevailed at last, and
-I continued at my post.</p>
-
-<p>Still, I used every possible precaution to escape detection in
-case of our capture. In accordance with the custom of our navy at
-that period, I let my hair grow long behind. To change my looks
-more effectually, instead of tying mine in a cue as the others did, I
-let it hang in ringlets all round my face and neck. This, together
-with the effect of time, caused me to appear quite a different lad
-from what I was, when a boy, on board the <i>Macedonian</i>. I also
-adopted that peculiarity of dress practised by American men-of-war’s-men,
-which consisted in wearing my shirt open at the neck,
-with the corners thrown back. On these corners a device was
-wrought, consisting of the stars of the American flag, with the British
-flag underneath. By these means I hoped to pass for a genuine
-Yankee, without suspicion, in case we should fall into English
-hands.</p>
-
-<p>Having finished our preparations, we left Angola for Boston.
-We reached the island of Ascension in safety, where was a post-office
-of a truly patriarchal character. A box is nailed to a post near
-the shore. Ships that pass send to the box and deposit or take out
-letters, as the case may be. This is probably the cheapest general
-post-office establishment in the world.</p>
-
-<p>We had scarcely left this island before the cry of “Sail ho!”
-arrested every ear. Supposing her to be a large merchantman, we
-made towards her; but a nearer approach made it doubtful whether
-she was an Indiaman or a man of war. The captain judged her to
-be the latter, and tacked ship immediately. He was unwilling to
-place himself in the situation of an American privateer, who, mistaking
-a seventy-four for a merchantman, ran his ship close along<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_136"></a>[136]</span>side,
-and boldly summoned her to haul down her colors. The captain
-of the other ship coolly replied, “I am not in the habit of striking
-my colors.” At the same moment the ports of his ship were
-opened, and disclosed her long ranges of guns, yawning over the
-decks of the privateer. Perceiving his mistake, the privateer, with
-admirable tact and good humor, said, “Well, if you won’t, I will,”
-and pulling down his bunting, surrendered to his more powerful
-foe. To avoid such a mistake as this, our captain made all sail to
-escape the coming stranger, which was now bearing down upon us
-under a heavy pressure of canvas, revealing, as she gained upon
-our little brig, that she bore the formidable character of a seventy-four
-gun ship, under English colors.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, fighting was out of the question. It would be like
-the assault of a dog on an elephant, or a dolphin on a whale. We
-therefore crowded all possible sail, threw our guns, cables, anchors,
-hatches, &amp;c., overboard, to increase her speed. But it soon became
-apparent that we could not escape. The wind blew quite fresh,
-which gave our opponent the advantage: she gained on us very fast.
-We shifted our course, in hopes to baffle her until night, when we
-felt pretty sure of getting out of her way. It was of no use, she
-still gained, until we saw ourselves almost within gun-shot of our
-opponent.</p>
-
-<p>In this extremity, the captain ordered the quartermaster,
-George Watson, to throw the private signals overboard. This was
-a hard task for the bold-hearted fellow. As he pitched them into
-the sea, he said, “Good-bye, brother Yankee;” an expression which,
-in spite of their mortifying situation, forced a smile from the lips of
-the officers.</p>
-
-<p>The sound of a gun now came booming through the air. It
-was a signal for us to heave to, or to look out for consequences.
-What might have been, we learned afterwards, for a division of the
-crew of the seventy-four had orders to sink us if we made the least<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_137"></a>[137]</span>
-show of resistance. Finding it useless to prolong the chase, our
-commander reluctantly ordered the flag to be struck. We then
-hove to, and our foe came rolling down upon us, looking like a huge
-avalanche rushing down the mountain side to crush some poor peasant’s
-dwelling. Her officers stood on her quarter deck, glancing
-unutterable pride, while her captain shouted, “What brig is that?”</p>
-
-<p>“The United States brig <i>Siren</i>,” replied Captain Nicholson.</p>
-
-<p>“This is his Britannic Majesty’s ship <i>Medway</i>!”<a id="FNanchor_22" href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a> he answered.
-“I claim you as my lawful prize.”</p>
-
-<p>Boats were then lowered, the little brig taken from us, and our
-crew transferred to the <i>Medway</i>, stowed away in the cable tier,
-and put in messes of twelve, with an allowance of only eight men’s
-rations to a mess; a regulation which caused us considerable suffering
-from hunger. The sight of the marines on board the <i>Medway</i>
-made me tremble, for my fancy pointed out several of them as having
-formerly belonged to the <i>Macedonian</i>. I really feared I was
-destined to speedily swing at the yard-arm; it was, however, a
-groundless alarm.</p>
-
-<p>This event happened July 12, 1814. Only eight days before,
-we had celebrated the independence of our country, by dancing and
-splicing the main-brace. Now we had a fair prospect of a rigorous
-imprisonment. Such are the changes which constantly occur under
-the rule of the war-spirit.</p>
-
-<p>The day subsequent to our capture, we were marched to the
-quarter deck with our clothes-bags, where we underwent a strict
-search. We were ordered to remove our outside garments for this
-purpose. They expected to find us in possession of large quantities
-of gold dust. What little our crew had purchased was taken
-from them, with a spirit of rapacity altogether beneath the dignity
-of a naval commander.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_138"></a>[138]</span></p>
-
-<p>Our short allowance was a source of much discomfort in this
-our prison-ship. But, in the true spirit of sailors, we made even
-this a subject of coarse jests and pleasant remark. Some would
-sit and paint the luxuries of shore life until our mouths watered
-at the idea of soft tack, fried eggs, sausages, and those other delicacies
-which go to make up a sailor’s idea of a sensual paradise.
-Others would discourse about roast beef, boiled lamb, and caper
-sauce; to which some old weather-beaten tar would answer, “Give
-me the lamb and a knife and fork, and I will cut capers enough.”
-This would draw out peals of laughter, to be followed by various
-yarns of feasts gone by, and of sprees enjoyed on liberty and paydays.
-Thus we beguiled our time; though, with all our laughing,
-we could not laugh away the clamors of our hungry stomachs; and
-when I took my turn of a few minutes on deck, the gift of a piece of
-hard, dry biscuit, afforded me more gustatory delight, than would
-the taste of the richest pound-cake, now that I have an abundance
-of food.</p>
-
-<p>Enduring this evil, we proceeded on our course. When the
-<i>Medway</i> arrived at Simon’s Town, about twenty-one miles from
-the Cape of Good Hope, we met the <i>Denmark</i>, seventy-four, on
-her way to England, with prisoners from Cape Town. The captain
-had hitherto intended to land us at the latter place, but the
-presence of the <i>Denmark</i> led him to change his purpose, and land
-us at Simon’s Town.</p>
-
-<p>The journey from this place to the Cape was one of great suffering
-to our crew. We were received on the beach by a file of
-Irish soldiers. Under their escort we proceeded seven miles,
-through heaps of burning sand, seeing nothing worthy of notice on
-the way, but a number of men busily engaged in cutting up dead
-whales on the sea-shore.</p>
-
-<p>After resting a short time, we recommenced our march,
-guarded by a new detachment of soldiers. Unused to walking as<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_139"></a>[139]</span>
-we were, we began to grow excessively fatigued; and, after wading
-a stream of considerable depth, we were so overcome, that it seemed
-impossible to proceed any farther. We lay down, discouraged and
-wretched, on the sand. The guard brought us some bread, and
-gave half-a-pint of wine to each man. This revived us somewhat.
-We were now placed under a guard of dragoons. They were very
-kind, and urged us to attempt the remaining seven miles. To relieve
-us, they carried our clothes-bags on their horses; and overtaking
-some Dutch farmers, going to the Cape with broom-stuff and
-brush, the officer of the dragoons made them carry the most weary
-among us in their wagons. It is not common for men to desire the
-inside of a prison, but I can assure my readers we did most heartily
-wish ourselves there, on that tedious journey. At last, about nine
-o’clock, P. M., we arrived at Cape Town, having left one of our
-number at Wineburg, through exhaustion, who joined us the next
-day. Stiff, sore, and weary, we hastily threw ourselves on the hard
-boards of our prison, where, without needing to be soothed or
-rocked, we slept profoundly until late the next morning. For a
-description of our prison, with what happened to us there, the
-reader is referred to the succeeding chapter.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_140"></a>[140]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">The next morning we took a survey of our new quarters.
-We found ourselves placed in a large yard, surrounded by
-high walls, and strongly guarded by soldiers. Within
-this inclosure, there was a building, or shed, composed of three
-rooms, neither of which had any floor. Round the sides stood three
-benches or stages, one above the other, to serve for berths. On
-these we spread our hammocks and <ins class="corr" id="tn-140" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'bed-clothes, makng'">
-bed-clothes, making</ins> them tolerably
-comfortable places to sleep in. A few of the men preferred
-to sling their hammocks, as they did at sea. Here, also, we used to
-eat, unless, as was our frequent practice, we did so in the open air.</p>
-
-<p>Our officers had been sent thirty miles inland, so that we had
-lost the natural exactors of discipline among seamen. To remedy
-this deficiency, our first step was to adopt a set of regulations in respect
-to order, cleanliness, &amp;c., and to appoint certain of our number
-to enforce them.</p>
-
-<p>We experienced some unpleasantness, at first, from the insolence
-of some of the sergeants commanding the prison guard. Most
-of these petty officers were very friendly and kind, but two or three
-of them manifested a surly, tyrannical temper, annoying us in many
-little things, enough to embitter our enjoyment, while they were on
-duty. This petty despotism we soon cured, by returning their
-abuse in a rather provoking kind of coin. We used to plague them
-by causing a long delay when the hour arrived for them to be relieved.
-They were required to muster us every morning, that we
-might be counted before the new guard took us in charge. On
-those occasions some would purposely absent themselves; others
-were sent to find the absentees; these, in their turn, would hide
-themselves, and require to be sought by others. This was excess<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_141"></a>[141]</span>ively
-vexatious to the soldiers, and as it occurred only when a tyrannical
-sergeant was on guard, they soon understood its meaning.
-The plan was successful, and we thus got rid of one source of discomfort.</p>
-
-<p>Our next difficulty was with the old Dutchman, named Badiem,
-who furnished our prison with provisions. He had already learned
-the difficulty of cheating a Yankee; for the Americans who were carried
-away in the <i>Denmark</i> had been in this same prison, and had
-taught the old man that they were rougher customers than the
-Frenchmen who had preceded them. We gave him another lesson.</p>
-
-<p>He undertook to wrong us and benefit himself by furnishing a
-very inferior article of bread. After counselling among ourselves,
-we took the following plan to bring him to his senses:</p>
-
-<p>We were visited every day by a superior officer, called the officer
-of the day. He was a kind old man, who had seen service in the
-war of the revolution, and was at the battle of Bunker Hill. He
-had a profound respect for the American character, and could not
-speak of that great action without tears. One day a friendly sergeant
-being on duty, we gave him a piece of the old Dutchman’s
-bread, complaining bitterly of its quality. When the old officer
-came round as usual, on a fine, dashing charger, and asked his customary
-question of “All right?” our friend the sergeant replied,
-“No, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“What is the matter?” asked the venerable old gentleman.</p>
-
-<p>“The prisoners complain of their bread, sir,” said the sergeant.</p>
-
-<p>“Let me see it,” answered the general. The sergeant gave him
-a small piece. He examined it, wrapped it up carefully in some
-paper, clapped the spurs to his horse, and rode off. The next day,
-we had better bread than ever before, and an order came for a man
-from each room to go with the sentry to the town every morning, to
-examine our daily provision; and, if not what it should be, to reject
-it. This completely upset the golden visions of the old Dutchman.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_142"></a>[142]</span>
-With much choler he exclaimed, “I had rather have one tousand
-Frenchmen, than one hundred Yankees.”</p>
-
-<p>We could not now complain of our fare. We had an abundance
-of beef and mutton, beside a full allowance of bread, &amp;c. The
-beef, to be sure, was poor, lean stuff, but the mutton was excellent.
-The sheep at the Cape have a peculiarity, which may cause the
-reader to smile. They have enormously large, flat tails, weighing
-from twelve to twenty pounds. These are regularly sold by the
-pound for purposes of cookery. Should any one treat this statement
-as a forecastle yarn, I refer him to the descriptions of these
-sheep, given by travellers and naturalists.<a id="FNanchor_23" href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a></p>
-
-<p>Besides our prison allowance, we had opportunity to purchase
-as many little luxuries and niceties as our slender finances would
-permit. These were furnished by a slave, who was the property of
-the old Dutchman, and who was so far a favorite as to be indulged
-with two wives, and the privilege of selling sundry small articles to
-the prisoners. This sable polygamist furnished us with coffee,
-made from burnt barley, for a <em>doublegee</em> (an English penny)<a id="FNanchor_24" href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a> per
-pint; the same sum would purchase a sausage, a piece of fish, or a
-glass of rum. On equally reasonable terms, he furnished us with
-blackberries, oranges, &amp;c. Our men, who, by the way had eaten
-fruit in every quarter of the globe, and were therefore competent
-judges, pronounced the latter the best in the world. The berries afforded
-me a rich treat at Christmas.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_143"></a>[143]</span></p>
-
-<p>To obtain means for the purchase of these dainties, our men
-braided hats, wrought at mechanical employments, or at such pursuits
-as their respective tastes and capacities suggested. These occupations
-served to beguile our confinement of much of its tediousness.</p>
-
-<p>Still, we had many vacant, listless hours. To fill them, we resorted
-to the demoralizing practice of gambling. A game with
-balls, called shake-bag, loo, venture, all-fours, &amp;c. occupied our evening
-hours, and sometimes the whole night. It was not uncommon for
-the game to be protracted beyond the midnight hour of Saturday,
-into the sacred moments of the holy Sabbath. On one of these guilty
-mornings, some of us, on retiring to a shed, found the dead body of
-a black slave, hanging by the rope, with which, in a moment of unpardonable
-despair, he had committed the horrid crime of suicide.
-The hour, the scene, the place, our recent guilty profanation of
-God’s holy day, conspired to fill many of us with profound dread.
-In my own mind it led to a few transient purposes of amendment.
-Alas! when the bright sun arose, these purposes had vanished. The
-influence of vice triumphed. I grew more and more hardened in
-wickedness.</p>
-
-<p>Cape Town contained a large slave population. These poor
-wretches had been extremely degraded under the rule of the Dutch.
-It was said that their condition had been essentially improved since
-the conquest of the place by the English. Still, as the suicide just
-mentioned demonstrated, slavery was a bitter draught. The British
-have done wisely since then in granting freedom to the slaves in
-all their colonies. May the whole world imitate the noble example!</p>
-
-<p>We were subjected to frequent and violent gales of wind while
-here. The approach of these storms was always faithfully proclaimed
-by the mountain that towered up behind us; a large white
-cloud, resting on its summit, like a tablecloth, was a certain indication
-of the elemental warfare. Whenever this phenomenon ap<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_144"></a>[144]</span>peared,
-our men used to remark, “Look out for a blow, the cloth is
-beginning to spread.” Very soon the vessels in the bay could be
-seen striking their top-gallant masts and yards, and sometimes even
-housing their top-masts. In a few minutes the ocean would give
-signs of the coming commotion; the waves became crested with
-clouds of foam, and the spirit of the storm was seen careering in
-triumph over the liquid mountains of the angry deep.</p>
-
-<p>Besides Table mountain, there was another near it, called the
-Lion’s Rump, from its similarity to that noble animal in a sitting
-posture. On the summit of this mountain was a telegraph, which
-informed us, in common with the people of the Cape, of the approach
-of shipping to the harbor.</p>
-
-<p>At the town, the British had a hospital for the accommodation
-of their army and navy. The advantages of this institution
-were humanely and properly offered to us, whenever we
-were sick. Happening to be quite unwell one day, my shipmates
-advised me to go thither. Now, on board the <i>Siren</i>, when in
-a similar state, the surgeon had administered an ounce of Glauber
-salts. The dose caused such nausea, that from that time I held salts
-in profound abhorrence. When the hospital was suggested to me,
-I associated it with the idea of salts, and, shuddering, remarked
-that “I would go if I thought they would not give me salts.” My
-shipmates all said they thought I should not have salts prescribed:
-so, under the guard of a sentry, I sallied forth to the hospital.
-“Well, my boy,” said the doctor, “what’s the matter with you?”</p>
-
-<p>With many wry faces, I told him my symptoms; when, to my
-inconceivable mortification and disgust, he spoke to a sort of lob-lolly
-boy, who waited upon him, and said, “Doctor Jack! bring this
-boy six ounces of salts.”</p>
-
-<p>This was intolerable. One ounce had sickened me for months
-at the bare mention of salts, and now I was to swallow six! It
-seemed impossible. The remedy was worse than the disease. I<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_145"></a>[145]</span>
-wished myself back at my quarters. This was, however, in vain,
-unless I took a dangerous leap from the window. I must submit.
-The salts were brought, but they were not so bad, either in quality
-or quantity, as my dose in the <i>Siren</i>. The reason I found to consist
-in the fact, that they were Epsom instead of Glauber, and that the
-six ounces included the weight of the water in which they were dissolved.
-So well was I pleased with my visit to the hospital, and
-especially with the privilege afforded me of walking about the
-streets of Cape Town, that I afterwards feigned illness to gain another
-admission. I was willing to take the salts for the sake of the
-liberty of jaunting about the streets. Of the sin of lying I thought
-nothing. I was a sailor, caring little for aught but present gratification.
-The beauty of truth I had never seen; the hatefulness of a
-lie I had never learned. Most gratefully do I acknowledge that
-Divine goodness, which has since effectually taught me both the one
-and the other.</p>
-
-<p>At Cape Town there was a small prison, called the “Trunk.”
-To this place those of our number, who were disorderly, were sent,
-to be closely confined, on no other diet than bread and water, for as
-many days as the commandant might designate. We always
-quietly permitted any offender among us to be sent thither without
-resistance: but when, on one occasion, an attempt was made to confine
-two of our shipmates unjustly, we gave them a demonstration,
-which saved us afterwards from any similar attempt.</p>
-
-<p>Two of our men had hung out some clothes, they had just
-washed, in our yard, near their own shed. Now, it happened that
-the doctor to the military stationed at the Cape, had an entrance to
-his office through our yard. The clothes were undesignedly hung
-across his path, compelling him either to stoop a little in passing, or
-to ask their removal. He was too proud to adopt either of these
-peaceful methods, but, with manifest spitefulness, he took out his
-knife and cut the line, so that the clothes fell into the dirt. The
-owners, seeing their wet clothing in this condition, broke out into<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_146"></a>[146]</span>
-passionate inquiries after the offender. “It was the English doctor,”
-replied one of our shipmates, who had witnessed the whole affair.
-This brought forth a volley of sailors’ oaths from the offended
-parties. The enraged doctor overheard their wrathful ebullitions,
-and, without further ceremony, ordered the two men to be
-carried to the “Trunk.”</p>
-
-<p>Here, then, was a manifest case of injustice. We resolved not
-to submit to it, let the consequences be what they might. When the
-sergeant came in for the doctor’s victims, we all turned out in a
-body, declaring we would all go to the “Trunk” together. The sergeant,
-seeing us in this state of rebellion, called out the whole guard,
-and ordered them to load and fire upon us. We were not however so
-easily scared. We shouted, “Fire away! You will have but one fire,
-and then it will be our turn.” At the same time we picked up all the
-broken glass, sticks, stones, &amp;c., which were within our reach, and
-stood waiting for their firing as the signal for a general <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">mêlée</i>. The
-sergeant, seeing our resolution, and wisely considering that our superiority
-in numbers, might secure us a victory over the handful
-composing his guard, ordered the soldiers to retire. We never heard
-any more of the little doctor’s indignation: it probably evaporated,
-like the moisture from the clothes his petty indignation had thrown
-to the ground. How insignificant such acts appear, in men professing
-to be gentlemen!</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after this event, we were thrown into confusion and
-temporary excitement, by the approach of a large party to our
-prison, at midnight, attended by a band of music. We turned out
-and rushed to the gate of our yard. The guard turned out likewise,
-trembling under the impression that our countrymen had captured
-the town and were coming to give us our liberty. Their fears and
-our wonder were quieted, however, by a speedy discovery of the true
-character of this midnight party. It was a Dutch wedding, coming
-to the house of the old Dutchman, our caterer; the entrance to which
-being in our yard, the party had to pass directly through our terri<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_147"></a>[147]</span>tories;
-which they did, their band playing the tune of “A free and
-accepted Mason.”</p>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding we were in tolerably comfortable circumstances,
-our confinement soon became exceedingly irksome. We
-pined for freedom; we longed to get once more where the “old
-gridiron” floated in fearless triumph. A report of the burning of
-Washington by the British added not a little to our desire. We began
-to talk of home. This led to other suggestions; these to the
-formation of plans <ins class="corr" id="tn-147" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'for our ecsape'">
-for our escape</ins>. We at length concerted a measure,
-which was, to break from the prison in the night, disarm and
-confine the guard, help ourselves to boats, and cut out some large
-ship, in which we might make our escape to America. The success
-of this plot, however, was never tested; for, reaching the ears of the
-commander, the guards were strengthened; the light dragoons ordered
-out to patrol the harbor; and such other preventive measures
-adopted, as cut off all hope of forcible escape. Our only remedy
-for this disappointment, was submission, and boasting of what we
-would have done, had we got into the strife for liberty.</p>
-
-<p>As the period of our imprisonment drew towards a close, we
-were informed that the Rev. George Thom, <ins class="corr" id="tn-147a" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'a mssionary, was'">
-a missionary, was</ins> desirous to come and preach to us. Some of our men objected, because,
-they said, he would preach about his king, and they had no desire
-to hear anything about kings. Others said, “Let him come; we will
-hear him with attention, and if we don’t like him we can afterwards
-stay away. At any rate, don’t let us abuse him; but rather show
-him that Americans know what is good behavior.”</p>
-
-<p>This reply shows the true spirit of the mass of seamen in respect
-to religion; for though they care little about personal piety,
-they will not, usually, unless intoxicated, insult a minister. This
-was once shown in the experience of the eccentric Rowland Hill;
-when a mob threatened the old gentleman with mischief, some sailors
-present rallied round him, threatening vengeance on any who
-dared to insult the preacher.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_148"></a>[148]</span></p>
-
-<p>Accordingly, we sent our respects to Mr. Thom, inviting him
-to favor us with a visit. We then cleaned and fitted up one room
-with benches. The following Sabbath he came. His preaching
-was earnest, simple and interesting. Instead of discoursing about
-kings, as some had predicted, the only king about whom he
-preached, was the King of heaven. We invited him to come again.
-He accepted the invitation, and our meetings soon began to be
-profitable and interesting. We had singing, for several of our
-men were tolerable singers, and they were aided by the presence of
-some pious soldiers from the garrison, and occasionally by Mrs.
-Thom, the amiable lady of our excellent preacher. Our officers,
-too, frequently came from their residence, and were pleased to see
-the good order and happiness apparent on these occasions. I assure
-my readers, that the most delightful moments of our imprisonment
-were those we spent in singing some sweet hymn, in the
-good old-fashioned tunes of <em>Bridgewater</em>, <em>Russia</em>, <em>Wells</em>, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>Among the texts used by Mr. Thom, I remember the following:
-“Turn ye to the strong-hold, ye prisoners of hope;” Zech.
-ix. 12. “Behold, I stand at the door and knock,” &amp;c.; Rev. iii.
-20. “And yet there is room;” Luke xiv. 22. It was really pleasing
-to hear the various remarks made by our men, after listening
-to faithful discourses from these and similar texts. One would
-remark, “He hit me a clew.” To this another would reply, “He
-shot away my colors.” A third would add, “He shot away my
-rigging;” while a fourth would say, “He gave me a shot;” and
-a fifth, “He gave me a broadside.” Thus, in their rough way,
-did they express the impressions made on their minds by the discourse.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Thom was a faithful servant of his Master, the Lord
-Jesus Christ. He did not rest satisfied with these public efforts,
-but, during the week, he visited us for the purpose of serious conversation.
-Several of us were really under strong conviction, and
-would confess, at these inquiry meetings, and to each other as we<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_149"></a>[149]</span>
-paced the yard, how often we had sinned, even cursing our Maker
-when on the yard at night, amid the roaring of the storm, the bellowing
-of the thunder, and the angry flashing of the lightning. A
-happy practical effect followed. Gambling ceased, cards and
-shake-bag lost their charms. The time was spent in reading useful
-books. Bibles and religious books were given or loaned to us.
-Among these were Baxter’s <cite>Call</cite>, Doddridge’s <cite>Rise and Progress
-of Religion</cite>, &amp;c. To some extent we were altered men. Had we
-remained much longer under these gracious influences, most of us,
-I think, would have become experimental Christians. As it was,
-the seed was not wholly wasted. Impressions were made, which,
-no doubt, have, in many cases, yielded rich fruit long before this.</p>
-
-<p>My own mind was strongly wrought upon. A singular
-dream added to my seriousness. In my dream, I saw myself
-drowning, while a fierce-looking soldier was pointing his loaded
-musket at my head. Thus death threatened me from two sources.
-In this extremity my anguish was very great. All my gracious
-opportunities passed before me, but now it seemed too late for salvation.
-“Oh,” thought I in my sleep, “what would I give, if this
-were only a dream! How faithfully would I serve the Lord when
-I awoke.” Just at that moment I did awake, scarcely able to convince
-myself that the ideal scene was not an awful reality. That
-day I eagerly sought the missionary, and sat with serious delight
-listening to his instructions. Still I did not give myself up to the
-service of Christ. So difficult was it for me to make the requisite
-sacrifice of my beloved sins.</p>
-
-<p>Just at this interesting crisis, a glad report of peace between
-England and America reached our prison. With joyful faces we
-assembled round the good man, when he came that day, to inquire
-if it was really so. While he assured us of its truth, he mildly asked
-“if it was peace with Heaven;” assuring us that it was a matter of
-the greatest importance for us to be at peace with God.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_150"></a>[150]</span></p>
-
-<p>As a memento of our esteem for Mr. Thom, we made him several
-little presents. One of them was a hat made from a <em>bullock’s
-horn</em>. The horn was peeled into narrow slips, these were scraped,
-split, and braided like straw, and then sewed together. We also
-made him a model of a ship, fully rigged from stem to stern. The
-missionary received these marks of our regard with evident pleasure;
-and, no doubt, when looking upon them afterwards, offered
-many a prayer for the salvation of the prisoners, who were, for
-many weeks, the subjects of his anxiety and labors. Blessings rest
-on him, if he yet lives! Peace to his ashes, if he slumbers among
-the dead!</p>
-
-<p>Great was the joy of my companions, when the news reached
-us that we were to embark shortly, in the <i>Cumberland</i>, seventy-four,
-for England. Little was now said or done, except what related
-to our departure. With strange, yet common perversity of
-conduct, serious matters were laid aside for the one absorbing
-thought, “We shall soon be free!” Thus, an event which should
-have given birth to gratitude and religious service, only served for
-an occasion of further neglect and unthankfulness. How
-strangely wicked is the human heart!</p>
-
-<p>For myself, the tidings filled me with fear. Directly to
-America I would have gladly gone; but to be carried to England,
-in one of her ships of war, was like going to certain death. How
-was it possible for me to escape detection? How could I avoid
-meeting with some old <i>Macedonians</i>, who would, of course, recognise
-and betray me? These questions had resolved me to volunteer
-to remain at the Cape, a short time before, when some of our
-number were sent to England. Now, they tortured me beyond endurance.
-I felt like an escaped criminal with the officers of justice
-at his heels. Death at the yard-arm haunted me day and night,
-like the fancied ghost of a murdered man, staring ghastly at the
-window of his murderer. No one can imagine my uneasiness, unless
-he has been placed in a similar situation. I made many prom<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_151"></a>[151]</span>ises
-to God that if he would carry me in safety to America, I would
-cease to be a swearer, and would most punctually attend his house
-every Sabbath. These things constituted my highest ideas of human
-duty at that time; but even these promises, like those made
-during the heat of the battle in the <i>Macedonian</i>, were made to be
-broken.</p>
-
-<p>After a little delay, we were conveyed on board the <i>Cumberland</i>,
-where we soon heard the well-known summons of “All hands
-up anchor, ahoy!” A cloud of canvas dropped from her gigantic
-yards; the sportive breeze came obedient to our wish; and the huge
-form of the <i>Cumberland</i>, accompanied by a large convoy of merchant
-vessels, was borne rapidly along upon the yielding waves.
-Cape Town, Table Mountain, the Lion’s Rump, and our prison-yard,
-were soon left far behind, leaving no traces of their existence
-on the distant horizon; they were to be known to us hereafter only
-among the images of the brain&mdash;as recollections, not as realities.
-We had spent eight months in the prison of Cape Town.</p>
-
-<p>Our treatment in this ship was superior to what we received
-in the <i>Medway</i>. Instead of the cable tier, we had berths on the
-upper gun deck, and our allowance of food was sufficient for our
-wants.</p>
-
-<p>Arriving at St. Helena, we remained a few days in port. This
-rough, rock-bound island had not yet received its future prisoner,
-the emperor of France. Here we were removed from the <i>Cumberland</i>.
-Twenty-four of us were sent on board the <i>Grampus</i>, of fifty
-guns, the rest were sent home in our old conqueror, the <i>Medway</i>;
-my lot being cast among the former.</p>
-
-<p>This transfer to the <i>Grampus</i> greatly alarmed me; since the
-more men I saw, the greater, of course, was my chance of detection.
-I had already escaped being known on board of two seventy-fours;
-but I could not promise myself the same impunity
-much longer. However, as I saw no one whose face was familiar,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_152"></a>[152]</span>
-when I went on board, I felt a little more easy. But that night,
-I had occasion for great trepidation and alarm. About nine
-o’clock, I heard the order from an officer, of “Pass the word for
-the boy Leech.” This was followed by several voices hallooing,
-“Boy Leech! boy Leech!” My heart beat like a trip-hammer
-against my bosom, and a cold sweat crept over my whole
-body. My shipmates said they meant me; but I would not
-reply. After a few moments, I breathed more freely, and the fear
-of death passed away. I heard some one saying, “Your master
-wants you;” which convinced me that there was a “boy Leech”
-among the crew of the <i>Grampus</i>, as well as another boy Leech
-among the American prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>On our passage, we made a strange sail. Coming up to her,
-to our infinite satisfaction we beheld the stars and stripes at her
-mast-head. “Brother Jonathan has come to town,” said one of our
-men. “He is a most welcome visitor,” the rest replied; for indeed
-“the old gridiron” never looked so pleasant as it did then. This
-meeting confirmed us in the report of peace between the two nations.
-This was as gratifying to the crew of the <i>Grampus</i> as to
-us; for they had recently heard that the war with France was
-ended, and they were all hoping to get discharged. This expectation
-was defeated, however, by intelligence from some passing ship,
-that Napoleon was at Paris again, with a force of sixty thousand
-men.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing could exceed the joy of the officers, and the vexation
-of the crew, at this piece of information. The former dreaded a
-peace, because it would place many of them on half-pay; while the
-chances of war inspired them with hopes of promotion; hence they
-ran alongside almost every ship in the fleet, shouting, “Have you
-heard the news? Bonaparte has got to Paris with sixty thousand
-men!” Really, some of them seemed crazy with joy at the idea of
-protracted war. Not so, however, the seamen; they longed for
-peace, since war only brought them hard usage, wounds and death.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_153"></a>[153]</span>
-While, therefore, the officers were rejoicing, they were muttering
-curses and oaths, wishing Bonaparte and his army at perdition.
-Nor was it strange that they felt thus; for the discipline on board
-the <i>Grampus</i> was excessively severe. They were constantly flogging
-in the most harsh and cruel manner. The <i>Sirens</i> were astonished
-at what they saw; for on board our brig, we seldom saw
-more than a dozen lashes inflicted at one time, and that not very
-often.</p>
-
-<p>At last we came in sight of the white cliffs of old England.
-To avoid suspicion, I appeared much interested in everything I
-saw on the coast, and asked the men all those questions which are
-natural to a stranger, when he sees a new country for the first time.
-These inquiries they answered with the utmost good humor; for an
-Englishman is proud of his country, notwithstanding he may find
-hard usage from her hands.</p>
-
-<p>My American friends have frequently asked if my language
-did not excite suspicion that I was English. It never did to my
-knowledge; indeed, so free was I from English provincialisms, that
-it was often remarked to me, that I “needed no protection;” meaning,
-that I should be taken for a Yankee, without offering proof.</p>
-
-<p>With all this in my favor, I could not behold myself approaching
-my native soil, without many misgivings. To a man who
-knows a halter is hanging over his head, everything furnishes cause
-for alarm; a piercing look, a whisper, or the sudden mention of his
-name, is a cause of disquietude, sufficient to stir his inmost soul.
-Captain Nicholson gave me no little uneasiness, by sending for me
-one day, just before we arrived in port, to make some inquiries
-about Mr. Crowninshield, of Salem, Mass. Luckily, I could say
-I had seen him; beyond that, I could give no further information.
-He supposed me to be a native of Salem, while I was quaking,
-through a fearful expectation of being found nearly as ignorant
-of that city, as I had been, on another occasion, of the city of Philadelphia.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_154"></a>[154]</span></p>
-
-<p>At length we reached Spithead, and were removed to an old
-prison-ship, called the <i>Puissant</i>, which had once belonged to the
-French. Here we were treated with great lenity; we were even
-allowed liberty to go on shore. Had I dared, I would have run
-away; the dread of the halter restrained me! I did not even venture
-to write, lest my mother should be tempted to visit me, or
-even to write; since even a letter from any place in England, might
-awaken suspicion concerning my true character.<a id="FNanchor_25" href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a></p>
-
-<p>After a stay of several weeks in the old <i>Puissant</i>, orders came
-for our transfer to the <i>Rover</i>, a gun-brig, which had orders to carry
-us to Plymouth. Here was a double risk again before me. I had
-to risk being known by the crew of the <i>Rover</i>, and by the many
-persons who had known me at Plymouth. However, the good
-hand of Providence was with me to preserve me. We reached our
-port in safety, where, to our great delight, we heard that the <i>Woodrop
-Simms</i>, of Philadelphia, was to be the Cartel to convey us to
-America.</p>
-
-<p>Before we were allowed to tread her decks, however, we had to
-spend two or three days on board the <i>Royal Sovereign</i>, of one hundred<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_155"></a>[155]</span>
-and ten guns, because the <i>Woodrop Simms</i> was not quite
-ready to receive us. Here I was exposed to the gaze of eight hundred
-men; but none of them knew me. Indeed, this was my most
-hazardous situation; for the <i>Sovereign</i> and <i>Macedonian</i> had sailed
-in company before the capture of the latter. Whenever any of her
-men came near our quarters, I endeavored to look cross-eyed, or
-closed one eye so as to appear partially blind; and in various other
-ways altered my appearance, so that even an old shipmate would
-have been puzzled to recognise me at first.</p>
-
-<p>At last, the grateful news reached us that the Cartel was ready.
-We went on board with great gaiety, where we met our shipmates
-who had left the Cape before us. They had been confined in the
-celebrated Dartmoor prison, with a number of other prisoners,
-where they had met with rather rough treatment and rougher fare.
-They were present at what they called the Massacre. Several of
-the prisoners were detected in an effort to escape. To strike terror
-into the poor victims, Captain Shortland ordered his men to fire
-in upon them. Quite a number were killed, and more wounded,
-by this cold-blooded act; the rest sought the shelter of the prison
-walls. Several Americans suffered in this wanton assault. Our
-meeting at this juncture was a source of mutual gratulation.</p>
-
-<p>Our ship was now surrounded with boats containing provisions
-of all descriptions. To our surprise, the Dartmoor men
-bought freely of everything. Where they obtained their money,
-we could not imagine. We learned afterwards that their stock
-consisted of counterfeit coins, manufactured by the prisoners! It
-was well for them that our ship put to sea before John Bull’s peace
-officers received information of the fraud. What a school for every
-species of vice is opened by war! The corruptions and vices occasioned
-by the operation of this system, are beyond the power of the
-imagination to conceive.</p>
-
-<p>My feelings were peculiar as I beheld my native land receding
-from my vision. I was happy, and yet sad. Happy, because I<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_156"></a>[156]</span>
-was now safe; sad, because I was again leaving the soil which held
-my mother and my friends. On the whole, my joyous feelings
-prevailed.</p>
-
-<p>A few days out, we were hailed by an English frigate. She
-sent a boat alongside to make some inquiries, and left us to pursue
-our way in peace. We were all in good spirits; our men being
-divided into watches to assist the crew of the ship; our officers all
-snugly quartered in the cabin, and myself appointed to assist the
-steward; an office quite agreeable to one who had lived on prisoners’
-fare more than a year,<a id="FNanchor_26" href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> because it brought me a few of the
-spare luxuries from the officers’ table.</p>
-
-<p>One morning, shortly after the English frigate had boarded us,
-Captain Nicholson asked me something about Salem. I smiled.
-He inquired why I laughed. “Sir,” said I, “Salem is not my native
-place by considerable.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?” asked the captain, looking somewhat
-puzzled at my manner of treating the subject.</p>
-
-<p>I then unfolded the secret of my having been one of the crew
-captured in the <i>Macedonian</i>. They seemed amazed at the risks I
-had encountered since the capture of the <i>Siren</i>, and congratulated
-me very warmly on my really hair-breadth escape from the halter.
-It was a fortunate escape indeed, for which I can never be sufficiently
-thankful to that All-seeing Eye, that watched for my
-safety in the moment of peril.</p>
-
-<p>During this voyage, a great deal was said about quitting the
-seas and settling down in quietness ashore. One of our shipmates,
-named William Carpenter, who belonged to Rhode Island, had a
-particular enthusiasm in favor of farming. He promised to take
-me with him, where I could learn the art of cultivating the soil.
-Many of us made strong resolutions to embark in some such enterprise.
-The pleasures of agriculture were sung and praised<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_157"></a>[157]</span>
-among us in so ardent a manner, that he must have been incredulous
-indeed, who could have doubted, for a moment, the certainty
-of quite a number of our hands becoming farmers, whenever we
-should gain the land.</p>
-
-<p>One night we lay in our hammocks, talking with great earnestness
-about our favorite scheme, the wind blowing quite freshly on
-deck. Said one, “If I ever get home, you won’t catch me on board
-of a ship again.” “Yes,” said another; “farmers live well, at
-any rate. They are not put on allowance, but have enough to eat:
-if they work hard all day, they can turn in at night; and if it blows
-hard, the house won’t rock much, and there’s no sails to reef.”
-While this and similar conversation was going on, the wind was
-blowing harder and harder: from occasional heavy puffs, it at last
-grew to be a tremendous gale. Hearing so much wind, though
-there were hands enough on deck to manage the ship, some of us
-got up to assist if we were needed. It was now blowing most fearfully;
-the wild howling and whistling among the rigging, the wilder
-roar of the angry sea, the hallooing of the captain, and the impenetrable
-darkness which lent its horrors to the scene, were appalling
-even to a sailor’s breast. Just as I stepped upon deck she shipped
-a heavy sea, which drenched me to the skin. Presently, we heard
-the crash of falling timbers, and away went a top-mast, and a yard
-in the slings. There were now so many men on deck that we were
-in each other’s way; some of us went below and turned in, with the
-full expectation that our ship would founder before morning; and
-thinking it would be as well to go down in our hammocks as on
-deck.</p>
-
-<p>While this state of gloomy foreboding continued, some of my
-shipmates manifested great alarm about eternity. They prayed
-aloud, in deep distress. Others only cursed, and said, as if in bravado,
-“We are all going to hell together.” For my own part I
-kept repeating the Lord’s prayer, and renewing those promises so
-often made in the moment of apparent destruction.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_158"></a>[158]</span></p>
-
-<p>At length the day dawned, revealing the sad havoc made by
-the winds, of our masts and rigging. We also saw a number of
-those dwellers on the ocean, called Mother Carey’s chickens. Our
-shattered aspect reminded me of the <i>Macedonian</i> after the battle,
-excepting that we had no wounded and dead about us now.
-Captain Jones, who had not left the deck a moment during the
-night, declared that, though he had been twenty-five years at sea,
-he had never witnessed such a gale before. Our ship was nearly
-new, and an excellent sea-boat, or she would have shared the fate
-of many a ship in that terrible gale. As the wind abated with the
-approach of day, we repaired our damages and proceeded on our
-voyage, frequently passing vessels which had suffered as severely
-as ourselves. This gale was on the 9th and 10th days of August,
-1815. Probably many, both sailors and landsmen, will recollect
-this and the September gale of that year, which occasioned such
-destruction of life and shipping.</p>
-
-<p>Sailors are superstitious. Our men attributed this mishap to
-the presence of some Jonah in the ship. The man they pitched
-upon, as the probable offender, was an old sea-captain, who had
-been cast away several times. That he had done some fearful
-deed, was a matter of undoubted truth among them; but not being
-so resolute as the mariners of Tarshish, they did not cast him into
-the sea; neither did this liberality on their part cost us our lives,
-for, after several days of pleasant weather, we one morning found
-ourselves safely anchored at the quarantine ground, near the city
-of New York.</p>
-
-<p>The crew of the <i>Siren</i> having obtained leave to go on shore,
-full of my good purposes to lead a steady life on the land, I hurried
-directly to Broadway, to inquire for my former employer, the
-kind-hearted boot-maker. To my disappointment, he had gone
-to Philadelphia; so that I returned on board, somewhat chagrined
-at the failure of my plan.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_159"></a>[159]</span></p>
-
-<p>The next morning we were conveyed, in a large sail-boat, on
-board the <i>Tom Bowling</i>, an hermaphrodite brig. Here I was congratulated
-by the old quartermaster, Lewis Deal, who was with
-me when we narrowly escaped capture at the mouth of Salem harbor,
-while on a fishing excursion. He said he had felt much anxiety
-for my safety all the voyage, especially as it was reported that
-my former captain had made strict search for the <i>Macedonians</i>
-among all the American prisoners who were carried to England.
-The kind-hearted old man wept tears of gladness at my safe return.</p>
-
-<p>While we staid in the <i>Tom Bowling</i>, the September gale, mentioned
-above, took place. We were right glad, as it broke its fury
-over our anchorage in vain, to think we were so safely housed in a
-good harbor, instead of being exposed to its wrath on the deep.
-Many a brave heart perished in that memorable storm.</p>
-
-<p>The two years having expired for which we shipped, we were
-paid off. With the sum of one hundred dollars, I hurried on shore
-and deposited my funds in the hands of my landlord, at a sailor’s
-boarding-house. Now followed a life of dissipation and folly.
-The grave resolutions, passed at sea, to settle down as steady
-farmers, vanished into air. Drinking, swearing, gambling, going
-to the theatre, and other kindred vices, took up all our time as long
-as our money lasted. Our religious vows were equally slighted
-and forgotten: instead of being better, we became worse than ever.
-We felt as if New York belonged to us, and that we were really
-the happiest, jolliest fellows in the world.</p>
-
-<p>For my own part, I fell deeper into wickedness than ever before:
-drinking, swearing, and gambling as I had never done on
-any former occasion. How could it be otherwise? Who cared
-for the sailor then? Not one. He was left to his own depraved
-heart’s promptings. Bethels and religious boarding-houses did
-not then throw their genial influences round his path, to charm his
-footsteps to the shrines of virtue and religion. Near the very spot<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_160"></a>[160]</span>
-where the Bethel church now stands in New York, I have frequently
-gambled for hours, with a bottle of spirits on the table,
-uncaring and uncared for by any human being. Thrice blessed
-be the man who first established Bethels and temperance boarding-houses!
-They are the sailor’s life-boats, which snatch him from
-the gory jaws of the unprincipled landsharks who fatten on his
-ruin.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes, in a sober moment, I thought I would break away
-from this wicked mode of life. I even engaged myself to a boot-maker,
-to complete my knowledge of his business; but, the dread of
-the confinement to the shoe-bench, which my riotous fancy painted
-as being worse than a prison, drove me from my purpose, and left
-me still among my shipmates.</p>
-
-<p>At last my landlord told me my money was all expended, and
-that I must look out for something to do. My shipmates were in
-a similar dilemma, their number decreasing every day, as one after
-another shipped in the various merchant vessels preparing for sea.
-Alas! for our farmers in perspective. Their dreams of ploughing
-the land evaporated, leaving them what they were before, and what
-most of them remained until death, the ploughmen of the ocean.
-My landlord’s gentle hint put a stop to my excesses, for the very
-sufficient reason that it was attended with a protest on my further
-checks for funds. For a while, I found employment in loading
-and unloading ships, and in assisting to fit them for sea. But this
-proving an uncertain employment, I was induced to join a number
-of my fellow-boarders in going to the rendezvous of the United
-States brig <i>Boxer</i>. Here we shipped for two years more. I was
-then eighteen years of age, and was rated as an ordinary seaman,
-with ten dollars per month wages. Behold me then, dear reader,
-once more on board a man of war, in spite of all the dangers I had
-escaped, and the promises I had made to risk myself no more on
-the ocean! The next chapter will unfold the events which transpired
-while I sailed in the <i>Boxer</i>.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_161"></a>[161]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">On shipping in the <i>Boxer</i>, I received three months’ advance,
-which, excepting a small sum expended for clothing, fell
-into the hands of my rapacious landlord. How much this
-gentleman contrived to filch from me, it is not in my power to say;
-but that he was well paid, I have no doubt. He had my hundred
-dollars, my advance, all I earned for working on the wharves, and
-nine dollars beside, which I obtained from the purser. All this,
-according to his account, I spent in a few weeks, with the exception
-of a very small sum laid out for clothing. As I had no means
-of proving his statements false, there was no alternative but submission,
-and a return to a life of toil and danger, to earn a fresh
-supply.</p>
-
-<p>As the method by which I obtained the nine dollars, above
-mentioned, from the purser, will exhibit one of the modes in which
-seamen are sometimes cheated, I will relate it. While in the <i>Siren</i>
-I drew but half my allowance of grog. By the rules of the service,
-I could claim the balance in money. This I overlooked when we
-were paid off, but, when my funds got low, it came into my mind.
-I proposed to some of the boys, who had a similar claim, to visit
-the purser. They only laughed at me, and said it would be of no
-use, for he would not pay it now we were discharged. Finding
-they would not join me, I went alone to the City Hotel, where the
-purser boarded, and inquired for him of the bar-tender. He came
-down stairs, and I spread out my complaint before him. He blustered
-and said I had no such claim allowed; I insisted, and told
-him it was my right, and he must pay it. Hoping to get rid of
-me, he told me to call again the next day. This I did, when he
-paid me nine dollars. This will show the reader one of the ways
-in which poor Jack is plundered, and that too by <span class="allsmcap">GENTLEMEN</span>!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_162"></a>[162]</span></p>
-
-<p>The <i>Boxer</i> lay at the navy yard, whither we were conducted.
-The vacillation of a seaman’s character was illustrated before we
-got on board, by one of our hands running away: another went a
-little beyond the first. He went on board, where he pretended to
-lose his hat overboard. Begging permission to recover it, he
-seized the rope which fastened the boat to the shore, dropped over
-the stern into the boat, and pushing up to the wharf, leaped ashore
-and made off. Such fickle-mindedness is not uncommon among
-sailors.</p>
-
-<p>We lost another of our crew in a more melancholy manner; he
-was in my mess, an Englishman by birth, who had just left a British
-vessel to enter the American service. He was at work on the
-main yard, and by some means or other, losing his foothold, he fell.
-Unfortunately, he struck a carronade screw in his descent, which
-inflicted a terrible wound. The poor man suffered excruciating
-agonies for a short time, and died. We buried him on shore, in a
-plain coffin, without form or ceremony. Such are the contingencies
-which wait to hurry seamen to the grave!</p>
-
-<p>We were kept busily at work upon the brig for some time;
-after which our commander, Captain Porter, came on board. We
-soon found him to belong rather to the race of Fitzroys and Cardens,
-than to that of Decaturs, Parkers or Nicholsons. He was
-inclined to tyranny and severe discipline.</p>
-
-<p>He soon gave us a specimen of his character in a most illegal
-act of punishment. We lay alongside the <i>Hornet</i> or <i>Peacock</i>, I
-forget which. It happened that her captain and most of her officers
-were gone ashore one day. Our captain accidentally saw one
-of her men engaged in some act of misconduct: instead of entering
-a complaint against the man to his own officers, he ordered him
-to be seized up and severely flogged, notwithstanding the earnest
-entreaties of the offender for pardon. Why the captain of that
-vessel did not call Captain Porter to an account for this manifest<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_163"></a>[163]</span>
-invasion of his prerogatives, I never knew, for we put to sea
-shortly afterwards. An officer who would thus gratuitously volunteer
-his services to punish a man, must be a tyrant at heart.
-So at least we thought; while many misgivings, concerning the
-future, troubled our minds.</p>
-
-<p>As I was now rated an ordinary seaman, and not a boy, as
-heretofore, I had a station assigned me in the fore-top, instead of
-being a servant to any of the officers. I was also appointed to be
-one of the crew of the captain’s gig. This made my lot one of
-more fatigue and exposure than in any former voyage; a proof of
-which, I very soon experienced. It being now late in the fall, the
-weather became very cold. One afternoon, the pennant having
-got foul of the royal mast, an officer ordered me to go up and clear
-it. I had no mittens on; it took me some time to perform my task,
-and before I came down one of my fingers was frozen. Thus it
-is, however, with the poor tar; and he thinks himself happy to escape
-his dangers with injuries so slight as this.</p>
-
-<p>The disposition of our commanding officer was still further
-revealed to my discomfort one day, while we were at work on the
-cables. Something I did, not happening to suit him, he gave me
-a severe blow on the head with his fist, not far from the place where
-I had been previously injured by the malice of the Malay boy.
-This unmanly blow occasioned me violent pains for several days.</p>
-
-<p>Since that time, I have felt a peculiar hostility to a practice,
-which is lamentably common in some schools and families; I mean
-that of rapping children on the head with a thimble, or with the
-knuckles, or anything else. The practice is the result of irrational
-passion, it is dangerous, and cannot therefore be too severely
-reprobated. If it is pleaded as necessary to enforce obedience and
-ensure respect, I know it will fail of such effects; it will only excite
-feelings of revenge, ill-will and malice.</p>
-
-<p>We now received sailing orders, and were very soon under<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_164"></a>[164]</span>
-weigh, bound to the Balize at the mouth of the Mississippi. On
-this passage we had further opportunities of learning the character
-of our officers. Although Captain Porter was stern and severe,
-yet he never used bad language. He always spoke with the
-utmost deliberation, but with such obvious indications of feeling,
-that we often trembled to hear his voice. Most of the other officers
-were by no means novitiates in the art of swearing; but our
-sailing-master exceeded all the rest in this diabolical habit. Whenever
-it was his watch on deck, he exercised his voice, and practised
-the use of his choice and varied vocabulary of oaths, by hallooing
-and threatening the men continually. Whenever we had to set on
-sail, or to reef, he was especially diligent in these matters; mingling
-with his curses, threats of the lash to those who were tardy, or
-whose movements did not exactly suit his taste. If such officers
-could only apprehend the profound contempt and bitter hatred
-with which they are regarded by their maddened crew, they would
-both tremble for safety, and despise their own littleness of soul.
-No really great man would enact the childish vagaries of a petty
-tyrant.</p>
-
-<p>There was one respect in which we were more annoyed in the
-<i>Boxer</i> than I had been in the <i>Macedonian</i>. In this latter ship,
-none but the captain could order a man to be flogged; in the
-<i>Boxer</i>, the lieutenant or the officer of the watch could send a man
-to the gangway, and order the boatswain to lay on with a rope’s-end.
-This is a liberty which the laws of the navy should prohibit.
-A man should be secured the rights of a citizen, as well on the
-<em>planks</em> as on the <em>soil</em> of his country. True, it may be said, severity
-of discipline is necessary to good order in a ship. Not <em>severity</em>,
-but <em>strictness</em>, is what is wanted. Let a strict discipline be enforced,
-with pleasant looks, and a “Hurrah my lads, bear a hand!”
-and obedience will be more prompt and more perfect than when
-every order is accompanied with a “Damn you,” and with an exhibition
-of the rope’s-end or cat-o’-nine-tails. Common sense, as
-well as experience, will sustain this opinion.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_165"></a>[165]</span></p>
-
-<p>While these matters were passing on board, our little brig was
-dashing through the waves in fine style. We arrived at the Balize,
-from whence we dropped down to Ship Island, where we took
-in water. A share of this severe task fell to my lot, for I was here
-taken out of the gig, and placed in the jolly-boat, to make way for
-a smaller and lighter lad in the former. We obtained our water
-by digging large holes in the sand, into which we placed our casks;
-the salt water, by passing through so much sand, would be so thoroughly
-filtrated, that by the time it reached our casks it was fit for
-use. We then emptied it into ten-gallon kegs, called breakers,
-which we carried on our shoulders to the boat. This of itself was
-hard work, but we had certain tormentors on this island, which
-made it a task of much suffering. These were hosts of hungry,
-gigantic moschetos, which assailed our persons, and especially our
-naked feet, in flying squadrons, with a ferocity that indicated an
-uncontrollable thirst for blood. But even these were not our worst
-persecutors. They were attended by armies of large, yellow horseflies,
-which our men called gallinippers. These merciless insect
-savages were always sure to attack the very spot we had rubbed
-sore, after the bite of a moscheto. Their bite felt like the thrust
-of a small sword; I still retain scars on my feet occasioned by these
-fierce gallinippers.</p>
-
-<p>This island bore marks of the battle of New Orleans; for we
-found various articles bearing the broad arrow and stamped G. R.
-We also remarked several mounds, which had the appearance of
-being large graves. We afterwards learned that this was the place
-where the British brought their dead, after their unsuccessful attack
-on the city of New Orleans.</p>
-
-<p>From Ship Island, we proceeded to New Orleans. This was
-a laborious passage; the current ran down the river with amazing
-force, bearing huge logs on its bosom, which, if suffered to strike
-either our bows or cables, were capable of doing much damage: to
-avoid them required no trifling exertions. Sometimes we endeav<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_166"></a>[166]</span>ored
-to track her, or draw her along with ropes, as canal-boats are
-drawn by horses. But, as this brought us into shallow water, it
-was abandoned.</p>
-
-<p>The banks of the river displayed large numbers of alligators,
-luxuriating on the numerous logs that were fast in the mud. We
-made many attempts to get near enough to these scaly monsters to
-pierce them with a boat-hook; but they kept too sharp a look-out
-for us; invariably diving into the stream before our boat got near
-enough for us to strike them. But, if we failed in capturing alligators,
-we obtained an abundance of palm-leaf, from the shore,
-with which we furnished ourselves with hats.</p>
-
-<p>An instance of our commander’s tyranny occurred while we
-were ascending the river. He had requested a seaman, named
-Daily, who was somewhat acquainted with the river, to act as pilot.
-By accident or negligence, he suffered the brig to strike the bottom,
-though without the least injury. The captain flew into a
-passion, ordered him to the gangway, and commanded the boatswain’s
-mate to lay on with his rope’s-end. I did not witness this
-flogging, for the hands were not called up to witness punishment,
-unless administered by the cat-o’-nine-tails, but one of my messmates
-said that he received at least one hundred lashes. I saw him
-several days afterwards, with his back looking as if it had been
-roasted, and he unable to stand upright. He wore the same shirt
-in which he was flogged for some time afterwards. It was torn
-to rags, and showed the state of his back beneath. His object in
-wearing it was to mortify and shame the captain for his brutality.</p>
-
-<p>The severity of flogging with the rope’s end is <ins class="corr" id="tn-166" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'justy described'">
-justly described</ins> in Mr. Dana’s excellent book, called <cite><span class="fsnormal">“Two Years before the
-Mast.”</span></cite> Though not <em>so</em> cruel as the cat, it is nevertheless a harsh,
-degrading punishment. Our men used to say that “they would as
-lief be cut up on the bare back with the cat, as have back and shirt
-cut up together,” as was poor Daily’s. In truth, that flogging was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_167"></a>[167]</span>
-both unjust and illegal. The articles of war provide, that not
-more than <em>twelve</em> lashes shall be given for a crime; but here <em>one
-hundred</em> were inflicted for <em>no crime</em>&mdash;for an accident, which might
-have happened to the best pilot who ever ascended the Mississippi.
-But though the captain was thus rendered amenable to the law,
-who would believe a poor sailor? Had he complained, it would
-doubtless have been to his own injury; for law, and especially
-naval law, is always on the side of the strong. This was not the
-only case of illegal flogging; but the justification of these excessive
-whippings, was found in the pretended existence of <em>several</em>
-crimes in the helpless offenders.</p>
-
-<p>On one occasion we were at our quarters, exercising in the
-various evolutions of war; now at our guns, and then going through
-the forms of boarding an enemy; now running aloft, as if in the
-act of cutting down our enemy’s rigging, and then rushing below,
-as if to board her, firing our pistols, stabbing with our boarding-pikes,
-and cutting on all sides with our cutlasses. In the midst of
-this excitement, the movements of one of the men not happening
-to please the captain, he seized a cutlass and struck him a tremendous
-blow with its flat side; heated with passion, he let it glance
-as he struck, and the edge, entering the man’s back, made a deep
-flesh wound, which was very sore a long time. Some of our men
-swore that if they had been the sufferer, they would have shot the
-captain dead on the spot! Are men of such brutal tempers fit to
-command a man of war? Is it not wonderful that mutiny is so
-rare under such a discipline? Such an officer might do to command
-a crew of pirates, but not of freemen, such as Americans feel
-proud to entrust with the keeping of their national honor on the
-deep.</p>
-
-<p>On reaching New Orleans, our ship was overhauled and repaired.
-We were sent on board the <i>Louisiana</i>, an old guard-ship,
-but had to cross the river every morning to assist in working on the
-brig. Several of our men, and myself among them, were quite<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_168"></a>[168]</span>
-sick here, owing to the free use of river water. The <i>Louisiana</i> had
-a number of men confined on board, for some crime; they wore
-chains round their legs, which were fastened to a large ball: the
-nature of their offence I did not ascertain.</p>
-
-<p>The effects of Captain Porter’s severity were seen here in the
-loss of two of the crew. They belonged to the gig, and ran away
-while he was on shore. He made a strict, but unsuccessful, search
-after them. To deter others from a like attempt, or because he
-wanted an object on which to wreak his vengeance, he gave one
-poor fellow a cruel flogging for what, in sober fact, was no offence
-at all. The man was on shore, with some others, fixing the rigging,
-and, for some purpose or other, had walked a short distance
-from the rest, without the slightest intention to run away. But the
-captain wanted a victim, and this served for an excuse.</p>
-
-<p>Our brig being finished, we returned on board, and were soon
-back at our old station off Ship Island, where we found several
-other small naval craft. While here I saw a man flogged through
-the fleet, or, as this might more properly be called, the squadron.
-His was the only instance of the kind I saw while in the American
-navy, and, although his back was most brutally mangled, yet I do
-not think he suffered equal to those who are flogged through an
-English fleet. Still, the indignity and brutality are the same in
-<em>kind</em>, though differing in degree: a <span class="allsmcap">MAN</span> should never be made to
-endure it.</p>
-
-<p>Not far from our station, at a place called St. Lewis’ Bay,
-our captain purchased some land, and actually sent some of our
-men to make a clearing upon it, and to erect a log house. Whether
-this was a legal employment of the strength and skill of his men
-or not, I cannot decide; but it struck me as being a perversion of
-the national resources to his own private benefit. Why should a
-captain of a ship of war be permitted to employ the time and energies
-of his men for private uses, while an officer of the government,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_169"></a>[169]</span>
-who should employ its funds for his own advantage, would be
-charged with embezzlement and fraud? The cases are precisely
-alike, except that one uses the public money, the other what costs
-that money. It is a fraud on the country, and an imposition on
-the men.</p>
-
-<p>A tragic event occurred at Lewis’ Bay on the 4th of July,
-which occasioned a fearful sensation throughout the ship. I was
-sent thither that day in the launch. Feeling fatigued, I remained
-with another in the boat, which was anchored near the shore. After
-some time one of the crew, named Thomas Hill, came back for a
-pistol, for there were several in the boat, and deliberately charged
-it. My companion, an old <i>Macedonian</i>, named Cox, asked him
-what he wanted with a pistol. Hill, who was a very desperate fellow,
-told him to mind his own business, or he would shoot him.
-Cox, knowing his character, thought it best to let this insult pass,
-supposing he was only going off to shoot a dog or snake, as the
-latter creature abounded there. Having loaded his pistol, Hill
-went off, and we thought no more of the matter. Presently a man
-came running down to the boat to inform us that two of our men
-were quarrelling. Just at that moment, we heard the report of
-a pistol: hurrying to the spot, described by our informant, we
-found a shipmate, by the name of Smith, bleeding on the ground,
-with a pistol-shot lodged in his breast by Hill. We gathered
-round him; in his agony he begged us to shoot him dead, for his
-suffering was not to be endured. Supposing he was dying, our
-testimony to his statement that Hill was his murderer, was taken
-on the spot. The victim was then removed to a suitable place to
-be taken care of; the next day he was carried on board the brig,
-and from thence to a sort of hospital on shore, where, after lingering
-a few days, he died. The murderer was seized and placed
-in irons on board the brig. He was afterwards removed to another
-ship, but what was done with him I never heard with certainty;
-it was reported that he was pardoned.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_170"></a>[170]</span></p>
-
-<p>The cause of this fatal affray was that great instigator of
-crimes, <span class="smcap">Rum</span>. The men were both under its influence; fired with
-its fumes, they lost all discretion, and commenced a quarrel: from
-words they proceeded to blows. In this struggle Smith had the
-advantage. Finding himself worsted, the other ran down to the
-boat for a pistol. With this, he returned and threatened to shoot
-his adversary. Smith demanded a pistol for himself, that, as he
-said, he might have fair play. At that instant his cowardly opponent
-shot him! Had they both been sober, this tragedy would
-never have been enacted. Who can reveal the effects of alcohol?</p>
-
-<p>From this station we sailed to Tampico, where we lay but a
-short time, meeting with nothing worthy of remark, except that
-we found abundance of turtle in the river; during the day we could
-see their heads peeping up from the river in all directions. At
-night we used to send our men ashore to take them. This was done
-by tracking them on the sand, whither they went to deposit their
-eggs. We used to turn them over on to their backs, and drag
-them down to the boat. When alongside they were hoisted on
-board with a tackle; some of them weighing four or five hundred
-weight. They were then killed, and converted into a soup for the
-whole ship’s company.</p>
-
-<p>The day after we left Tampico on our passage to Vera Cruz,
-I was looking out on the cat-head or starboard bow; seeing a sail,
-I shouted, “Sail ho!” when three other vessels hove in sight.
-These were all patriot privateers, so we were ordered to our quarters;
-but the vessels, discovering our character, kept clear of our
-guns, and we pursued our own course.</p>
-
-<p>About ten o’clock, A. M., we saw two more of these privateers,
-crowded with men, but mounting only one long gun. Mistaking
-us for a Spanish brig, with money on board, they fired most
-lustily for us to heave to. We mounted short carronades, excepting
-two long nines at the bows, so we bore down, all hands being<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_171"></a>[171]</span>
-at their quarters, to bring our short guns to bear upon them.
-Meanwhile we kept one of the long nines in full blast. I was stationed
-at this gun; and it being my duty to sponge and load, I had
-to exert every muscle and strain every nerve, as, firing only one
-gun, it was necessary to discharge it as often as possible. Before,
-however, we came near enough to injure them, they discovered
-what we were, fired a leeward gun in token of friendship, and
-hauled off. If they had not, our men very <em>elegantly</em> observed,
-they would have found they had taken the wrong pig by the ear.</p>
-
-<p>We soon came in sight of the beautiful revolving light, which
-throws its friendly beams on the port of Vera Cruz, where, as in
-the former places, we lay a short time, and then, after visiting
-some other ports, we returned to our former station at Ship Island.
-Here, however, we remained for only a brief period, before
-we were under weigh for New Orleans, from which place we
-sailed to Havana. Such is the constant change kept up by men
-of war on a cruise.</p>
-
-<p>On this passage, I was placed in a position which exposed me
-to the punishment of the lash, though by a mere accident I escaped.
-There was a habit indulged in among us, which is common
-among all sailors at sea; I mean that of stealing a nap during
-our watch at night. Seated on the carriage of a gun, or on a shot-locker,
-with folded arms, we indulged in many a minute of sweet
-sleep, notwithstanding it was contrary to the rules of the ship. To
-prevent this as much as possible, the officer of the watch used to
-give the first man he caught napping, a handspike, with which he
-was compelled to walk the deck until he found another sleeper, to
-whom he was allowed to transfer his burden. One night I was
-caught dozing, and had to perform the consequent march with the
-handspike. After walking about, without success, in search of a
-sleeper, for some time, I thought it might be well to try my fortune
-in the tops. Scarcely had I set foot on the top, before the
-officer below cried, “Fore-top, there!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_172"></a>[172]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“Aloft, and take in the fore-top-gallant sail!”</p>
-
-<p>This order caused every man to spring to his station. Supposing
-no one would pass before the mast, I stood my handspike
-upright against it. But there happened to be a man, by the name
-of Knight, dozing there; and when he was aroused by the command
-of the officer, he passed before the mast to get on to the starboard
-side. As sailors usually grasp something when aloft, he missed his
-hold of what he intended to catch, and seized my handspike, which
-of course fell. To my consternation, he fell with it. Tumbling
-out of the fore-top, he fortunately struck the foot-rope of the fore-yard,
-which broke the force of his fall. When he reached the deck,
-he came bouncing on a tall, stout Irishman, named Tom Smith,
-who, not imagining the cause of so rough and sudden an assault,
-roared out, as they both fell together on the deck, “Och! indeed
-you have killed me!” Here, however, he was mistaken; he was
-more frightened than hurt; and the innocent cause of his fright
-was able to resume his duties, after two or three days’ respite.
-Very fortunately for my back, the unlucky handspike was not suspected;
-and my share in this serio-comic accident remained a secret
-within my own breast.</p>
-
-<p>It has often been a subject of surprise to my mind, that men
-so seldom fall from the tops, in the long night-watches they keep
-there. Often have I stood two hours, and, sometimes, when my
-shipmates have forgotten to relieve me, four long, tedious hours,
-on the royal yard, or the top-gallant yard, without a man to converse
-with. Here, overcome with fatigue and want of sleep, I
-have fallen into a dreamy, dozy state, from which I was roused by
-a lee lurch of the ship. Starting up, my hair has stood on end with
-amazement at the danger I had so narrowly escaped. But, notwithstanding
-this sudden fright, a few minutes had scarcely elapsed
-before I would be nodding again. How wonderful that more are
-not swallowed in the hungry deep!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_173"></a>[173]</span></p>
-
-<p>When the weather was rough, we were indulged with permission
-to stand on the fore-top-sail yard, or on the top-gallant cross-trees;
-and, if the ship rolled heavily, we lashed ourselves to the
-mast, for greater safety. I can assure my readers, there is nothing
-desirable in this part of a sailor’s duty. In whatever the
-pleasure of a life at sea consists, it is not in keeping a look-out
-from the mast-head at night.</p>
-
-<p>But the most disagreeable of all is, to be compelled to stand
-on these crazy elevations, when half dead with sea-sickness. Some
-suppose that sailors are never sea-sick after the first time they go
-to sea. This is a mistake; it is very much with them as it is with
-landsmen, in respect to being sick in a coach. Those who are of
-bilious temperaments, are always affected, more or less, when they
-ride in a stage or sleigh; while others are never sick on these occasions.
-So with seamen; some are never sea-sick, others are sick
-only when going out of port, while some are so in every gale of
-wind. Mr. Dana mentions some of the crew in his ship, who were
-sick, after being at sea two years, as they came to Boston. I was
-usually sick after laying some time in port, and have often stood at
-the mast-head when so sick that any landsman on shore, in a similar
-state, would think it hard if he could not lie abed. For a sailor,
-there is no allowance made for sea-sickness; he must remain at his
-post until it is time to be relieved.</p>
-
-<p>When we entered Havana, we came to anchor near the Spanish
-fort, and fired a salute, which was courteously returned by the
-Spaniards. We had been here but a short time, before an Irishman,
-named Dougherty, who had formerly deserted from the
-Spanish garrison, took it into his head to run away from our brig.
-This he accomplished by the assistance of some Spaniards, to whom
-he made himself known. Several others also left us, in this port,
-among whom was our swearing sailing-master; and a great deal was
-said about running away throughout the ship. The man who was
-flogged on suspicion at New Orleans, now endeavored to get off in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_174"></a>[174]</span>
-reality. He strayed from the boat, but the officer, meeting him,
-endeavored to force him back. He resisted; a struggle ensued;
-the officer fell to the ground, and the man called to the Spaniards
-to assist him. They left him, however, to fight his own battles;
-and the officer, having succeeded in getting the advantage, presented
-a pistol to his breast, and he surrendered. For this offence,
-he was flogged most fearfully. In the British service, he would
-have been hung! It is certain death with them, to strike an officer.</p>
-
-<p>Hearing so much said about running away, and feeling almost
-as unhappy as when in the <i>Macedonian</i>, I began to think of it myself.
-Sometimes I thought of trying to get into the Spanish garrison
-as a soldier; at others, of joining some of the numerous slavers
-that lay there, and in which our men said a good chance could
-be had. Sad chances, as they now appear, especially the latter;
-but I was young and ignorant. My feelings and the advice and
-opinion of my shipmates influenced me more than the dictates of
-an enlightened understanding. Resolving to make a trial, if opportunity
-offered, I one day put on an extra shirt and drew on a
-second pair of pantaloons. When thus prepared, the officer of the
-deck happened to discover the two waistbands of my trousers; he
-questioned me with a suspicious curiosity. I told him as specious
-a tale as I could invent on the spot; which was, that I had been
-mending my trousers, and, before they were finished, was called to
-go ashore in the boat, and not having time to put them away, had
-slipped them on. Fortunately, a needle and some thread which
-I had about me, confirmed my story and saved me from difficulty.
-It was pretty obvious, however, that the officer, though silenced,
-was not <em>satisfied</em>; for I was so closely watched, after that day, I
-gave up the idea of escape as utterly futile and hopeless.</p>
-
-<p>From Havana we returned to the mouth of the Mississippi,
-where we captured the <i>Comet</i>, a patriot schooner, on suspicion that
-the patriotism of her crew had degenerated into something less respectable.
-Harsh as it must have sounded in the ears of her offi<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_175"></a>[175]</span>cers,
-we charged them with piracy; took possession of the vessel,
-and brought her hands, as prisoners, on board our brig. Her master’s
-name was Mitchell; his crew were all stout, fierce-looking
-blacks, having all sorts of odd names, such as Monday, Friday, &amp;c.
-She had a rich cargo, and contained large sums of money. It was
-reported that they had attacked an island somewhere in the Gulf
-of Mexico, and murdered its governor. We put them in irons,
-with sentries over them, who were charged to cut off their heads if
-they dared to lift them above the hatchway. I performed this duty
-a part of the time, parading round the hatch with a drawn cutlass;
-but they showed no symptoms of resistance, and were sent in their
-vessel to New Orleans. Their fate I never ascertained.</p>
-
-<p>This adventure cost one of our own crew, an Irishman, by the
-name of Tom Smith, a severe flogging. Smith was quite a moral
-philosopher in his way; though it is to be regretted that his philosophy
-was a little infected with lunacy. Its premises were certainly
-sound, but, unfortunately, its conclusions bore but little relation
-to the parent of whom they boasted. He taught that man was
-born to do good; that his chief good was the promotion of his own
-interests; and that, per consequence, he should help himself to
-whatever he could lay his hands on, without regard to the rights of
-others. With these views, Tom earnestly defended the rightfulness
-of piracy, and could he have managed to get on board a pirate
-vessel, or even have contrived to wrest our own ship from the hands
-of her officers, and hoist the black flag, he would have cheerfully
-done so. But somehow, although he had made a number of disciples
-among his shipmates, our captain paid no manner of respect
-to his theories; for, when Tom, in consistency with his often declared
-principles, deliberately carried off a large sum of money
-from our capture, to his own quarters, the captain, who perceived
-the theft himself, ordered him to the gangway, and administered as
-many hard lashes, as if Tom had had no philosophy at all.</p>
-
-<p>But, although Tom Smith’s philosophy did not save its unlucky<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_176"></a>[176]</span>
-advocate from the unphilosophic punishment of the whip, it nevertheless
-exerted a baneful influence on the morals of our crew.
-Many of them were doubtless bad enough when they came on
-board; but a more complete school for the practise of iniquity
-never existed, than that on board our brig. Profanity, blasphemy,
-lying, licentious conversation, and even a system of petty
-stealing, <ins class="corr" id="tn-176" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'were prastised on'">
-were practised on</ins> a large scale. Many of the men were
-ripe for any crime within the power of depraved humanity to commit,
-and I have often thought that even the decks of a privateer or
-a pirate, could not lead one faster and deeper into the extremes of
-wickedness, than did the influence of our main deck.</p>
-
-<p>With what a voice do such pictures of sailor immorality, call
-for exertion on the part of an enlightened Christian community, in
-behalf of seamen? Where is the presence of the meek spirit of
-Christianity more needed, than on the decks of our merchant and
-naval vessels? Where would missionaries and Bibles accomplish
-more than here? There is no sphere of Christian usefulness so
-important, so promising as this. Every vessel in the navy should
-have its chaplain. Not one of your proud, fun-loving, graceless
-wine-bibbers, but a humble, devoted man, who would not think it
-beneath his dignity to mingle with the common sailors, as a pastor
-among the flock of his affections, moulding their rough, but susceptible
-natures into the image of virtue, by the force of his pious
-example, and the influence of his effectual prayers. Then, in the
-merchant service, a species of itinerant missionary might be indefinitely
-useful. He might be sent out by a society, pledged for his
-support; and, by permission of the owners, sail in a ship on her outward
-passage. Arrived at her port, he might sail to another place,
-in a different ship, and then return home in a third. In this way,
-a score of devoted men of the right stamp, could exert an unparalleled
-influence on the character of sailors. Vice, irreligion, profanity,
-and insubordination, would presently flee away before the
-beautiful purity of religion, and our ships, instead of being desig<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_177"></a>[177]</span>nated
-as floating hells, would become houses of God, arks of holiness,
-consecrated Bethels! Pray, Christian, that this desirable consummation
-may be speedily attained; and be not satisfied with
-merely praying; add <em>action</em> to your prayers. Stir up your church
-to the claims of seamen! Give your money to assist in supporting
-sailors’ missionaries, Bethels, and the like. Make it the settled
-purpose of your heart, not to rest until you behold the sailor elevated
-to his proper position, which is that of a <span class="smcap">Christian man</span>!</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="endchap5" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="p4 w100" src="images/endchap.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_178"></a>[178]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy1">After a short stay at the Balize, we put to sea once more,
-for the purpose, as it was understood, of touching at Havana,
-and then returning to New York. This was a cheerful
-voyage; the idea of a speedy return to America, spread a feeling
-of exquisite delight over the whole crew, and converted the performance
-of our duty into a pleasure. One effect was, to set those
-hands, who were gifted with the talent, so highly prized in a man
-of war, of “spinning yarns,” busily at work during every spare
-moment, when a group could be gathered to listen. Foremost
-among these intellectual time-killers was Richard Dickinson, a
-messmate of mine, a good-natured Englishman. He called himself
-the son of Old Dick, by which epithet he was usually called.
-Dick’s powers were now in great demand, and he exercised them to
-our universal satisfaction, but with how great regard for truth I
-cannot determine. It is probable, however, that truth entered
-very little into Dick’s productions. He was a sort of off-hand novelist;
-all he cared for was <em>effect</em>, and where truth failed him, fiction
-generously loaned her services. So bewitching were Dick’s stories,
-that I used to long for the hour when we could lay in our
-hammocks and listen. My first salutation, when we lay for the
-last time in the port of Havana, was, “Come, Dick, tell us a yarn.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is the use? you will go to sleep,” he used to reply.</p>
-
-<p>“No I won’t, Dick; I can listen to your yarns all night,” was
-my usual answer.</p>
-
-<p>Dick would then begin some yarn, which, if not so interesting
-as the thousand-and-one stories in the Arabian Nights’ entertainments,
-was at least as true to nature, and, in respect to its humor,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_179"></a>[179]</span>
-might be compared to some of the sayings of that illustrious personage,
-Sancho Panza, the renowned squire of the immortal Don
-Quixote; but, in spite of my promises, I usually gave notice of my
-condition after a short time, by performing a concord of nasal
-sounds, vulgarly called snoring, which would set Dick to swearing,
-and often put an end to his performances for the night.</p>
-
-<p>I need scarcely say, that these “yarns” were by no means
-favorable in their moral effects on the listener. They generally
-consisted in fictitious adventures on the sea and on the shore, plentifully
-interlarded in their recital with profane oaths and licentious
-allusions. When seamen become elevated, and are properly instructed,
-these filthy stories will be superseded by reading good
-and useful literature, with an abundance of which every ship
-should be supplied by the benevolence of the Christian public.</p>
-
-<p>On the passage to Havana, Dick and myself fell under the
-displeasure of the captain. We were stationed one night in the
-fore-top, where we were comfortably dozing away the time. The
-captain was on deck. The officer of the watch hailed the fore-top.
-We did not hear him until the call was repeated two or three times.
-For this we were ordered below, and told by the captain that we
-should be flogged the next day before the whole crew. With this
-consolatory information we returned to our station, without the
-least inclination to sleep again for that watch. With a sort of
-philosophic desperation, I laughed and said, “Dick, which would
-you rather do&mdash;have your grog stopped awhile, or take a flogging?”</p>
-
-<p>Dick was very fond of his grog; so he replied, “Oh, I had
-rather they would stop my wind than my grog, and would sooner
-be flogged by considerable than lose that.” I question, however,
-if he had been left to choose between grog and whip at the gangway,
-whether he would not have altered his tone in favor of his
-grog. Still, his answer shows, how strongly sailors are attached<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_180"></a>[180]</span>
-to their beloved rum. I am happy to know that this regard is
-dying away, and that temperance is doing something among sailors.
-May it go on, until cold water is as popular in a man of war,
-as grog was twenty years since. We never heard, however, of
-our offence again. Dick was quite a favorite with the officers,
-and, except a blow in the head, given me by the captain, I had
-never been punished. Perhaps these were the reasons why we escaped
-the gangway.</p>
-
-<p>At Havana we got a large amount of Spanish dollars aboard
-for some merchants in New York. These were smuggled from
-the shore. Our men were sent off in the boats, with their pockets
-and bosoms well stuffed with the precious metal; and in this way
-we soon got it all safely lodged in our hold, except that the captain’s
-servant, falling desperately in love with them, furnished
-himself with all he could carry, and ran away from the ship.</p>
-
-<p>After adding to our freight of dollars a fine supply of
-oranges, lemons, pine-apples, &amp;c., we cheerfully weighed anchor
-and set sail for New York. We reached that port after a short
-and prosperous voyage; meeting with no incident, except that the
-cold weather caused us a little suffering, and enabled the purser
-to add a few dollars to the profits of the voyage, by supplying us
-with a lot of red flannel shirts.</p>
-
-<p>When I was on board the <i>Siren</i>, I was contented. The officers
-were kind, the crew were peaceful and well-behaved; but in
-the <i>Boxer</i>, some of the officers were severe, and the crew corrupt,
-and I did not enjoy myself at all. Some said that in time of war
-the men were better treated than in time of peace; but though this
-may be true to a limited extent, yet I think the difference in these
-two brigs was owing more to the character of their respective officers
-than anything else. Be this as it may, my experience in the
-<i>Boxer</i> had completely sickened me of man of war life, and I determined,
-if possible, to get free of it at once and forever.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_181"></a>[181]</span></p>
-
-<p>My station, as one of the crew of the jolly-boat, gave me
-frequent opportunities to accomplish my purpose. So, one day,
-at the solicitation of a shipmate, I resolved to make the attempt.
-Cruel treatment was my excuse; yet I have sometimes been
-ashamed of my course in this instance; and would heartily advise
-all boys in the naval service to stay their time out. We were successful
-in escaping; and as we had but little money, I therefore
-proceeded directly from the shore to a pawn shop, and there disposed
-of our pea-jackets, which were new, and for which the purser
-had charged us ten dollars apiece. We obtained the pitiful
-sum of six dollars for the two. With this, we started in a hack,
-which was to carry us outside of the city. We then travelled hard
-all day, resting at night in a barn, where we suffered extremely
-from the cold. The next day we pursued our way towards New
-Haven. The day after, we were still on the road. This was the
-Sabbath, and we felt strangely at seeing the good people of the village,
-through which we passed, going to meeting. The foot-stoves,
-that the grave matrons bore in their hands, were things I
-had never seen before; so, to the great merriment of my companion,
-I observed that they were excellent contrivances to carry
-their books in to meeting! We reached New Haven on Monday
-evening, where we put up at a sailors’ boarding-house for the night.
-Here my shipmate left me, and I proceeded alone to Hartford,
-begging my support by the way, for my money was by this time
-all exhausted.</p>
-
-<p>At Hartford I tried to ship on board some merchant vessel.
-Not succeeding, I strove to find some one to take me as an apprentice
-to instruct me in the art of bootmaking, but with no better
-success. These repulses discouraged me. It was Christmas day,
-and the associations connected with the day&mdash;the merry-makings
-of my early boyhood&mdash;were anything but pleasant to me in my
-distress. The bell was tolling for the funeral of priest Strong,
-and it seemed as if the melancholy of the mourners fully accorded<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_182"></a>[182]</span>
-with my feelings, and was preferable in my mind to the spirit of
-rejoicing that prevailed among those who were keeping merry
-Christmas in merry mood. Perhaps, if they had invited me to
-partake of their cheer, I should have changed my opinion. As
-it was, with only five cents in my pocket, I wandered lonely and
-sad through the city. With a feeling of despair I stepped into a
-cellar for something to drink. They charged me five cents, and
-left me at once friendless and penniless. At the bridge, the toll-keeper
-demanded a cent. I looked at him fiercely, and told him I
-had nothing. He let me pass over toll free. Towards night, feeling
-tired and hungry, I endeavored to hire myself. But who
-would employ an utter stranger? I went to a number of houses,
-imploring a lodging for the night. With freezing coldness, I experienced
-repulse after repulse, until my heart chilled with horror,
-with the fear of spending that long, cold night out of doors. At
-last I called on a kind-hearted Presbyterian, who gave me a supper,
-lodging and breakfast. Their morning and evening devotions
-were peculiarly interesting to me; for, excepting while a
-prisoner at the Cape of Good Hope, I had never listened to an
-extemporaneous prayer.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning I left this truly hospitable family, and pursued
-my inquiries for employment. Some asked if I could chop
-wood; others, if I knew anything about farming; and when I answered
-“No,” they shook their heads, and I trudged on. Sometimes
-I offered to work for my board, but, being a sailor, and having
-no recommendations, people were afraid to take me into their
-families. Still I pushed on. A man overtook me in the town of
-Coventry, and began a very interesting and faithful discourse
-about religion. I listened respectively; he took me home with
-him, where, although he was a deacon, he gave me some cider-brandy:
-but these were not the days of temperance. After this he
-sent me to Pomeroy’s tavern, where he thought they would hire
-me. This application failing, he advised me to apply at the glass<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_183"></a>[183]</span>
-works which were a little distance from that place. With this advice,
-I took leave of Deacon Cook, and proceeded towards the
-glass-houses.</p>
-
-<p>Before reaching them, however, night came. A family, who
-occupied a red house, received me, whose hospitality I returned by
-singing a number of sea songs. Early the next morning, I tried
-to get work at the glass-house, but though I was willing to stay for
-my board, they would not take me. Mr. Turner, the agent, very
-kindly gave me a breakfast, and then I left him, determined to
-get to Boston if possible, and go to sea once more.</p>
-
-<p>My situation was really a trying one: my only clothing was a
-blue jacket and trousers; shoes more than half worn out, and a little
-tarpaulin hat stuck on the back of my head, in genuine sailor
-fashion.<a id="FNanchor_27" href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> Mittens and money were alike far off from my fingers,
-and friends were as scarce as money. People, too, seemed afraid
-of a sailor; and this, in addition to all my other troubles, rendered
-me an object of suspicion. At such times, I assure my young
-reader, that the picture of a kind mother and a good home, are but
-too faithfully presented to the mind, filling it with a thousand vain
-and useless regrets. No young man need desire to be in the outcast
-prodigal condition in which I stood, in the depth of that cold
-winter.</p>
-
-<p>When I reached the town of Mansfield, I called at the house
-of a Mr. Nathaniel Dunham; the kind manners and friendly language
-of whose lady I shall never forget. She told me that if I
-was honest, Providence would shortly open some way by which I
-could live. Her words fell on my ear like a prophecy, and I left<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_184"></a>[184]</span>
-the house, confident of some favorable turn in my affairs before
-long. At Mansfield Four Corners, I inquired of Dr. Waldo,
-who, with several others, sat under a piazza, and afterwards of a
-Mr. Edmund Freeman, for employ. They gave me no encouragement.
-Persevering, I at last met with a Mr. Peter Cross,
-who, seeing my sailor garb, asked what ships I had sailed in. Hearing
-me mention the <i>Macedonian</i>, he said, “There is a man here
-whose name is William Hutchinson. He was taken in her. Do
-you know him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said I, after a moment’s recollection; “he was our
-armorer’s mate.”</p>
-
-<p>Of course, I lost no time in seeking for my old shipmate.
-After crossing various lots, and getting vexed and perplexed for
-want of proper direction, I reached his comfortable homestead.
-He did not recognise me at first, on account of the great alteration
-a few years had made in my size and appearance; but, when
-he did recall me to his recollection, with the generous frankness of
-a sailor, he offered me all the hospitality and assistance in his
-power. A good supper was speedily spread; and then, seated before
-his ample fireplace, sparkling and crackling with a cheerful
-blaze, we recounted our adventures. He had wandered into Connecticut,
-and married a very respectable woman. They now
-owned a house and some land, and were in tolerably comfortable
-and thriving circumstances. With such discourse, we talked away
-the better part of the night, when the old tar showed me my chamber,
-archly observing that “my bed would not rock much.”</p>
-
-<p>The next morning, he said I should not leave him until I was
-provided for in some way or other. Through his influence, a Mr.
-James, his brother-in-law, employed me to work in his cloth-dressing
-establishment. As I was ignorant of the business, and was
-not really needed, my board was to be my only compensation.</p>
-
-<p>My new situation soon grew delightful to me, and I felt hap<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_185"></a>[185]</span>pier
-than I had ever done since I left Bladen. My time passed
-very pleasantly, especially my evenings, when the neighbors came
-in to hear me spin sea yarns and forecastle songs. Some of the
-young men of the “baser sort” judged me to be a fit instrument
-to act Samson for their enjoyment, in the house of God. So
-they invited me to attend the meetings of the Methodist Episcopal
-church in that place. But they greatly misjudged the character
-of seamen; who, as before remarked, usually pay respect to the
-ordinances and ministers of religion. I attended the meeting, but
-not to make sport. The result of this ill-designed invitation on
-myself will appear hereafter.</p>
-
-<p>The winter months fled, and the spring found me unfurnished
-with means co-extensive with my wants. Determined to remain
-ashore, if possible, I hired myself to a farmer for my board. In
-the evenings I braided straw hats, and thus obtained a scanty supply
-of clothing. A little incident, illustrative of the thoughtless
-playfulness of sailor character, may not be displeasing to my
-young readers.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever has seen a perfect novice undertake to guide an ox-team,
-may form some idea of the ludicrous adventures through
-which I passed during my agricultural novitiate with these horned
-animals. Perseverance, however, gave me some little control over
-our team, when, as fate would have it, my employer “<em>swapped</em>”
-them for another pair. When they came home, after some little
-hallooing and whipping, I succeeded in “yoking” them; then
-seizing the goad-stick, with as much dignity as ever Neptune
-wielded his trident, I mounted the tongue, (which I called the bowsprit,)
-and with the ladders rigged up at both ends I gave the
-word of command to my team. They, however, showed signs of
-mutiny, and, taking to their heels, bore me <ins class="corr" id="tn-185" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'off in trumph'">
-off in triumph</ins>. This was sport indeed; there I stood, my head and shoulders passed between
-the front rigging, laughing as if my sides would burst, while
-rakes, forks and boards were playing leap-frog, at the tail of my<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_186"></a>[186]</span>
-cart, and my master’s boy was half frightened out of his wits. At
-length the angry voice of my master roused me from my sportive
-mood; he did not relish the rough usage his farming tools were receiving,
-and coming up with my horned steeds, he speedily stopped
-their speed and my sport. I need only add that his rebukes made
-me more careful afterwards.</p>
-
-<p>When the haying season commenced, I left my first employer,
-and obtained the sum of eight dollars per month, and board; the
-wages, however, in accordance with the true Yankee method of
-making money out of everything, were to be payable at the village
-store. This change led me into a situation which proved another
-link in the chain, which ended in my conversion to God. The son
-of my employer died; he was about fourteen years of age; in company
-with a pious member of the Methodist church, I sat up one
-night with the corpse. With the faithfulness of a true Christian,
-he improved the occasion by seriously conversing with me on the
-great concerns of immortality. His discourse, together with the
-funeral services, had a very softening and gracious influence on my
-feelings, though the only present, practical effect was a more punctual
-attendance on the services of the sanctuary.</p>
-
-<p>Towards winter, I went to live with Mr. Joseph Conant, to
-learn the business of filing augers and steelyards. Here my acquaintance
-was considerably enlarged, as several young men were
-attached to the establishment. Among them was one who made a
-profession of religion. As is usual among the young, we were devoted
-triflers; and he, to my astonishment, was as jocose and merry
-as the rest. Ignorant as I was of religion, his conduct appeared
-strangely inconsistent; I wondered he did not converse with me
-about my soul. One day I took him aside and faithfully expressed
-my views of his conduct. He acknowledged his guilt.
-Afterwards we attended meetings in company, and he was faithful
-in speaking with me about the things that belonged to my salvation.
-He urged upon me the importance of giving myself up<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_187"></a>[187]</span>
-to God at once, and affectionately invited me to attend class-meeting.
-My mind was seriously inclined, but I could not yet venture
-upon so close an intercourse with the people of God.</p>
-
-<p>One Sabbath evening, my friend, Ela Dunham, who had
-dealt so faithfully with me, when we watched together over the
-corpse of Orson Kidder, asked me, “When do you intend to set
-out and seek religion?”</p>
-
-<p>I replied, somewhat evasively, “Any time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said he, “are you willing we should pray for you, and
-will you go forward for prayers to-night?”</p>
-
-<p>To this I replied, that I would think of it. The meeting
-proved to be intensely interesting. My desire to express the inward
-workings of my mind, grew strong. Of the forms and practices
-of Christians in revivals, I was altogether ignorant, having
-never witnessed a conversion in my life; still, it seemed to me
-highly proper to declare my feelings in the presence of Christians,
-that they might give such instructions as were necessary to lead me
-into the right way. With these views, I determined to rise and
-speak, though the evil one whispered, “Not yet! not yet!” in my
-ears. Just as I stood up, some one, not seeing me, began to sing;
-this, I took to be a suitable excuse for further delay, and sat down,
-heartily wishing that no one had seen me. Fortunately, my friend
-Dunham had witnessed my movement. He requested them to
-stop singing, because a young man wished to speak. Thus encouraged,
-I told them I was then nineteen years of age, and it
-seemed to me too much of life to spend in sin; that eternity was a
-solemn idea, and I desired them to tell me how to prepare to enter
-upon it with joy. They proposed to pray with me. We then all
-kneeled down together. Most fervently did they pray for the
-divine blessing to rest on the stranger youth, bowed in penitence
-before them, and most sincerely did I join my prayers with theirs
-before the throne of God. After prayer, they sung the following<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_188"></a>[188]</span>
-familiar lines, which I insert both for their intrinsic excellence, and
-for the pleasantness of the associations connected with them in
-my own mind.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indentq">“Alas, and did my Saviour bleed!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">And did my Sovereign die!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Would he devote that sacred head,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">For such a worm as I?</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">O the Lamb! the loving Lamb!</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The Lamb on Calvary,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">The Lamb that was slain,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Yet lives again,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">To bleed and die for me.”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Although these words were very sweetly applied to my mind,
-I did not feel any evidence of the favor of God that night. The
-next day, with a strong purpose to live for eternity, I entered on
-my daily tasks. Religion was the theme of my thoughts and discourse;
-during the day, a sweet calm came over me; peace and joy
-filled my soul. It was the pardoning love of God applied to my
-guilty spirit.</p>
-
-<p>Ah! thought I, this must be religion; but desiring to be right,
-I went to my employer and communicated my feelings to him.
-His reply rather damped my joy. He was a moralist; morality,
-he said, was all-sufficient to secure a man’s well being both in this
-life and in that to come. This, however, did not satisfy my mind.
-To me it seemed certain that genuine repentance, and a change of
-heart, were all-essential to my happiness; and these, if not already
-mine, I determined to possess.</p>
-
-<p>The remarks and experience of the Methodists, at their prayer
-meetings, were greatly blessed to my comfort. Gradually the light
-broke; the day-star shone. Peace, like a river, filled my breast;
-joy, as from an unfailing fountain, bubbled up within me; love
-animated my affections; by day and by night I sang the praises of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_189"></a>[189]</span>
-God, and the society of Christ’s dear people seemed precious indeed
-to my soul. I thought this sweet frame would last forever.
-I determined it should, so far as my efforts were necessary for its
-continuance. Alas! I knew not my own heart: a dreary wilderness
-state was before me, and I, like many an unwary soul before
-me, heedlessly stumbled into its gloomy shadows.</p>
-
-<p>By a sudden change in the condition of my employer, I was
-led to seek employment in Ashford. Here, in the shop of Mr.
-Giles Stebbins, I was surrounded by many light-minded, trifling
-young men. Falling into the same snare for which I had reproved
-a professor before I was converted, my peace and calm
-were lost, every evidence darkened, and the wretchedness of a
-backslider in heart filled my soul. This apostacy lasted several
-months, when, through the love and long-suffering of a gracious
-God, I was once more restored to a state of salvation. Since that
-time, though I have not gained all that is desirable, and that is
-offered in an abundant gospel, yet I have been trying to stem the
-torrent of iniquity, which runs through the earth, and striving to
-make my way to the port of Glory.</p>
-
-<p>The next fall I walked eighteen miles to a camp-meeting in
-Thompson, Conn., the first I had ever attended. Though the
-scene was novel, I soon took a deep interest in the services; especially
-when informed that a sailor was going to preach one evening.
-This sailor was no other than the well-known Rev. E. T.
-Taylor.<a id="FNanchor_28" href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a> His text was in Philippians iv. 19: “But my God shall
-supply all your needs;” which he handled in his usual happy and
-eccentric, powerful manner. I had never before seen a religious<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_190"></a>[190]</span>
-sailor; to hear one preach, therefore, in such forcible and effective
-style, was to me a source of unutterable delight. Nor were the
-listening masses before the stand, who hung with intense eagerness
-on his lips, less pleased than myself. They broke out into loud
-expressions of praise to God for his wonderful mercies. “This,”
-said the speaker, “is but a drop from a bucket! What will it be
-when we drink from the mighty ocean itself?”</p>
-
-<p>At this meeting I saw sinners yielding to Christ with tears of
-sacred penitence, for the first time in my life. Never in all my
-life had a spectacle more sublimely beautiful met my eye. I do
-not believe the world affords a more grateful sight than that of a
-sinner weeping and repenting before his Creator.</p>
-
-<p>The parting scene of that meeting left an indelible impression
-on my memory. Even now I see that affectionate company
-marching in regular and joyful procession before the stand, each
-shaking hands, as he passed, with the preachers. Still I feel the
-tears chasing each other down my cheeks, as I grasped the hand
-of the sailor preacher so firmly, that it seemed I should never let it
-go; while he, seeing my emotion, observed, “Never mind, brother;
-we are on board of Zion’s ship now.” I had stood tearless alike
-amidst the wailings of the tempest and the roar of the battle, but
-here, among a few Christians at a camp-meeting, my heart was
-soft as a woman’s, and my tears flowed like rain. Does the reader
-inquire what made the difference? I answer, it was the love of
-God.</p>
-
-<p>When I returned home, one of my first acts was to unite myself
-with the Methodist Episcopal church: an act which has led
-to the formation of many pleasant friendships, and which has
-proved the source of much religious enjoyment to my soul.</p>
-
-<p>My mind often reverts, with a mixture of joy and sorrow, to
-the fate of the three hundred men and boys who sailed with me
-in the <i>Macedonian</i>, when I left England for the first time. Of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_191"></a>[191]</span>
-these, alas! how many perished in battle! The rest were scattered
-over the four quarters of the globe. Beside myself, I never
-heard of but one of them who embraced religion. This was John
-Wiskey, one of our quartermasters. He settled in New London,
-and when he met in class, for the first time, he said he blessed God
-he had got out of that floating hell, the <i>Macedonian</i>. He afterwards
-removed to Catskill, on the North River, where he maintained
-a good Christian reputation.</p>
-
-<p>My shipmate, who received me so hospitably in Mansfield,
-became unfortunate, lost his property, and died, but not before I
-had the satisfaction of offering a prayer at his bedside.</p>
-
-<p>The little fellow who escaped from the <i>Macedonian</i> with me
-met with a melancholy fate. This I learned one day from the following
-paragraph in a newspaper: “Drowned, out of a pilot boat,
-off Charleston Bar, Mr. James Day, one of the crew of His Britannic
-Majesty’s late frigate <i>Macedonian</i>.” Thus have I been
-signally favored&mdash;a brand plucked from the fire. For this special
-favor I hope to render my heavenly Father the eternal tribute of
-a grateful heart.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_192"></a>[192]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">During the various scenes, dangers and wanderings of
-these years of my youth, I had not forgotten the home of
-my boyhood; and, now that I was becoming somewhat
-settled in my prospects, I wrote an affectionate letter to my
-mother. After a delay of several months, I received two letters
-in reply, one from my mother, and the other from my sister. That
-from my mother is inserted in this narrative, for the purpose of
-exhibiting to the young reader, who may fancy that his parents feel
-no very great interest in his welfare, another instance of the deep,
-undying love of a mother’s heart.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Bladen</span>, December 23, 1818.</p>
-
-<p class="noindent">My dearly beloved Child:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>I cannot describe the sensations I felt when I received
-a letter from your dear hands. It was the greatest
-pleasure I have enjoyed since you left me. I have
-never been sorry but once since you left, and that has
-been ever since; but I hope the Almighty has ordered it
-all for the best. I have never forgotten to pray for you
-morning, night, and many times in the day, though I
-talked very little about you to any one, because I did not
-wish to make any one else uncomfortable. But that
-God, who knows the secrets of all hearts, sees how sincerely
-thankful I am because he has been pleased to hear
-my prayers that I might hear from you again; for I was
-fearful I never should. But now I have great hopes that
-the blessed Lord will protect you, and spare our lives to
-see each other again.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_193"></a>[193]</span></p>
-
-<p>My dear child, you have not stated how you came to be
-separated from the crew when the ship was taken, nor
-how you have been employed since. You must be the
-best judge whether it will be safe for you to venture
-home. It would be a great pleasure for me to see you,
-but if there is danger of bad consequences, on account of
-your having been in the service against your country,
-and if any bad consequence should follow your coming
-home, it would make me more unhappy than I have ever
-been yet. If there is no danger, I should be very happy to
-have you come home and learn a trade; as, thank God, I
-have it in my power to do something for you; and nothing
-shall be wanting to make you comfortable, that I can do.
-You say it may be one or two years before you come; but
-pray come the first opportunity, as you will be gladly received
-by us all. If it is a want of money that prevents
-you from coming, and you cannot work your passage,
-perhaps you can get one by showing the captain of some
-ship my letter, and he may depend on being paid as soon
-as you arrive in England. If neither will do, send me
-word; and if there is any place in London where your
-passage money can be paid, I will pay it there for you.
-You are right in supposing yourself twenty-two years of
-age on the nineteenth of March (1819). Your sister
-Maria is twenty. She is grown a fine young woman; I
-am happy to say is very steady and thoughtful; though
-not of a very strong constitution. She is at service in
-London. She has written to you, and I hope you will
-receive her letter with this.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>I hope, my dear child, you will not fail to come home.
-Send me all the particulars of your life, at the first opportunity.
-I am afraid you have gone through a great deal<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_194"></a>[194]</span>
-of trouble and hardship since I saw you. But the merciful
-Lord has been pleased to bring you through the
-whole, and He is able to carry you through more, if you
-put your trust in Him. It gave me great comfort to hear
-that you are so well disposed, as I am sure you are, from
-the spirit of your letter; it was more pleasure to me than
-if you had gained all the riches in the world. I wish I
-was as well acquainted with religion as yourself; but I
-will try to make a better use of my time, and should it
-please God to let you come home, I hope you will be the
-means of great good to me.</p>
-
-<p>There are a number of Methodist meetings about us.
-The people who live in our yard are very strict ones. I
-never disliked the Methodists; I think they have a great
-gift of religion. I sent your letter to Lady Churchill,
-formerly Lady Francis Spencer. Both Lord and Lady
-Churchill were glad to hear from you, and are your well-wishers.
-The Duke and Duchess of Marlborough are
-both dead. Blenheim is much altered for the worse, since
-his son has become Duke. Lord Francis, that was,
-makes a very good master; and when the Duke died, he
-left Blenheim. His country house is in the forest. Your
-father is his carpenter in the timber yard; he has filled
-this situation six weeks. He comes home every Saturday;
-and next spring they are going to place me and
-the children in a lodge near him. We hope to have the
-happiness of seeing you there.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>It is eight years the twelfth of last July, since you left
-us. <span class="nowrap">* * *</span> Your father, brothers and sisters all join
-with me in hearty prayers to Almighty God, that his
-blessing may be upon you; and if it is his blessed will, we
-shall see you again; if it is not, we must be resigned to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_195"></a>[195]</span>
-what is fitting for us, and pray that we may all meet in
-heaven, where all tears shall be wiped away. That God
-may bless you, my dear child, is the sincere prayer of</p>
-
-<p class="right">
-<span class="padr2">Your ever loving mother,</span><br />
-<span class="smcap">Susan Newman</span>.<br />
-</p></div>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding the earnestness of my mother’s spirit,
-breathed out so ardently for my return in this letter, I dared not
-risk myself on British soil. Her expression of sorrow, if bad consequences
-should ensue, had its weight in determining me to remain;
-but a conversation with the celebrated Lorenzo Dow, who
-had recently returned from his English tour, settled the question.
-He said he had seen four men hung, who, like me, had been in the
-service of some other country, after deserting from their own.
-This was quite sufficient; for, much as I longed to visit the homes
-of my childhood, I had no disposition to do it with a gallows suspended
-over my head. I therefore wrote my mother, that, not
-having a regular discharge from the navy, it would be best for me
-to continue where I was; but I begged them to seriously think of
-emigrating themselves; since my father-in-law, being an excellent
-carpenter, could do well in New England. Alas! it was not for
-him ever to consider of this proposition; for, when my letter arrived,
-they were performing the sad obsequies of death over his
-breathless corpse. A prevailing fever had terminated a life of
-fifty-seven years, after a sickness of two weeks. My mother, now
-a widow the second time, after twelve years of pleasant union with
-her last husband, thought it unfitting, at her time of life, to venture
-across the ocean; and therefore all my plans for collecting my
-relatives on American soil, were blasted in the bud.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps, after following me through the changes of my life
-at sea, the reader may feel a little interest in knowing how I succeeded
-as landsman. He has seen me escaping the breakers that
-met me on my first approach to the shore; and now, if his patience<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_196"></a>[196]</span>
-be not entirely exhausted, he may pursue my fortunes a little further.</p>
-
-<p>He left me, when my episode about home led him away from
-the thread of the narrative, busily at work as a filer of steel-yards,
-at Mansfield, Conn. From thence, I returned to Ashford, where
-I continued a year or two. At last, doubting the stability of my
-employer, and fearing lest what he owed me might be lost, I took
-up the whole in the shape of a wagon and a stock of steel-yards;
-then, purchasing a horse, I travelled from place to place to sell
-them; and in this manner got into a business which I have followed
-more or less ever since. After acquiring, by economy and
-diligence, a few hundred dollars, I opened a small store in Mansfield,
-with the intention of leading a still more settled life; though
-about that time my mind was strongly exercised with a desire to
-devote myself to the religious benefit of seamen. My sense of
-unfitness for so great a work, at last prevailed; and I proceeded
-with my plans of worldly business.</p>
-
-<p>The days of which I write were those on which the bright star
-of temperance had scarcely shone. Ministers, deacons, Christians,
-all used the deadly drinks. Was it surprising, therefore, that I,
-but so short a time before a rum-loving sailor, fell into the common
-current, and became a rum-seller? No, it was not strange!
-but it was a strange, a glorious display of restraining grace, that
-prevented me from being drawn into the snare I was thus
-thoughtlessly spreading for the poor drunkard.</p>
-
-<p>But even in those early days of temperance, I was not without
-my trials of mind in respect to the unholy traffic. Once, when at
-Hartford, making purchases for my store, of which rum formed
-no inconsiderable article, I accidentally heard of a lecture on temperance,
-to be delivered at Dr. Hawes’s<a id="FNanchor_29" href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a> church. This was the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_197"></a>[197]</span>
-first discourse on the subject I ever heard. The speaker excited
-a deep interest in my mind, as he told of the origin of rum, its primary
-costliness and rank among medicines, of the growth of distilleries,
-the consequent decline in its price, and the attending
-spread of drunkenness. So deadly a plot against the peace of
-the world, he said, could only have been contrived in hell.</p>
-
-<p>This discourse fell like a light on some dark opaque; it illuminated
-my understanding, disturbed my conscience. No sleep visited
-my eyes that night. Duty said, “Send back your team without
-rum in the morning.” Fear of men, public opinion, interest
-said, “No. Every other store-keeper sells it, and so may you.”
-The latter argument prevailed. Conscience was rebuked; the rum
-went to my store.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after this struggle, I married a member of the Methodist
-church in Hartford. We removed to Somers, Connecticut,
-where I continued to sell rum, though, as before, with great caution
-and with much inward struggling of mind. At last I could
-hold out no longer, and in spite of the example of ministers, (some
-of whom often drank, though sparingly, at my house,) in spite of
-the sneers of the scornful, and of the fear of loss to my trade, I
-gave it up! It was for the poor, untaught sailor to set the example
-of sacrifice to the store-keepers of Somers. Three others imitated
-me in a short time. Not to me, but to the grace of God, be
-the glory of my decision and resolution. I can assure the modern
-rum-seller, whose lashed and tortured soul still cleaves to the
-rum barrel and the toddy stick, for the sake of the profit, that I
-have ever regarded that act as among the best of my life.</p>
-
-<p>Finding my present residence ill adapted to a <ins class="corr" id="tn-197" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'successful prosecuton of'">
-successful prosecution of</ins> business, I closed up my concerns, and removed to
-Wilbraham, Mass., the place of my present abode; a pleasant town,
-but which is rendered more so by the very superior opportunities
-it affords for the education of children, in its most excellent and
-flourishing academy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_198"></a>[198]</span></p>
-
-<p>Here my life glided pleasantly and quietly along, affording
-no incidents worthy of special record. Happiness presided at my
-domestic board, prosperity accompanied my temporal enterprises,
-and religion reigned as the ruling genius over the whole. My
-ways were committed unto the Lord, and he directed my steps;
-for which I praise him with my whole heart.</p>
-
-<p>In this delightful manner several years fled away; when, my
-business having led me, on one occasion, to New York, I heard
-that my old ship, the <i>Macedonian</i>, was in port. Animated with
-that regard for an old ship, which always inspires a genuine seaman,
-I went on board. She was so altered, I scarcely recognised
-her. Change, with an unsparing hand, had remodeled the decks
-and cabins, so that I felt somewhat lost where once every timber
-was familiar. This was rather a disappointment; however, I stood
-on the spot where I had fought in the din of battle; and with many
-a serious reflection recalled the horrors of that dreadful scene.
-The sailors, on witnessing the care with which I examined every
-thing, and supposing me to be a landsman, eyed me rather closely.
-Seeing their curiosity, I said, “Shipmates, I have seen this vessel
-before to-day: probably before any of you ever did.”</p>
-
-<p>The old tars gathered round me, eagerly listening to my tale
-of the battle, and they bore patiently, and with becoming gravity,
-the exhortation to lead a religious life, with which I closed my address.
-They appeared to be very susceptible of religious feeling;
-as, indeed, sailors are generally. Should any doubt this fact, let
-them hear the Rev. Mr. Chase, in New York, or Rev. E. T. Taylor,
-in Boston, in whose usually crowded houses of worship, the
-face of the rough, weather-beaten son of the ocean may be seen
-bedewed with penitential tears; especially at the church of the latter
-gentleman&mdash;than whom none know better how to adapt discourse
-to a sailor’s soul.</p>
-
-<p>During the flight of these years a constant correspondence<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_199"></a>[199]</span>
-had been kept up between me and my mother. She had constantly
-urged me to revisit my native land. To remove the last obstacle,
-she addressed a letter to Lady Churchill, to ascertain if I might
-safely return. She sent her the following note, the original of
-which is still in my possession:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot fs80">
-
-<p class="right">Lower Brook Street, Nov. 7, 1821.</p>
-
-<p class="noindent smcap">Mrs Newman,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>I consulted my brother William upon the subject on which you wished for advice,
-as neither Lord C. nor myself could undertake to answer your inquiry; and
-I am glad to hear from him the following explanation in reply: “There is nothing
-to prevent Mrs. Newman’s son from coming home; for when the war was
-terminated, he was safe, even if he had entered into the enemy’s service; but he
-will of course forfeit the pay and any prize money due to him.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="right padr4">I am, much yours,</p>
-<p class="right smcap">F. Churchill.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>This note relieved me of all fear, but now it had become no
-small undertaking for me to go to Europe. To go alone would
-be very expensive; but to take my family, consisting now of a wife
-and three children, was much more so. Hence, I put it off year
-after year, still writing and begging them to visit me. When the
-late lamented Dr. Fisk<a id="FNanchor_30" href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a> was in England, he visited my mother and
-brother, and related to them some of the facts in my life, which he
-had often heard me mention. She sent me two silver table spoons,
-which had belonged to my father, by the Doctor’s hands. My
-mother wrote about this visit of that “great, good man” with evident
-satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>At last, I received a letter from home, which decided me to
-undertake the often postponed and long delayed voyage to my<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_200"></a>[200]</span>
-native land. This letter stated that there was a young man in Albany,
-with whose friends they were all well acquainted, and that
-he was about to visit his mother. I found this gentleman, whose
-name was William Warrington, and agreed to join him with my
-family in his intended voyage. This agreement made, we set
-about making preparations for the undertaking. If the reader
-desires to know the events of that visit, he must consult the ensuing
-chapter.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="endchap6" style="max-width: 21.875em;">
- <img class="p4 w100" src="images/endchap.jpg" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="p4 chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_201"></a>[201]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-capy">Weighed down under a pressure of despondency, arising
-partly from temporary illness, and partly from the
-greatness of the enterprise I had undertaken, and whose
-event was so uncertain, I left Wilbraham on Thursday morning,
-June 3d, 1841. A pleasant passage, by the way of Springfield
-and Hartford, brought us into New York early the next morning.
-By the following Monday, the 7th of June, we were all
-snugly stowed in a state-room of the second cabin<a id="FNanchor_31" href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> on board the
-splendid packet-ship, <i>George Washington</i>, bound for Liverpool.</p>
-
-<p>Before we sailed, however, I was fleeced of seven dollars by
-the cook of the ship. As passengers in the <em>second</em> cabin, we had the
-privilege of furnishing ourselves with provisions. For the sum
-just mentioned, the cook had agreed to do all our cooking at the
-galley, insisting, however, on being paid in advance, because, he
-averred, several passengers, on former occasions, had obtained his
-services and failed to pay him; besides, he wanted to leave all the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_202"></a>[202]</span>
-money he could with his wife. These arguments were, of course,
-unanswerable, and I paid him the sum demanded. Judge, then,
-of my surprise, when, a few minutes before we hauled off, the captain
-engaged another cook; the first having suddenly made himself
-among the missing. Should the reader ever have occasion to voyage,
-he may profit by the remembrance of this anecdote.</p>
-
-<p>We then hauled off into the stream; towed by a steamboat,
-we soon cleared the harbor of New York. Sandy Hook speedily
-lay behind us; the pilot wished us a pleasant voyage, and away we
-dashed into the wide Atlantic, buoyed up by the confidence of the
-hope that a few weeks would behold us safely landed on the shores
-of dear old England.</p>
-
-<p>The details of a voyage across the Atlantic have been so often
-laid before the public by travellers, that they have now lost most
-of that interest which they would possess were they less familiar.
-I shall not, therefore, detain the reader with the particulars of my
-passage, except to quote the experience of one day from my journal.</p>
-
-<p>Saturday, June 12th. Went on deck early in the morning;
-found it very warm. We passed two ships on the same course
-with ourselves. I saw a rainbow on our starboard quarter, which
-reminded me of the old saying among sailors, “Rainbow in the
-morning, sailors take warning.” It was then blowing a stiff
-breeze from the west. All the sails were up, studding sails out below
-and aloft. The wind increased during the morning, with rain.
-We soon had heavy thunder, with sharp lightning; the weather
-growing squally, we took in our studding sails. Passed another
-ship; wind increasing with violent rain.</p>
-
-<p>One o’clock, P. M. Sailors have plenty to do to shorten sail.
-Furled top-gallant sails, reefed mizzen topsail, fore topsail, and
-main topsail. We are running before the wind like a race-horse,
-at the rate of twelve knots an hour.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_203"></a>[203]</span></p>
-
-<p>Two o’clock, P. M. More thunder and lightning, which
-threatened vengeance on our poor ship. The lightning is very
-sharp; we have no conductor up; it plays all around us, and, as it
-strikes the water, it hisses like red-hot iron. Several of the sailors
-felt a shock in descending the rigging, especially the first and second
-mates. We expected it would strike us every moment, but a
-kind Providence protected us. The sea runs very high, and the
-ship flies about as if crazy. We have two men at the helm, who
-can scarcely keep her right; it seems that she will pitch under every
-moment.</p>
-
-<p>Eight and one-half o’clock, P. M. Sea still rolling heavily;
-we have shipped several heavy seas.</p>
-
-<p>Nine o’clock, P. M. Wind has shifted, and the weather is
-clearing off.</p>
-
-<p>During the whole of this gale, many of the passengers were
-much alarmed, and some of them spent their time in praying and
-crying to the Lord. How strange that men will leave their eternal
-interests to an hour of danger, and forget them again the moment
-it passes away!</p>
-
-<p>The first Sabbath of our life at sea, by permission of Captain
-Barrows&mdash;who, by the way, was a very gentlemanly, kind commander&mdash;I
-held a religious meeting on the quarter or poop-deck.
-My audience contained all the cabin passengers, with most of those
-in the steerage, the captain and his mates, together with most of
-the crew. I told them I was not a parson, but I would talk to
-them as well as I could. After singing and prayer, I spoke from
-Jonah i. 6; alluding, among other things, to the late storm, and
-exhorting them not to trust to storm religion, but to become the
-followers of God from genuine principle. My audience favored
-me with profound attention. Whether they were benefitted or
-not, the great day must determine. It was in this same ship that
-the eloquent Robert Newton returned to England. He favored<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_204"></a>[204]</span>
-her crew and passengers, every Sabbath of the voyage, with one
-of his excellent and powerful discourses.</p>
-
-<p>The following Sabbaths, owing to the weather and adverse
-circumstances, I contented myself with distributing tracts and
-with discoursing personally with the passengers and crew.</p>
-
-<p>On the 26th of June, we saw the Irish coast on our weather-beam,
-and on the evening of the 27th, we came to an anchor off
-Liverpool, after a short passage of twenty days. Here, a steamboat
-came alongside, bringing several custom-house officers, who
-came on board, and carrying our cabin passengers ashore. The
-next morning we hauled into the magnificent docks of this celebrated
-city of commerce, where our baggage was landed under the
-spacious sheds that surround the wharves. From thence it was
-conveyed, in small carts, <ins class="corr" id="tn-204" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'drawn by donkies'">
-drawn by donkeys</ins>, to the custom-house
-for inspection. This tedious process over, the passengers separated,
-each bound to his respective home; for, having passed the
-ordeal of the custom-house, every man is left at full liberty to go
-whither he pleases. I and my family proceeded to a tavern, contrasting,
-as we went along, the dark, dingy aspect of Liverpool,
-everywhere discolored by the fumes of coal-smoke, with the light,
-cheerful aspect of our American cities; and giving the preference
-to the latter, notwithstanding my English prejudices.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning we all took seats in the railroad cars for
-Stafford, some seventy miles distant from Liverpool. After
-passing through the tunnel, under the city, of more than a mile in
-length, we emerged into a beautiful country, adorned on all sides
-with antique buildings and rural scenery. These passed before
-us like the scenes in a panorama, and, by ten o’clock, A. M., we
-reached the stopping-place, a short distance from Stafford. Here
-we were literally in danger of being torn asunder by the eagerness
-of two hackmen, who, as we were the only passengers left at the
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">dépôt</i>, were especially zealous for our patronage. A police offi<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_205"></a>[205]</span>cer,
-one of whom is stationed at every <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">dépôt</i> on the road, speedily
-relieved us from their importunity. Stepping up, he asked me
-which man I would employ. Pointing to one of them, the other
-dropped my baggage, and in a few minutes, we were at the door
-of my brother-in-law, Mr. William Tills.</p>
-
-<p>Although I had not seen my sister for thirty years, yet, no
-sooner did she see me, than, throwing her arms around my neck,
-she exclaimed, “Oh, my brother!” I need not add, that our reception
-was cordial, and our stay with them characterized by every
-trait of genuine hospitality.</p>
-
-<p>The town was alive with the bustle of an election; flags and
-streamers were floating over every tavern-sign and public building.
-Men, women and children crowded the streets, flushed with
-the excitement of party rivalry, while the continual pealing of the
-bells added a vivacity and liveliness to the scene, of which an
-American, who has never heard the merry ding-dong of a full peal
-of bells, can form no adequate conception. By five o’clock that
-afternoon, the polls closed, and the ceremony of chairing the successful
-candidates took place. First came a band of music, playing
-lively airs; next followed the members elect, richly dressed,
-with ribbons on their hats, and seated on chairs wreathed with
-flowers and ribbons, and surrounded with banners bearing various
-devices. These chairs were borne on men’s shoulders, who proceeded
-through the streets, amid immense cheering from the
-crowds who followed, and from the ladies and citizens, who appeared
-waving their handkerchiefs from the windows; the members,
-meanwhile, bowing, with their hats in their hands, until they
-reached the spot where their chaises waited to convey them to their
-respective homes. The sight was one of great interest to a stranger,
-and I advise every American who visits England, by all
-means, to witness an election day if possible.</p>
-
-<p>We remained with my brother-in-law about a week, visiting<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_206"></a>[206]</span>
-the various places and buildings whose antiquity or public character
-clothed them with especial interest. The town itself contains
-about eleven hundred inhabitants, and is the shire town of the
-county of Staffordshire. Its chief business is the manufacture of
-shoes. Among its ancient buildings, are the remains of a baronial
-castle, whose moss-covered battlements insensibly conduct the
-meditations of the beholder back to the days of feudal grandeur
-and knightly chivalry. St. Mary’s Church is also a venerable
-Gothic structure, of solid masonry, whose walls have withstood
-the storms and changes of about ten centuries. They were about
-to expend £10,000 in repairing the dilapidations of time. I heard
-one discourse from the curate, and was especially delighted with
-the grandeur and sublimity of the music from its magnificent
-organ, as it pealed along the aisles of the time-worn building, with
-an effect never witnessed in our smaller and more modern structures
-in America.</p>
-
-<p>Here also is the county prison, modelled, in most of its arrangements,
-after the state-prisons of America. It contained five
-hundred prisoners. A lunatic asylum and a hospital, or infirmary,
-for the poor, are found among the products of its benevolence:
-the former contained three hundred unfortunate occupants.</p>
-
-<p>The poor-house is a large commodious building, constructed
-of brick and stone, surrounded with large airy yards and gardens.
-It has also yards or courts within its walls, used as play-grounds
-for the children. The order within was excellent; every room
-looked remarkably neat and clean; the children were comfortably
-clothed, and wore an air of satisfaction and contentment. The
-whole house was under the control of a governor and matron who
-were subject to the inspection of the board of overseers, chosen by
-the people. One excellent rule of the house struck me as being
-very useful: it provided for the admission of poor travellers to a
-supper and lodging; requiring them, if dirty, to undergo a thorough
-ablution and to change their linen. In the morning two or<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_207"></a>[207]</span>
-three hours’ work was exacted as payment, and they were suffered
-to depart. The house had its teacher and chaplain; and altogether
-I thought that a great improvement had taken place in the
-poor-laws of the country.</p>
-
-<p>Having been so long away from England, everything peculiarly
-English struck me with almost as much force as it would a
-native American. Hence, my feelings revolted at the sight of the
-innumerable beggars and vagrants, who crowded the streets.
-Italians, with their organs, white mice, or monkeys; poor barefooted
-children, with their baskets of matches; and, worse than
-either, houseless families imploring a crust for their half-naked
-little ones, with many a tale of sorrow and woe, were sights which
-greeted my eye and pained my heart every day. A sad spectacle
-indeed, and one which robs the lustre of the British crown of many
-a brilliant ray. The true glory of a people is their internal prosperity,
-and not the extension of their territory.</p>
-
-<p>The fifth of July renewed the excitement of the day I arrived.
-It was the time appointed for the <em>county</em> election. Similar
-scenes to those before described took place, accompanied with
-excessive drunkenness. Every tavern, and the number seemed
-endless, was crowded, mostly with the laboring classes, who were
-spending their hard-earned pence, for foaming tankards of English
-ale, the favorite beverage of John Bull, and one of the greatest
-hindrances to the progress of the temperance cause in that country;
-though it is hoped that the triumphs of tee-totalism will ultimately
-overcome this national love for John Barleycorn, as beer
-is humorously called in the old song.</p>
-
-<p>After spending an extremely pleasant week in Stafford, we
-bade adieu to my affectionate sister and her husband, and, aided by
-omnipotent steam, we soon reached the great manufactory of
-Britain&mdash;Birmingham. From thence we took stage for Woodstock,
-subject, however, to the incessant exactions of the host of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_208"></a>[208]</span>
-waiters, guards and coachmen, that constantly assail the traveller
-in England, with a request to be “remembered” for every little
-service rendered. The country through which we rode was delightful;
-all nature wore her greenest, brightest garments; the
-roads were level, and as smooth as the most thorough Macadamizing
-could make them. Soon after seven in the evening, the stage
-drew up at the Marlborough Arms, the very hotel from whence I
-started thirty years since to go to sea. The first object that arrested
-my eye, was the revered form of my mother, waiting on the
-sidewalk, eager to embrace her much-loved, but long-absent son.
-Springing to the ground, I felt myself locked in her fond embrace.
-That was a moment of exquisite enjoyment, both to me and to my
-mother. Though deeply moved, she maintained a calm dignity
-of manner. In a few moments, she was showing the way, with
-the agility of a young woman, leading a new-found grand-child
-in each hand, to her residence, which was close at hand. Very
-soon we were all seated round the well-loaded board, the happiest
-family party in the world.</p>
-
-<p>Though it afforded me and my family great pleasure to visit
-scenes round Woodstock and Bladen, which had been familiar to
-me in my boyhood, yet, as the description would only prove tedious
-to the reader, it is omitted. A brief account of our visit to Oxford,
-so celebrated for its university and colleges, may not be uninteresting.</p>
-
-<p>Oxford contains nineteen colleges and five halls. Of these,
-we visited only Christ Church and Lincoln colleges. Christ
-Church is the largest college in Oxford. We were forcibly struck
-with the magnificence of the octagonal tower, which is over the
-principal gateway. It has a dome top, and is ornamented in the
-Gothic style, from designs by that renowned architect, Sir Christopher
-Wren. It is also remarkable as containing the celebrated
-bell, known by the familiar name of “Great Tom,” and weighing
-17,000 pounds. It is 7 feet 1 inch in diameter, 6 feet 9 inches<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_209"></a>[209]</span>
-high, 6⅛ inches in thickness. I got under this massive piece of
-metal, and found abundant room to move about; by standing on
-the clapper I could reach the top over my head. This is the largest
-bell in England; though Russia contains several of a much
-larger size. I also gratified myself by a survey of the splendid
-picture galleries and the spacious library, the former containing
-some of the finest specimens of painting in the country, and the
-latter a large and valuable collection of books, manuscripts, prints,
-coins, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>I made inquiries of our attendant for the room in which
-Charles Wesley studied while a member of this college; but, although
-quite communicative on other subjects, he manifested a peculiar
-sensitiveness on this; and I declined pressing the question.
-After quitting the college, happening to pass the residence of the
-Wesleyan minister, Mr. Rodgers, I called upon him, and related
-to him how the porter <ins class="corr" id="tn-209" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'avoided my questons'">
-avoided my questions</ins>. He smiled, and said
-that they regarded the Wesleys as dissenters, and would therefore
-do them no honor. Mr. Rodgers was extremely obliging; he conducted
-us over his beautiful chapel, and then bore us company to
-Lincoln college, where he pointed out the room in which John
-Wesley studied when a member of this institution. He also
-showed us the other localities of Oxford, made sacred to me by
-their association with the person of Wesley’s grandfather, the
-preaching of the Wesleys themselves, and the studies of Dr. Coke,
-the great missionary hero of the Methodist church.</p>
-
-<p>He then led us into Broad street, to the consecrated spot
-where Latimer, Ridley and Cranmer sealed their faith by enduring
-a martyr’s death. Three stones mark the spot where their
-ashes fell; and never did I feel a holier feeling than that which
-thrilled my heart, while I and my family stood on those time-worn
-stones: the spirits of the martyrs seemed to hover around us,
-breathing the same high, religious determination into our minds<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_210"></a>[210]</span>
-that filled their own bold and daring spirits. That moment amply
-repaid us for all the toil of our journey home.</p>
-
-<p>The following Sabbath I attended the chapels of the Wesleyans
-at Woodstock and Bladen, and in the evening had the pleasure
-of saying a word to my old Bladen associates, in the prayer-meeting.</p>
-
-<p>After receiving the utmost kindness, hospitality and evidences
-of friendship from my family and friends, I took leave of them
-forever. Many of the neighbors, with my mother, accompanied
-me to Woodstock. There I wished her adieu, and when the coach
-whirled away, she stood following us with her eyes, the last of the
-company, until a projection of the park wall hid us from each
-other. Who could forbear a tear in such a moment? I could
-not, and therefore suffered the big drops to roll down my cheeks
-at will. There is a luxury in such grief.</p>
-
-<p>That evening beheld us rolling through Hyde Park into the
-city of London, where I tarried a few days with my brother, by
-whom I was very cordially entertained. Here also I found several
-cousins, in prosperous circumstances whose kindness contributed
-not a little to my enjoyment. Having visited St. Paul’s, the
-Museum, Madame Tussaud’s magnificent collection of wax figures,
-and other curious and remarkable places, I took a trip to
-Walthamstow, the former residence of my aunt Turner. This
-good lady was dead, and almost forgotten by the people; her
-twenty-two children were all either dead or wandering, the neighbors
-knew not whither. Alas for the mutations of time!</p>
-
-<p>A walk of two miles farther on, brought us to Wanstead, my
-birth-place. Here everything seemed natural, though great
-changes had passed over the people since I lived there, a thoughtless
-child. My common school teacher and my Sunday school
-teacher had gone to their spiritual destiny. My aunt was yet
-alive. My brother asked her if she knew me. Peering through<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_211"></a>[211]</span>
-her spectacles, and summoning up the imagery of the past, she at
-length called to mind her former <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">protégé</span>, and clasped me to her
-arms, with evident gratification. It occasions melancholy feeling
-to see the ravages of time on the persons and places one has not
-visited for years!</p>
-
-<p>After a hasty visit to that noble home for the worn-out sailor
-at Greenwich, and a glance at the arsenal at Woolwich, I returned
-to London.</p>
-
-<p>We next visited the City Road Chapel, built by the exertions
-of the great Wesley himself. The sexton told us that when that
-wonderful man held the collection plate, one Sabbath, it was thrice
-filled with gold by the enthusiastic generosity of the congregation:
-a striking example of his personal influence over his hearers. After
-examining the chapel, I walked over the parsonage adjoining, and
-while standing in the room where, with his dying lips, the immortal
-founder of Methodism exclaimed, “The best of all is, God is with
-us,” I felt inspired with his great spirit, and mentally resolved, like
-him to laboriously live, that like him I might triumphantly die.
-From this sacred chamber I visited the tombs of Wesley, Clarke,
-Benson, Watson, Cooper, and other illustrious men of the departed
-army of faithful warriors in the cause of Christ; and, as I stood
-over their ashes, my heart said with Peter on the mount of transfiguration,
-“Master, it is good for me to be here!”</p>
-
-<p>Crossing the road into Bunhill fields, I stood before the tombstones
-of the celebrated Dr. Isaac Watts, and the less learned but
-equally renowned John Bunyan. Here the wicket gate, the wanderings
-of the pilgrim, the land of Beulah, and the river of death
-passed vividly before my mind’s eye, until, overcome with a rush
-of powerful feeling, I wept and walked away, a better man than
-when I entered those solemn resting-places of the glorious dead.</p>
-
-<p>The time allotted for my visit having nearly expired, my mind
-began to look towards the country of my adoption, filled with a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_212"></a>[212]</span>
-strong desire once more to tread its free soil. Strong as is the love
-of home, it was not strong enough to induce a preference in my
-mind for England. America had become the dearer of the two.
-Indeed, I saw so many unpleasant things amidst the grandeur and
-pageantry of the rich, that I often felt disgusted. Such hosts of
-street beggars, such troops of poverty-stricken children, such a mass
-of degraded laborers, such enormous taxation, made me shrink
-from bearing any part of so great a burden, and desire to link my
-future destiny with the rising fortunes of America. How the laborer
-of England lives, with such low wages, and such high prices
-for the staple commodities of life, is above my comprehension.
-Meat was from twelve to twenty-four cents per pound; tea from
-one to two dollars; coffee from twenty-five to forty cents, and other
-things in proportion. To this add the intemperate habits of the
-poor, and how they live becomes a problem I know not how to
-solve. Yet, with all this poverty and woe, taxation is laid upon the
-public with merciless severity, to furnish means to maintain the
-splendor and fatten the minions of royalty. First, they have to
-pay the annual interest of eight hundred million pounds, then
-come the enormous salaries of the monarch and the satellites of the
-throne. The queen, for her private purse, has £150,000; the
-queen dowager, £100,000; Prince Albert, £30,000; the Lord High
-Chancellor, £20,000; the Bishops, an average of £20,000 each. Besides
-these, follow sinecures and pensions innumerable, until the
-resources of the nation are preyed on by the throne, with the unsatisfied
-appetite of the grave&mdash;taking all, and still crying, “give,
-give!” I felt happy, when beholding these things, that Providence
-had, after many trials in early life, cast my lot in America.</p>
-
-<p>On the 25th of August, we all sailed from London, in the
-cabin of a fine ship, commanded by Captain Eldridge, bound for
-Boston. The particulars of our stormy and tedious voyage would
-neither gratify nor amuse the reader, and they are therefore omitted.
-Suffice it to say, that the Atlantic passage could scarcely be<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_213"></a>[213]</span>
-more unpleasant than it was to us; but, by the care of divine Providence,
-after being seventy-five days at sea, exposed to every variety
-of wind and weather, deprived of religious advantages, and surrounded
-only by the ungodly, we safely landed, and found comfortable
-quarters at the United States Hotel, in Boston. From
-<ins class="corr" id="tn-213" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'thence we proceded'">
-thence we proceeded</ins> to Worcester, and then to Wilbraham, where
-we were hailed with joyful congratulations by our neighbors, who
-had begun to mourn us as among the lost at sea. Most gratefully
-did we all unite with the minister, the following Sabbath, in a
-thank-offering to Almighty God, for his goodness in preserving
-us from the dangers of the stormy sea.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, courteous reader, I have conducted thee through the
-mazes of my changeful life. Should the facts detailed in these
-pages lead thee to feel more interest hereafter in the elevation of
-the sailor, my labors will not have been in vain; and should the recital
-of my Christian experience induce thee to embrace the same
-Saviour, who has become my redemption and sacrifice, I shall joyfully
-hail thee, when we meet together in the port of eternity.</p>
-
-<p>To my brothers of the sea, let me add one word. Yours is a
-life of danger, of toil, of suffering. Few men care for your souls;
-but Jesus regards you. He watches you in all your wanderings;
-he woos you to be his! Will you not be persuaded, by a fellow-sailor,
-to heed his voice. O sailor, “<span class="smcap">Turn, turn, for why will
-ye die!</span>” Go! rest in His bosom, who says to you, “Come unto
-me all ye that are weary and heavy laden, and I will give you rest.”</p>
-
-
-<div class="p4 chapter"></div>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="Footnotes">FOOTNOTES:</h2>
-
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">[1]</a> Near this bridge is a spring, called Rosamond’s Well, where Henry II. is
-said to have contrived a labyrinth, by which his guilty fair one communicated
-with the castle.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">[2]</a> This form of “step-father” seems not to have been unusual in England
-1800-50. <em>Cf.</em> Sam Weller’s addressing his father’s second wife as
-“mother-in-law.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">[3]</a> Reuben James. See his life by C. T. Brady.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">[4]</a> To prevent the recovery of these men by their consul, the press-gang usually
-went ashore on the night previous to our going to sea; so that before they
-were missed they were beyond his protection. Sometimes they were
-cleared on our return to port.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">[5]</a> The crew of this vessel mutinied, killed their officers,
-<ins class="corr" id="tn-f5" title="Transcriber’s Note&mdash;Original text: 'and run the ship'">
-and ran the ship</ins> into a Spanish port, where she fell into the hands of the Spaniards, then at war
-with England. Large rewards were offered for these mutineers; many
-were taken, and all who were taken suffered the penalty of death (1797).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="label">[6]</a> Narrative of the Life and Sufferings of William B. Lighton (an Englishman),
-a private in the 60th Regiment&mdash;the Rifles.&mdash;Troy, N. Y.,
-1846. He enlisted at 16, in 1820.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="label">[7]</a> James Holmes, boatswain.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_8" href="#FNanchor_8" class="label">[8]</a> James, in his History of the British Navy, gives this name as Thomas James
-Nankivee.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_9" href="#FNanchor_9" class="label">[9]</a> Dennis Colwell.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_10" href="#FNanchor_10" class="label">[10]</a> The colors of the <i>Macedonian</i> are preserved at the Naval Institute, Annapolis,
-Md. A number of her cannon are placed on the green near the
-Commandant’s quarters at the Brooklyn Navy Yard; and when she was
-broken up, many of her timbers were taken to City Island (now part
-of New York City), and used as the frame of a hotel still (1909) standing
-there.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_11" href="#FNanchor_11" class="label">[11]</a> The official report, from James’ <cite>History of the British Navy</cite>, of the <i>Macedonian’s</i>
-casualties was:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>David Hope, First Lieutenant, wounded, leg and head;</p>
-
-<p>John Bulford, Third Lieutenant, wounded;</p>
-
-<p>Henry Roebuck, Master’s Mate, wounded;</p>
-
-<p>George Greenway, Midshipman, wounded;</p>
-
-<p>Francis Baker, “first-class volunteer,” wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Of the crew, 36 killed and 68 wounded, of whom two seamen died of wounds,
-and two boys had each one leg amputated. Nine Marines also were
-wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Aboard the <i>United States</i>:</p>
-
-<p>Second Lieutenant John M. Funck, mortally wounded; one seaman mortally
-wounded; five seamen badly wounded.</p>
-
-<p>(Unless the five all died, Captain Carden’s statement in his official despatch
-home, “I saw a lieutenant and six seamen thrown overboard,” was unfounded.)</p></div>
-
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_12" href="#FNanchor_12" class="label">[12]</a> John B. Nicholson.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_13" href="#FNanchor_13" class="label">[13]</a> The word “thus” should undoubtedly be placed before “the,” so as to
-make the line read: “and thus the flag of a frigate,” etc. The <i>Guerrière</i>
-was the first frigate captured, the <i>Frolic</i> (taken October 18) being a
-brig.&mdash;(<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>)</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_14" href="#FNanchor_14" class="label">[14]</a> The first lieutenant of the <i>United States</i>, William H. Allen, took the <i>Macedonian</i>
-to port.</p>
-
-<p>The list of the <i>United States’</i> officers and their subsequent records follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Captain Stephen Decatur, who was killed by Captain Barron in the historic
-duel, 1820.</p>
-
-<p>Lieutenant John B. Nicholson, who appears afterwards in this narrative as
-commander of the <i>Siren</i>, 1815, but whose name does not thus appear on the
-navy records. He was captain of the <i>United States</i> in 1832, and died in
-1846.</p>
-
-<p>This list has been compiled from various sources, but the Navy Department
-records show an additional midshipman, John J. McCaw, who resigned
-Feb. 23, 1818.</p>
-
-<p>Lieutenant William H. Allen, who became Commander of the <i>Argus</i> in 1813,
-and was mortally wounded in the action with the <i>Pelican</i> in the British
-Channel, August 14, 1813, and is buried at Plymouth, England.</p>
-
-<p>Lieutenant John M. Funck, mortally wounded, as before noted.</p>
-
-<p>Purser John B. Timberlake. Mr. Timberlake’s wife, who was known in
-Washington as “Peggy” O’Neil, married after his death John H. Eaton,
-Secretary of War, 1829-1831, and became the cause of the celebrated
-“ladies’ quarrel,” as Calhoun termed it, which terminated in the disruption
-of Jackson’s Cabinet in 1831.</p>
-
-<p>Midshipmen&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>Joseph Cassin, Jr., who died a Lieutenant in 1826.</p>
-
-<p>Philip F. Voorhees, who died a Captain in 1862.</p>
-
-<p>John P. Zantzinger, who appears on the Navy List as “dropped” in 1855,
-but who was purser of the <i>Hornet</i> in 1815, when she narrowly escaped
-capture by the British 74 <i>Cornwallis</i>. In that memorable stern-chase all
-the guns but one, the cables, boats and nearly everything else movable,
-were thrown overboard to lighten the vessel. From the Congressional
-records we find that in 1850&mdash;<em>thirty-five</em> years after&mdash;Congress passed an
-act allowing Mr. Zantzinger payment for what he had been obliged to
-sacrifice under these circumstances, when even the knives and forks were
-thrown overboard.</p>
-
-<p>Richard Delphy, who was killed in the <i>Argus</i>-<i>Pelican</i> encounter, August 14,
-1813, and is buried at Plymouth, England.</p>
-
-<p>Dugomier Taylor, who died at sea, as a Lieutenant, October 5, 1819.</p>
-
-<p>Richard S. Heath, who became Lieutenant, and was killed June 2, 1817, in
-a duel with Midshipman J. L. Hopkins, at New York.</p>
-
-<p>Edward F. Howell, who was killed in the action between the <i>President</i> and
-the <i>Endymion</i>, January 15, 1815.</p>
-
-<p>H. Z. W. Harrington (Henry W., on navy records), resigned April 12, 1813.</p>
-
-<p>William Jameson, who died a Commodore April 6, 1873, his record surpassing
-even that of Sloat. He was doubtless the last survivor of the famous
-encounter of sixty-one years before.</p>
-
-<p>Archibald Hamilton, who became a Lieutenant and was killed in the action
-between the <i>President</i> and the <i>Endymion</i>, January 15, 1815. He was
-son of Paul Hamilton, then Secretary of the Navy.</p>
-
-
-<table class="autotable" summary="No record for these three seamen">
-<tr>
-<td class="tdl">Lewis Hinchman (or Henchman).</td>
-<td class="tdl">}</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
-<td class="tdl">Benjamin S. Williams,</td>
-<td class="tdl">}</td>
-<td class="tdl">of whom no record is found.</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
-<td class="tdl">John N. Carr,</td>
-<td class="tdl">}</td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-
-
-<p>John Stansbury, who was killed in Macdonough’s victory on Lake Champlain,
-September 11, 1814.</p>
-
-<p>George C. Read, who died a Rear-Admiral in 1862.</p>
-
-<p>Walter Wooster, drowned June 1, 1813. (The Navy Department gives his
-name as “Winter.”)</p>
-
-<p>John D. Sloat, who died a Rear-Admiral in 1867, having the wonderful record
-of forty-four years’ active service, having entered the navy as a midshipman
-in 1800&mdash;served one year until discharged by the peace-establishment.
-He re-entered as sailing-master 1812. In 1847 he secured
-possession of California just in time to forestall the British designs on
-the Pacific Coast, and was on the active list until 1855; retired 1861,
-but promoted until 1866&mdash;thus being on the navy list for fifty-seven
-years.</p>
-
-<p>Surgeon Samuel R. Trevett, Jr. (died 1822), when surgeon on the sloop-of-war
-<i>Peacock</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Surgeon’s Mate Samuel Vernon, who died February 5, 1814.</p>
-
-<p>Lieutenant of Marines William Anderson, who died a brevet Lieutenant-Colonel,
-in 1830.</p>
-
-<p>Second Lieutenant of Marines James L. Edwards, who resigned in 1813.</p>
-
-<p>The complement of the two vessels, as given by James, was:</p>
-
-<p><i>Macedonian</i>, 262 men and 35 boys.</p>
-
-<p><i>United States</i>, 477 men and 1 boy.</p></div>
-
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_15" href="#FNanchor_15" class="label">[15]</a> This was the celebrated Dr. Nathan Strong (1748-1816), pastor of the
-First Congregational Church.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_16" href="#FNanchor_16" class="label">[16]</a> This was Captain Grey, the adjutant-general, son of General Sir Charles
-Grey, of the Paoli massacre, September, 1777. Lossing (<cite>Field-Book War
-of 1812</cite>) says a drummer-boy cried, “Perhaps not yet,” fired, and mortally
-wounded him.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_17" href="#FNanchor_17" class="label">[17]</a> Leech is not to be blamed for his belief in the burning of witches in New
-England&mdash;in 1909 a New York orator repeated the same hoary blunder.&mdash;(<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>)</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_18" href="#FNanchor_18" class="label">[18]</a> George Parker, formerly first lieutenant of the <i>Constitution</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_19" href="#FNanchor_19" class="label">[19]</a> The <i>Grand Turk</i> was a noted privateer, commanded at that time by either
-Captain Breed or Captain Green, and owned by the famous Salem merchant,
-William Gray.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_20" href="#FNanchor_20" class="label">[20]</a> James B. Nicholson, the same who was on the <i>United States</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_21" href="#FNanchor_21" class="label">[21]</a> The Washingtonian was a temperance society of the day.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_22" href="#FNanchor_22" class="label">[22]</a> Captain Augustus Bruce (James’ <cite>Hist. British Navy</cite>).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_23" href="#FNanchor_23" class="label">[23]</a> The Barbary sheep entirely resembles the tame kind, excepting in the tail,
-which is very much loaded with fat, is often more than a foot broad, and
-weighs upwards of twenty pounds. Among this kind of broad-tailed
-sheep, there are some whose tails are so long and heavy, that the shepherds
-are obliged to fasten a small board with wheels, to support them
-as they walk along. This tail, which is a substance between marrow and
-fat, is considered a great delicacy.&mdash;<cite>See System of Natural History. Boston:
-Carter, Hendee &amp; Co., 1834.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_24" href="#FNanchor_24" class="label">[24]</a> Twenty-four doublegees made a rix dollar.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_25" href="#FNanchor_25" class="label">[25]</a> An instance of maternal imprudence was said to have occurred in
-this port on board another ship. A poor woman went on board and inquired
-for her son, who had run from the British service, and was then
-among the captive crew of an American prize. They told her there was
-no one of that name among the crew. “He is among the Yankees,”
-said she. Hearing this, the prisoners were called up, and the poor,
-affectionate, but ill-judging mother, singled out her son, and embracing
-him, said, “I have brought you a clean shirt!”</p>
-
-<p>The lieutenant, who stood by them, stepped up, remarking to the
-thunder-stricken man, “It’s a clean shirt you want, is it? I will give
-you a clean handkerchief”&mdash;meaning that he would be hung. The
-unhappy youth was accordingly ironed, in presence of the astounded
-mother, who now beheld herself the unintentional murderess of her son.
-A court-martial was held, and the brutal prediction of the lieutenant
-verified.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_26" href="#FNanchor_26" class="label">[26]</a> We were captured July 12, 1814; it was now August, 1815.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_27" href="#FNanchor_27" class="label">[27]</a> If the reader wishes to know why seamen wear their hats on the back of
-their heads, let him put his hat on as usual and ascend a ladder. He will
-find himself unable to look up until he places it on the <em>back of his head</em>
-as a sailor does. Sailors wear their hats thus, because they could not
-otherwise ascend the rigging of a ship.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_28" href="#FNanchor_28" class="label">[28]</a> Edward T. Taylor (1793-1871). From 1800 to 1817 he was a sailor. In
-1819 he became a Methodist clergyman. In 1827 he served as chaplain
-on the <i>Macedonian</i>, which took supplies to the famishing Irish people.
-He was a pastor in Boston during the rest of his life, was known
-as “Father Taylor,” and was a most successful worker, particularly among
-seamen.&mdash;(<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>)</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_29" href="#FNanchor_29" class="label">[29]</a> Rev. Joel Hawes (1789-1867), for forty-six years pastor of the First Congregational
-Church.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_30" href="#FNanchor_30" class="label">[30]</a> Rev. Wilbur Fisk (1792-1839), one of the greatest Methodists America
-has known.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_31" href="#FNanchor_31" class="label">[31]</a> It will be <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">á propos</i> to here quote a letter from Thoreau to his sister Sophia,
-describing Emerson’s quarters on board the packet-ship <i>Washington
-Irving</i>, on which he sailed from Boston in 1847: “I went to Boston to
-see Mr. E. off. His stateroom was like a carpeted dark closet, about
-six feet square, with a large key-hole for a window. The window was
-about as big as a saucer, and the glass two inches thick&mdash;not to mention
-another skylight overhead in the deck, of the size of an oblong doughnut
-and about as opaque; of course it would be in vain to look up if
-any promenader had his foot upon it. Such will be his quarters for two
-or three weeks,” etc.</p>
-
-<p>Such were <em>first-class</em> accommodations six years after Leech made his voyage,
-with a certainty of being at least twenty days cooped up thus, and possibly
-<em>seventy-five</em>, as we shall see actually occurred on his return. [<span class="smcap">Ed</span>].</p>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="transnote pg-brk">
-<a id="TN"></a>
-<p><strong>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE</strong></p>
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors and punctuation errors have been
-corrected after careful comparison with other occurrences within
-the text and consultation of external sources.</p>
-
-<p>Except for those changes noted below, all misspellings in the text,
-and inconsistent or archaic usage, have been retained: for example,
-top-sail, topsail; boot-making, bootmaking; fire-side, fireside;
-phrensied; disparted; yclept; wofully; apostacy; whisky.</p>
-
-<p>
-<a href="#tn-15">Pg 15:</a> ‘special attenton to’ replaced by ‘special attention to’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-31">Pg 31:</a> ‘hard and succesfully’ replaced by ‘hard and successfully’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-32">Pg 32:</a> ‘whle standing on’ replaced by ‘while standing on’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-33">Pg 33:</a> ‘I dd not learn’ replaced by ‘I did not learn’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-48">Pg 48:</a> ‘unceremonously thrown’ replaced by ‘unceremoniously thrown’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-51">Pg 51:</a> ‘being rapdly’ replaced by ‘being rapidly’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-98">Pg 98:</a> ‘We eat together’ replaced by ‘We ate together’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-125">Pg 125:</a> ‘and boarding-spikes’ replaced by ‘and boarding-pikes’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-133">Pg 133:</a> ‘degredation, if ever’ replaced by ‘degradation, if ever’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-140">Pg 140:</a> ‘bed-clothes, makng’ replaced by ‘bed-clothes, making’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-147">Pg 147:</a> ‘for our ecsape’ replaced by ‘for our escape’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-147a">Pg 147:</a> ‘a mssionary, was’ replaced by ‘a missionary, was’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-166">Pg 166:</a> ‘is justy described’ replaced by ‘is justly described’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-176">Pg 176:</a> ‘were prastised on’ replaced by ‘were practised on’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-185">Pg 185:</a> ‘off in trumph’ replaced by ‘off in triumph’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-197">Pg 197:</a> ‘successful prosecuton of’ replaced by ‘successful prosecution of’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-204">Pg 204:</a> ‘drawn by donkies’ replaced by ‘drawn by donkeys’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-209">Pg 209:</a> ‘avoided my questons’ replaced by ‘avoided my questions’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-213">Pg 213:</a> ‘thence we proceded’ replaced by ‘thence we proceeded’.<br />
-<a href="#tn-f5">Footnote 5:</a> ‘and run the ship’ replaced by ‘and ran the ship’.<br />
-</p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Thirty Years from Home, by Samuel Leech
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THIRTY YEARS FROM HOME ***
-
-***** This file should be named 63273-h.htm or 63273-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/3/2/7/63273/
-
-Produced by MWS, John Campbell and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive/Canadian Libraries)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/63273-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/63273-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 83b4476..0000000
--- a/old/63273-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/63273-h/images/endchap.jpg b/old/63273-h/images/endchap.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b72b60c..0000000
--- a/old/63273-h/images/endchap.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/63273-h/images/i_frontis.jpg b/old/63273-h/images/i_frontis.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d10a3b4..0000000
--- a/old/63273-h/images/i_frontis.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ